summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
authornfenwick <nfenwick@pglaf.org>2025-01-27 08:49:02 -0800
committernfenwick <nfenwick@pglaf.org>2025-01-27 08:49:02 -0800
commit3928816e5394e46d3b51a1680a1fcbbf06579049 (patch)
tree60e93276d47e829a3d247fa33bcf6bfd5aef0f3f
parent5446e4aeadd26c35fa5e41f17794a216232eac44 (diff)
NormalizeHEADmain
-rw-r--r--.gitattributes4
-rw-r--r--LICENSE.txt11
-rw-r--r--README.md2
-rw-r--r--old/60125-0.txt9413
-rw-r--r--old/60125-0.zipbin169507 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/60125-h.zipbin1108733 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/60125-h/60125-h.htm11575
-rw-r--r--old/60125-h/images/cover.jpgbin22062 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/60125-h/images/illo134.pngbin220462 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/60125-h/images/illo230.pngbin216798 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/60125-h/images/illo60.pngbin277095 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/60125-h/images/illofront.pngbin195837 -> 0 bytes
12 files changed, 17 insertions, 20988 deletions
diff --git a/.gitattributes b/.gitattributes
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..d7b82bc
--- /dev/null
+++ b/.gitattributes
@@ -0,0 +1,4 @@
+*.txt text eol=lf
+*.htm text eol=lf
+*.html text eol=lf
+*.md text eol=lf
diff --git a/LICENSE.txt b/LICENSE.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6312041
--- /dev/null
+++ b/LICENSE.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,11 @@
+This eBook, including all associated images, markup, improvements,
+metadata, and any other content or labor, has been confirmed to be
+in the PUBLIC DOMAIN IN THE UNITED STATES.
+
+Procedures for determining public domain status are described in
+the "Copyright How-To" at https://www.gutenberg.org.
+
+No investigation has been made concerning possible copyrights in
+jurisdictions other than the United States. Anyone seeking to utilize
+this eBook outside of the United States should confirm copyright
+status under the laws that apply to them.
diff --git a/README.md b/README.md
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..3ed7a03
--- /dev/null
+++ b/README.md
@@ -0,0 +1,2 @@
+Project Gutenberg (https://www.gutenberg.org) public repository for
+eBook #60125 (https://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/60125)
diff --git a/old/60125-0.txt b/old/60125-0.txt
deleted file mode 100644
index 0d9db27..0000000
--- a/old/60125-0.txt
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,9413 +0,0 @@
-The Project Gutenberg EBook of The Winding Stair, by A. E. W. Mason
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
-other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms of
-the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you'll have
-to check the laws of the country where you are located before using this ebook.
-
-Title: The Winding Stair
-
-Author: A. E. W. Mason
-
-Release Date: August 26, 2019 [EBook #60125]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: UTF-8
-
-*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE WINDING STAIR ***
-
-
-
-
-Produced by Al Haines, Cindy Beyer & the online Distributed
-Proofreaders Canada team at https://www.pgdpcanada.net
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
- [Cover Illustration]
-
-
-
-
-[Illustration: _A William Fox Production._ _The Winding Stair._ “NO
-MATTER WHAT HAPPENS, I’LL ALWAYS LOVE YOU.”]
-
-
-
-
- =THE=
- =WINDING STAIR=
-
-
- =BY=
- =A. E. W. MASON=
-
- =AUTHOR OF=
- =THE FOUR FEATHERS, Etc.=
-
-
-
- =“_All rising to great place is by_=
- =_a winding stair._”—Bacon.=
-
-
-
- =N E W Y O R K=
- =G R O S S E T & D U N L A P=
- =P U B L I S H E R S=
-
- Made in the United States of America
-
-
-
-
- =COPYRIGHT, 1923,=
- =BY GEORGE H. DORAN COMPANY=
-
-
- =THE WINDING STAIR.=
- =———=
- =PRINTED IN THE UNITED STATES OF AMERICA=
-
-
-
-
- CONTENTS
-
- CHAPTER PAGE
- I Flags and Pedigree. . . . . 9
- II The Man with the Medals. . . 23
- III At King’s Corner. . . . . 31
- IV Betwixt and Between. . . . 44
- V The Villa Iris. . . . . . 49
- VI The Order. . . . . . . 62
- VII The Pilgrimage. . . . . . 74
- VIII Henriette Explains. . . . . 85
- IX Marguerite Lambert. . . . . 98
- X Colonel Vanderfelt’s Letter. . 114
- XI A Dilemma. . . . . . . 119
- XII The Little Door in the Angle. . 136
- XIII The Companions of the Night. . 143
- XIV The Tunic. . . . . . . 160
- XV On the Roof Top. . . . . 173
- XVI Marguerite’s Way Out. . . . 185
- XVII The Outcasts. . . . . . 196
- XVIII Captain Laguessière’s Report. . 212
- XIX In the Sacred City. . . . . 227
- XX The Coup de Grâce. . . . . 239
- XXI Two Outcasts. . . . . . 248
- XXII The Splendid Throw. . . . . 261
- XXIII The Necessary Man. . . . . 272
-
-
-
-
- THE WINDING STAIR
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER I
-
-
- Flags and Pedigree
-
-“I have finished work for the week. I’ll see no one else were he as
-terse as Tacitus,” cried Mr. Ferguson, the lawyer.
-
-It was six o’clock on a Friday afternoon and a pleasant rustle of the
-plane trees in the square came through the open window of the office.
-Mr. Ferguson thought of his cool garden at Goring, with the river
-running past, and of the fine long day he would have upon the links
-to-morrow. Gregory, the head clerk, however, held his ground.
-
-“Perhaps if you would look at this card, Mr. Ferguson.”
-
-Mr. Ferguson looked at the size of it.
-
-“By the Lord, no! It’s a woman. She’ll be as prolix as the devil.”
-
-“It’s not a woman,” the stubborn Gregory insisted.
-
-“Then it’s a foreigner, and that’s worse.”
-
-“It’s not even a real foreigner,” said Gregory. He had been a servant of
-the firm for thirty years, and knew the ins and outs of its affairs as
-thoroughly as the principals.
-
-“You are very annoying, Gregory,” said Mr. Ferguson, with a sigh. He
-took the card regretfully, but when he had read the name printed upon
-it, he dropped it upon his table as if it had stung his hand.
-
-“Paul Ravenel!” he said in a low voice, with a glance towards the door.
-“The son.”
-
-“Yes.”
-
-“Is he like the father?”
-
-“Not in the least.”
-
-Mr. Ferguson was distressed. It was nine years since he had finished
-with that affair, settled it up, locked it away and turned his back on
-it for good—as he thought. And here was the son knocking on his door.
-
-“I must see him, I suppose. I can do no less,” he said, but as Gregory
-turned towards the door he stopped him. “Why should Paul Ravenel come to
-see me?” he asked himself. “And how much does he know? Wait a moment,
-Gregory. I have got to go warily here.”
-
-He sat down at his desk. Mr. Ferguson was a man, of middle age, with a
-round, genial face and a thick covering of silver-white hair. He looked
-like a prosperous country gentleman, which he was, and he had the
-reputation of the astutest criminal lawyer of his day. He was that, too.
-His kindly manner concealed him, yet he was not false. For he was at
-once the best of friends, with his vast experience of the law as a sort
-of zareeba for their refuge, and the most patient and relentless of
-antagonists; and he had a special kindliness which showed itself
-conspicuously in his accounts, for all connected with the arts. It was
-an old friendship which was troubling him now as he sat at his desk.
-Paul Ravenel, according to his knowledge, would take this or that line
-in the interview, Mr. Ferguson must be clear as to how in each case he
-should answer. Problems were his daily food—at least until six o’clock
-on Friday evening. Yet this problem he met with discomfort.
-
-“You can show him in now,” he said to Gregory, and a few seconds later
-the visitor stood within the room, a tall slim youth, brown of face and
-with hair so golden that the sun seemed to have taken from it the colour
-which it had tanned upon his cheeks.
-
-“You wish to see me, Mr. Ravenel?” he asked, and a smile suddenly broke
-upon the boy’s face and made him winning. Mr. Ferguson made a note in
-his mind of the smile, for he had not as yet its explanation.
-
-“Yes,” answered Paul. “I should have been more correct in approaching so
-prominent a firm, had I written asking for an appointment. But I only
-landed in England this morning, and I couldn’t really wait.”
-
-His formal little prepared apology broke down in a laugh and an eager
-rush of words.
-
-“That’s all right,” said Mr. Ferguson pleasantly. “Take a chair and tell
-me what I can do for you.”
-
-“You knew my father,” said Paul, when he had laid down his hat and stick
-and taken his seat. Mr. Ferguson allowed himself a sharp glance at the
-lad. For his tone was without any embarrassment at all, any shame or
-embarrassment. He was at his ease.
-
-“I knew Mr. Ravenel—yes,” Mr. Ferguson answered cautiously.
-
-“He died a fortnight ago.”
-
-“I was sorry to notice that you were wearing black.”
-
-“He died in a house which he had built upon an island off the coast of
-Spain at Aguilas. I lived with him there, during the last eight months,
-after I left my school at Tours,” Paul continued.
-
-“Yes?” said Mr. Ferguson.
-
-“My father and I were always—how shall I put it?—in a relationship
-which precluded any confidences and even any cordiality. It wasn’t that
-we ever quarrelled. We hardly were well enough acquainted for that. But
-we were uncomfortable in each other’s company and the end of a meal at
-which we had sat together was to both of us an invariable relief. He had
-what I think is a special quality of soldiers—he was in the Army, of
-course, wasn’t he?”
-
-Paul broke off to ask his question in the most casual manner. But Mr.
-Ferguson did not answer it. It was a neat little trap prepared with more
-skill than the lawyer had expected. For up till the question was
-unconcernedly dropped in, Paul had been framing his sentences with a
-sort of pedantry natural to a man who from the nature of his life must
-get his English words from books rather than from conversation.
-
-“You say Monsieur Ravenel had some special quality of soldiers,” Mr.
-Ferguson observed.
-
-“Yes,” Paul explained. “I approached a subject, or I used a phrase, and
-suddenly it seemed as if an iron door was banged in my face, and he was
-now behind the door, and not the loudest knocking in the world would
-ever get it open. So I have come to you.”
-
-“For information your father did not see fit to give you?” said Mr.
-Ferguson.
-
-“Yes.”
-
-“But Monsieur Ravenel had no doubt a lawyer in Paris and an agent in
-Casablanca, where he lived for many years, both of whom will be familiar
-with his affairs. Why come to me?”
-
-“Because it is not about his affairs that I am seeking information,”
-said Paul, and he took a letter from his pocket-case and handed it to
-Mr. Ferguson. “This was written by your firm, Mr. Ferguson. It is one of
-the two clues to my father’s history which he left behind him. It
-slipped out of a book upon his shelf.”
-
-“Certainly the letter was written by our firm to your father, Mr.
-Ravenel. But it was the last letter we wrote to him. It closed our
-connection with him. We never heard from him again; and the letter is as
-you have seen, nine years old.”
-
-“Exactly,” said Paul. “Just about that time my father and I were in
-London together for a couple of months, and when I found that letter it
-seemed to me to explain why. My father was in London to arrange for the
-transfer of his property to France, for the final annihilation of all
-his interests and associations with this country.”
-
-It was an assertion rather than a question, but Mr. Ferguson answered
-it.
-
-“Yes. I suppose that you may put it that way.”
-
-“Before that time, then, you were his advisers.”
-
-“Yes.”
-
-“That’s why I came to you, Mr. Ferguson,” cried the youth eagerly. “I
-want to know what happened to my father in the days when you were his
-advisers. I want to know why he renounced his own country, why he buried
-himself first in a little distant town on the sea coast of Morocco like
-Casablanca, why he took refuge afterwards in a still closer seclusion at
-Aguilas in Spain. You know! You must know!”
-
-Mr. Ferguson rose from his desk and walked to the fireplace which was
-between his desk and the chair on which Paul was seated. He was puzzled
-by the manner of the appeal. There was more eagerness than anxiety in
-it. There was certainly no fear. There was even confidence. Mr. Ferguson
-wondered whether young Ravenel had some explanation of his own, an
-explanation which quite satisfied him and which he only needed to have
-confirmed. Paul’s voice broke in upon his wondering.
-
-“Of course I can always find out. It’s only a question of knowing the
-ropes. I have no doubt a good enquiry agent could get me the truth in a
-very few days if I went to one.”
-
-Mr. Ferguson lifted himself on his toes and looked up to the ceiling.
-
-“I don’t think I should do that,” he answered.
-
-“Whether I do or not depends upon you, Mr. Ferguson,” said Paul, very
-quietly. “It’s not curiosity that’s driving me, but I have my life in
-front of me, and a plan for it.”
-
-He rose and stood at the open window for a moment or two, and then
-turned abruptly back and stood before Mr. Ferguson.
-
-“You see, I was nine years old when I was with my father in London, old
-enough to notice, and old enough to remember. And one or two very
-curious things happened. We were in lodgings in a little quiet street,
-and except on occasions when, I suppose, he had appointments with you,
-my father never went out by daylight.”
-
-“Here it comes,” thought Mr. Ferguson, but his face was quite without
-expression, and the youth resumed:
-
-“But as soon as darkness fell we took long tramps through the city,
-where the streets were empty of everything but the lamp-posts, and the
-only sounds were the hollow sounds of our own footsteps upon the
-pavement.”
-
-“Yes,” Mr. Ferguson interrupted. “One couldn’t choose a better place for
-exercise than the city of London after dark.”
-
-Paul laughed pleasantly and Mr. Ferguson reflected, “I have never been
-called a liar in a prettier fashion.”
-
-“On one of these nightly rambles,” Paul resumed, “we turned into a
-street closed at one end by a stately building of pinnacles and a
-sloping roof, and windows of richly stained glass. This building was a
-blaze of light, and in the courtyard in front of it motor-cars and
-carriages were taking up ladies in bright evening frocks and coats and
-men with orders upon their breasts.”
-
-Mr. Ferguson nodded his head.
-
-“A dinner at the Guildhall, yes.”
-
-“It was curious to come suddenly out of darkness and silence and
-emptiness,” Paul Ravenel resumed, “into this gay scene of colour and
-enjoyment and light. You can imagine how it impressed a child. This was
-what I wanted. I hated long, empty, echoing streets with chains of lamps
-stretching ahead. Here I heard to me a sound unknown and divine—I heard
-women laughing. ‘Oh, father, do let us stay for a moment and look!’ I
-cried, but my father gripped me by the arm, and strode across the road
-so swiftly that I had to run to keep up with him. There was the mouth of
-another street nearly opposite, and it was that street which my father
-wanted to reach.”
-
-“Yes?” said Mr. Ferguson.
-
-“But a man was walking with a limp from the building along the pavement
-on the far side of our road. It was a hot night, and he carried his
-overcoat upon his arm, and I saw that a conspicuous row of miniature
-medals with their coloured ribbons stretched across his left breast. We
-reached the kerb when he was only a few yards from us. I felt my
-father’s hand tremble suddenly upon my arm. I thought that he was on the
-point of turning away in flight. But since that would have been more
-noticeable, he just dropped his head so that the brim of his hat
-shadowed his face and strode swiftly past the man with the medals. That
-man only gave us a careless glance, and I heard my father draw a sigh of
-relief. But a few paces on the man with the medals stopped and looked
-back. Then he called out: ‘Ned! Ned!’ in a startled voice, and began to
-retrace, as fast as his limp would allow him, his steps towards us.
-
-“My father whispered to me: ‘Take no notice, boy! Walk straight on,’ and
-in a moment dived into the silence of the street opposite. I turned my
-head after we had travelled a few yards in our new direction and I saw
-the man with the medals at the angle of the street peering after us as
-if he were undecided whether to follow us or not. There the incident
-ended, but it was—well—significant, wasn’t it?”
-
-Mr. Ferguson was distinctly uncomfortable. A pair of very steady and
-watchful grey eyes were fixed upon his. He was being cross-examined and
-not clumsily, and by a boy; and all of this he fretfully resented. To do
-the cross-examining was his function in life, not the other fellow’s.
-Besides, how was he to answer that word significant? Such a good word!
-For it opened no glimpses of the questioner’s point of view and was a
-trap for the questioned.
-
-“Was it significant?” he asked.
-
-Paul suddenly smiled, and Mr. Ferguson was more perplexed than ever. The
-boy was not obtuse—that was clear. It was no less clear, then, that he
-attached some quite special significance of his own invention to the
-incident he had related. Monsieur Ravenel was in hiding—that’s what the
-incident signified. How had Paul missed it? What strange amulet was he
-wearing that saved him from the desolating truth?
-
-“Did you ever read ‘Balaustion’s Adventure’?” Paul inquired, and Mr.
-Ferguson jumped.
-
-“I wish you wouldn’t spring from one subject to another like that,” he
-answered, testily.
-
-“I am on the same subject,” said Paul.
-
-“Well, then, I did. I used it as a crib for the Alcestis when I was at
-school.”
-
-“A pretty good crib, too.”
-
-“Very.”
-
-“But the translation of the Alcestis isn’t the whole of the poem, is it?
-The Alcestis makes things pretty black for Admetus, doesn’t it? You’d
-call him a bit of a rotter, wouldn’t you? That is, if you take the first
-surface meaning of the play. But Balaustion found another meaning
-underneath which transfigures Admetus, turns the black to white. Well,
-humbly, but just as confidently, I look underneath the first obvious
-meaning of what I told you. That’s disgrace, isn’t it? Let’s be frank
-about it! A man in disgrace shunning his friends! There’s the surface
-reading. And there’s no other—except mine.”
-
-“Let me hear it,” said Mr. Ferguson quickly. He returned to the chair at
-his table. Here might be, after all, a pleasant way out of this
-disconcerting interview. “Will you smoke?” he asked, and he held out a
-tin of cigarettes to his visitor.
-
-“Now fire away!” he said. Mr. Ferguson was in a much more cheerful mood.
-
-Discomfort, however, had not vanished from the room. It had passed from
-Mr. Ferguson. But it had entered into Paul. He stammered and was shy.
-Finally he blurted out:
-
-“I find the explanation of everything in my father’s passionate love for
-my mother.”
-
-Mr. Ferguson’s eyes turned slowly from the plane trees to Paul’s face.
-
-“Will you go on, please?”
-
-“My mother was French.”
-
-“Yes. Virginia Ravenel. She sang for one season at Covent Garden. She
-was the most beautiful girl I ever saw in my life.” He laughed, tenderly
-caressing his recollections. “There was a time when I fancied myself
-your father’s rival. You have a look of her, Mr. Ravenel. She was fair
-like you,” and he was still musing with pleasure and just a touch of
-regret upon the pangs and ardours of that long-vanished season of summer
-and magic, when Paul Ravenel thoroughly startled him.
-
-“I think that my mother died in giving me birth,” he said. “That’s how I
-explain to myself my father’s distance and uneasiness with me. I was the
-enemy, and worse than that, the enemy who had won. No wonder he couldn’t
-endure me, if with her death his whole world went dark. And everything
-else follows, doesn’t it? His friends came to mean—not nothing at all,
-but an actual annoyance, an encroachment on his grief. He shut himself
-up far away in a little town where no one knew him, and brooded over his
-loss. And men who do that become extravagant, don’t they, and lose their
-perspective, and do far-fetched, unreasonable things. Thus, my mother
-was French. So in a sort of distorted tribute to her memory, he changed
-his own nationality and took hers, and with it her name, and cut himself
-completely off from all his old world—a sort of monk of Love!”
-
-Mr. Ferguson listened to the boy’s speech, which was delivered with a
-good deal of hesitation, without changing a muscle of his face. So this
-was why Paul could elate with a laugh the flight from the man with the
-medals and the lighted courtyard of the Guildhall. This was what he
-believed! Well, it was the explanation which a boy ignorant of life,
-nursed by dreams and poetry and loneliness and eager to believe the
-world a place of sunlight and high thoughts, might easily have
-conceived.
-
-“Isn’t that the explanation, Mr. Ferguson?” Paul asked; and Mr. Ferguson
-replied without the twitch of a muscle:
-
-“Absolutely! I did not think that you could have understood your
-father’s reticence so thoroughly.”
-
-If one must do a thing, to do it with an air is the best way to carry
-conviction, thought Mr. Ferguson, and he rose from his chair with a deep
-relief. The interview was over, his visitor obviously satisfied, he
-could shake him by the hand and after all catch his train to Goring.
-
-Mr. Ferguson’s relief, however, was premature. For the younger man
-cried:
-
-“Good! For now the way is clear for me, and I can ask you for your
-professional help.”
-
-“Oh!” said the lawyer doubtfully. “I didn’t understand that you came as
-a client. I am not very sure that we can undertake much more than we
-have upon our hands.”
-
-“It’s not so much more, Mr. Ferguson.”
-
-“I must be the judge of that. Let me hear what it is that you wish.”
-
-“I wish to resume my own real nationality,” said Paul. “I am of my race.
-I want the name of it, too.”
-
-Paul was of his race. It was not merely the long-legged build of him,
-nor the cut of his clothes, nor the make of his shoes, but a whole
-combination of small, indefinable qualities and movements and
-repressions which proved it.
-
-“I should never have mistaken him for anything else,” thought Mr.
-Ferguson. There was that little speech, for instance, about his father’s
-love for his mother, halting, shy, stammered, as if he were more than
-half ashamed of admitting the emotions to another man, and tongue-tied
-in consequence. The words would have run glibly enough had a French lad
-spoken them.
-
-“And with my race, I mean of course also to resume my father’s name,”
-Paul continued.
-
-There had suddenly grown up an antagonism between these two people; and
-both were aware of it. Paul’s questions became a little implacable; Mr.
-Ferguson’s silence a little obstinate. “You know it, of course, Mr.
-Ferguson,” Paul insisted.
-
-“Of course,” replied Mr. Ferguson.
-
-“Will you tell it to me, please?”
-
-“I will not.”
-
-“Why not?”
-
-“Your father never told you it. Your father was my client for years, my
-friend for many more. I respect his wishes.”
-
-Paul Ravenel bowed and accepted the refusal.
-
-“I have only one more question to ask of you, Mr. Ferguson.”
-
-“I will answer it if I can.”
-
-“Thank you! Who is John Edward Revel?”
-
-“I really don’t know.”
-
-Paul bowed again. He took up his hat and his stick. He was not smiling
-any more, and in his eyes there was a look of apprehension. He did not
-hold out his hand to Mr. Ferguson.
-
-“It will have to be the enquiry agent after all, then,” he said. “Good
-evening.”
-
-The lawyer allowed him to reach the door, and then spoke in an altered
-voice. There was a warm kindliness in it now, and to the youth’s anxious
-and attentive ears a very audible note of commiseration.
-
-“Mr. Ravenel, I want you to give me four days before you set on foot any
-inquiry. There are others concerned in the matter. I assure you that you
-will be wise.”
-
-Paul shook his head. “Four days. What shall I do with myself during
-those four days?”
-
-“You have been very lonely for years,” said the lawyer gently. “Four
-days more, what do they mean?”
-
-“During those years,” answered Paul, “I have had the future for my
-companion. Have I got that companion now?” and Mr. Ferguson was silent.
-
-“I came to your office full of expectation. I have not even now revealed
-to you the plan I had formed,” Paul resumed. “I leave it a prey to a
-very deep anxiety. That name I mentioned to you, I found written on the
-flyleaf of an old manual on infantry drill in my father’s bedroom. It
-was the only old book on his shelf from which the flyleaf had not been
-torn out. I am only now beginning to grasp what that may mean.” But
-since Mr. Ferguson had ceased to dispute or pretend, and showed openly a
-face where distress was joined with good will, the young man cried:
-
-“Still, I’ll give you the four days, Mr. Ferguson.”
-
-He wrote down the name of his hotel upon a slip of paper and left it on
-the desk, and shook the lawyer by the hand.
-
-Left alone, Mr. Ferguson sat for a little while in a muse, living again
-the sweet and bitter scenes of vanished years. To what unhappy ends of
-death and disgrace had those anxieties and endeavours led? To what
-futilities the buoyant aspiration? He rang the bell upon his desk, and
-when his head clerk appeared he said:
-
-“I want a message telephoned to Goring that I shall not get home until
-eight. Then every one can go. I have a letter to write which will take a
-little time.”
-
-“Very well, sir,” said Gregory, and Mr. Ferguson suddenly slapped his
-hand down on the table in exasperation.
-
-“Isn’t it a curious thing, Gregory?” he exclaimed. “Here’s a man takes a
-world of pains to destroy all traces and records and then keeps by him
-one book with a name written upon the flyleaf which brings in a second
-all his trouble to nothing! But it’s always the way. Something’s
-forgotten which you’d think no man in his senses would overlook! Half
-the miseries in the world I do believe come from such omissions.”
-
-“And more than half our business,” Gregory replied drily.
-
-Mr. Ferguson broke into a laugh.
-
-“Why, that’s true, Gregory,” he cried. “And now leave me to my letter!”
-
-He worded his letter with infinite care, for it was as delicate a piece
-of work as he had ever been called upon to do, and it took him a full
-hour. He posted it himself in a pillar-box on his way to Paddington.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER II
-
-
- The Man with the Medals
-
-Though Paul left Mr. Ferguson’s office with a calm enough face, his mind
-was bewildered and fear clutched at his heart. Things were happening to
-him which he had never imagined at all. He had been confident with all
-the perfect confidence of eighteen years and his confidence in a second
-was gone. He was in real distress, which made him ache like some
-physical hurt and tortured him at night so that he could not sleep till
-long after daybreak. He could not adjust himself to the new conditions
-of his life. He looked with surprise upon other people, in the streets
-or in the public rooms of his hotel, who were unaware of the troubles
-which had hold of him.
-
-He had planned his visit to London full with many a pilgrimage. The
-London of Dickens and De Quincey—its inns, its gardens and churches!
-That old mansion at the northwest corner of Greek Street, where Mr.
-Brunell had given a lodging and a bundle of law papers for a pillow, to
-his youthful client—all were to be visited with a thrill of excitement
-and a hope that they would not fall short of the images he had made of
-them in his thoughts. But the glamour had faded from all these designs.
-He paced the streets, and indeed all day, but it was to get through the
-long dismal hours and he walked like one in a maze.
-
-He knew no one and throughout the four days no one spoke to him at all.
-He moved through the crowded thoroughfares unnoticed as a wraith; he sat
-apart in restaurants; and as his father had done, he tramped by night
-the hollow-sounding streets of the city where the lamp-posts kept their
-sentry guard. On the fifth day, however, the expected letter did come by
-the first post from Mr. Ferguson.
-
-“If you will travel to Pulburo’ in Sussex by the 3.55 P. M. train from
-Victoria on the day you receive this, Colonel Vanderfelt will send a car
-to meet you at the station and will put you up for the night. Will you
-please send a telegram to him”; and the Colonel’s address followed.
-
-Paul sent off his telegram at once and followed it in the afternoon.
-Outside Pulboro’ station a small grey car was waiting and a girl of his
-own age, with brown eyes and a fresh pretty face and a small bright blue
-hat sitting tightly on her curls, was at the wheel.
-
-“I am Phyllis Vanderfelt,” she explained. “My father asked me to drive
-in and fetch you. He has had to be away to-day and won’t get home much
-before dinner time, I’m afraid.”
-
-She turned the car and drove westwards under the railway arch talking
-rather quickly as people who are uneasy and dread an awkward silence
-will do. They passed through a little town of narrow winding streets and
-high walls clustered under a great church with a leaping spire, like a
-piece of old France, and swung out onto a high wide road which dipped
-and rose, with the great ridge of the South Downs sweeping from
-Chanctonbury Ring to Hampshire on their left, forests and bush-strewn
-slopes of emerald and cliffs of chalk silver-white in the sun, and from
-end to end of the high rolling barrier the swift shadows of the clouds
-flitting like great birds.
-
-They had ceased to talk now and there was no awkwardness in the silence.
-Paul was leaning forward gazing about him with a queer look of eagerness
-upon his face.
-
-“To come home to country like this!” he said in a low voice. “You can’t
-think what it means after months of brown earth and hot skies.”
-
-Upon their right a low wall bordered the road, and on the other side of
-the wall fallow-deer grazed in a Park. Beyond, a line of tall oaks
-freshly green was the home of innumerable rooks who strewed the air
-about the topmost branches, wheeling and cawing. The square tower of a
-church stood upon a little hill.
-
-“It’s friendly, isn’t it?” he cried, and a look of commiseration made
-the eyes of the girl at his side tender. Would he think this countryside
-so friendly when the evening was over and he had got to his room?
-
-“Do you know our Downs?”
-
-Phyllis spoke at random and hastily as he turned towards her.
-
-“I wonder,” he answered. “Could I have forgotten them if I had once
-known them? I seem to have been within a finger’s breadth of recognising
-something.”
-
-“When you have seen my mother we will walk through the village. We shall
-have time before dinner,” said Phyllis, and she turned the car into the
-carriage-way of a square old house with big windows level with the wall,
-which stood close to the road.
-
-Mrs. Vanderfelt, a middle-aged woman with shrewd and kindly eyes
-received him with a touch of nervousness in her manner and, as her
-daughter had done, talked volubly and a little at random whilst she was
-giving him some tea.
-
-“I don’t know what you would like to do until dinner time,” she said,
-and Phyllis said:
-
-“I am going to show Mr. Ravenel the village.”
-
-A glance of comprehension was swiftly exchanged between the mother and
-the daughter, but not so swiftly but that Paul intercepted it.
-
-“You can get the key at Rapley’s,” said Mrs. Vanderfelt.
-
-The two young people came to four cross-roads, and Paul exclaimed:
-
-“Up the hill to the right, isn’t it?”
-
-“Yes.”
-
-They mounted the hill and Paul stopped. He pointed with his stick
-towards the signboard of an inn built on the high bank above the road.
-
-“Now I know. I lived here once as a child. I always wondered why the
-Horse Guards had an inn here, and what sort of people they were. I used
-to imagine that they were half-horse, like the Centaurs, and I always
-hoped to see them.”
-
-Phyllis Vanderfelt laughed.
-
-“Isn’t that like a man? I show you a place as beautiful as any in
-England and the only thing which you have remembered of it from the time
-when you were four is the place where you could get a drink.”
-
-“Yes, the Horseguards’ Inn,” repeated Paul cheerfully. “Let us go on!”
-
-But it was now Phyllis who stopped with a face from which the merriment
-had gone.
-
-“I don’t know,” she said indecisively. “It shall be as you wish. But I
-wonder. We talked it all over at home. We couldn’t tell whether it would
-be helpful to you, whether you would care to remember everything
-to-morrow—whether you already remembered. My father was quite clear
-that you should see everything. But I am not sure—”
-
-Paul felt the clutch of fear catching his breath once more as he looked
-into the girl’s compassionate eyes.
-
-“I am with your father,” he said. “My recollections are too faint. I can
-only remember what I see. Let us go on!”
-
-“Very well!”
-
-Phyllis Vanderfelt went into one of the cottages and came out again with
-a big key in her hand. Beyond the cottages a thick high hedge led on to
-an old rose-red house with an oriel window looking down the road from
-beneath a gable and a tiled roof golden with lichen. Wisteria draped the
-walls in front with purple.
-
-“It is empty,” said Phyllis, as she put the key into the lock and opened
-the door. The rooms were all dismantled, the floors uncarpeted. Paul
-Ravenel shook his head.
-
-“I remember nothing here.”
-
-Phyllis led him through a window into a garden. A group of beech trees
-sheltered the house from the southwest wind and beyond the beech trees
-from a raised lawn their eyes swept over meadows and a low ridge of
-black firs and once more commanded the shining Downs. Paul stood for a
-little while in silence, whilst Phyllis watched his face. There came
-upon it a look of perplexity and doubt. He turned back towards the
-house. On its south side, a window had been thrown out; on its tiled
-roof a wide band of white clematis streamed down like a great scarf. On
-the wall beside the window a great magnolia climbed.
-
-“Wait a moment,” cried Paul; and as he gazed his vision cleared. He saw,
-as the gifted see in a crystal, a scene small and distant and very
-bright.
-
-There was a table raised up on some sort of stand upon the gravel paths
-outside this window. A man was sitting at the table and a small crowd of
-people, laughing and jeering a little—an unkindly crowd—was gathered
-about him. And furniture and ornaments were brought out. He turned to
-Phyllis. “There was a sale here, ever so long ago—and I was present
-outside the crowd, looking on. I lived here, then?”
-
-“Yes,” said Phyllis.
-
-“And it was our furniture which was being sold?”
-
-“Yes.”
-
-So far there was no surprise for Paul Ravenel, nothing which conflicted
-with his conception and estimate of his father. Monsieur Ravenel had
-sold off his furniture, just as he had changed his name and abode. It
-was part of the process of destroying all his associations with the
-country and people of his birth. Only—his recollections had revealed
-something new to him—and disquietingly significant.
-
-“Why were those who came to buy unfriendly and contemptuous?” he asked
-slowly.
-
-“Are you sure that they were?” Phyllis returned. But she did not look at
-Paul’s face and her voice was a little unsteady.
-
-“I am very sure about that,” said Paul. “A woman was with me, holding my
-hand. She led me away—yes—I was frightened by those noisy, jeering
-people, and she led me away. It was my nurse, I suppose. For my mother
-was dead.”
-
-“Yes,” replied Phyllis, and then, not knowing how hard she struck, she
-added, “Your mother had died a couple of months before the sale.”
-
-Paul Ravenel, during the last days, had been schooling himself to a
-reserve of manner, but this statement, as of a thing well known which he
-too must be supposed to know, loosened all his armour. A startled cry
-burst from his lips.
-
-“What’s that?” he exclaimed, and with a frightened glance at his white
-face Phyllis repeated her words.
-
-“I thought you knew,” she added.
-
-“No.”
-
-Paul walked a little apart. One of the garden paths was bordered by some
-arches of roses. He stood by them, plucking at one or two of the flowers
-and seeing none of them at all. The keystone of the explanation which he
-had built in order to account for and uphold his father was down now and
-with it the whole edifice. It had all depended upon the idea of a
-passionate, enduring love in his father’s heart for the wife who had
-died in giving birth to her son, the enemy. And in that idea there was
-no truth at all!
-
-Paul reflected now in bitterness that there never had been any reason
-why he should have held his belief—any wild outburst from Monsieur
-Ravenel, any word of tender remembrance. He had got his illusion—yes,
-he reached the truth now in this old garden—from an instinct to
-preserve himself from hating that stranger with whom he lived and on
-whom he depended for his food and the necessities of his life. He turned
-suddenly back to Phyllis Vanderfelt.
-
-“What I don’t understand, Miss Phyllis, is how it is that remembering so
-much of other things here, I can remember nothing of my mother.”
-
-“She only came home here to die,” Phyllis replied gently.
-
-Paul pressed his hands over his eyes for a moment or two in a gesture of
-pain which made the young girl’s heart ache for him. But he looked at
-her calmly afterwards and said: “I am afraid that Colonel Vanderfelt has
-very bad news to tell me to-night.”
-
-Phyllis Vanderfelt laid her hand gently upon his arm.
-
-“You will remember that you have made very real friends here in a very
-short time, won’t you?” she pleaded. “My mother and myself.”
-
-“Thank you,” said Paul.
-
-Yet another shock was waiting for him in Colonel Vanderfelt’s house. For
-as he entered the drawing room three-quarters of an hour later, a tall
-man lifted himself with an effort from an easy chair and with the help
-of a stick limped across the room towards him.
-
-“This is my husband,” said Mrs. Vanderfelt, and before Paul could check
-his tongue, the cry had sprung from his lips:
-
-“The man with the medals!”
-
-The older man’s eyes flashed with a sudden anger. Mrs. Vanderfelt gasped
-and flushed red. Phyllis took a step forward. All had a look as if they
-had suffered some bitter and intolerable insult.
-
-Paul quickly explained. “My father and I crossed you one night a long
-time ago when you were coming from a banquet at the Guildhall. You
-called to my father. I was a child, and I always remembered you as the
-man with the medals. The phrase jumped out when I saw you again.”
-
-The fire died out of Colonel Vanderfelt’s eyes. A look of pity sheathed
-them.
-
-“We will talk of all these things after dinner,” he said gently, and his
-hand clasped the youth’s arm. “Let us go in now.”
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER III
-
-
- At King’s Corner
-
-“Ferguson wrote to me that you mean to return to your own race,” said
-Colonel Vanderfelt, when the ladies had withdrawn from the dining room.
-He was a small, wiry man, dark of complexion, with a sleek black head of
-hair in which there was not one visible thread of grey. His face too was
-hardly lined, so that it was not until one looked at his eyes that one
-got any impression of age. The eyes, however, betrayed him. Deeply
-sunken and with a queer set appearance, they were the eyes of an old,
-old man; and they provoked a guess that they had at one time gazed so
-desperately upon horrors that they could never again quite get free of
-what they had seen.
-
-“Yes,” replied Paul. “Mr. Ferguson was not very sympathetic.”
-
-“Then I think he was wrong,” said Colonel Vanderfelt heartily.
-“Philosophers and Labour leaders talk very placidly about throwing down
-the walls between nation and nation, as if it was an easy morning’s
-work. But the walls aren’t of our building. They are mother earth and
-climate and were there from the beginning of time. Some people can pass
-over them, of course—American women, especially. But very few men
-aren’t weaklings, I believe. To the men worth anything, their soil cries
-out louder and louder with each year that passes. A glass of port? Help
-yourself! A cigar? No? The cigarettes are in that Battersea box in front
-of you. It’s a fiction that tobacco spoils the flavour of port. Claret,
-yes! Port, not a bit.”
-
-Colonel Vanderfelt took a cigar from a box upon a side table, lit it and
-resumed his seat. Paul brought him back to the subject of their talk.
-
-“I am glad to hear you agree with me, Colonel Vanderfelt. I have been
-more and more convinced since I have sat in this room.”
-
-Paul Ravenel looked about the dining room with its fastidious and sober
-elegance. Cream walls, upon which a few good prints were hung; a bright
-red screen drawn in front of the door; shapely old furniture with red
-upholstery, and heavy curtains of red brocaded silk at the one big bow
-window; a long, slender Sheraton sideboard against the wall; a fine
-Chippendale cabinet in a recess; and this round gleaming table of
-mahogany, with its candlesticks and salt-cellars of Battersea enamel,
-its silver equipment and its short tubby decanters with the blue tinge
-of old Waterford in the glass; in every aspect of the room grace was so
-wedded to homeliness, comfort to distinction that Paul could not but
-envy its possessors.
-
-“I resume my race and with it of course my name,” he said, keenly
-watching Colonel Vanderfelt.
-
-But Colonel Vanderfelt took his cigar from his lips only to ask a
-question.
-
-“And then?” he enquired.
-
-“Then I propose to try for a commission in the army,” Paul replied.
-
-“Oh, yes,” said Colonel Vanderfelt, “but the Bar offers more
-opportunities to a young fellow nowadays, doesn’t it? Why the Army?
-There are other professions.”
-
-“Not for me, sir.”
-
-Colonel Vanderfelt shrugged his shoulders and stared at the shining
-table in front of him. It was a devil of a world—everything cross-wise
-and upside down and unaccommodating. Why must this youth with money and
-the world to choose from, choose just the one bunch of grapes quite out
-of his reach? And set his very heart on it too. There had been a ring in
-that “Not for me, sir!” which could not be stilled by argument. It was
-youth’s challenge to the elders, its “I know better” which there was no
-use in debating.
-
-“Let me hear,” said Colonel Vanderfelt; and the lad’s ambitions were
-shyly revealed to him. Histories of campaigns, the lives of great
-soldiers, books of strategy too technical for him to follow—these had
-been his favourite reading. It was the actual work of the soldier which
-had fascinated Paul, not the glitter of the great days of parades and
-manœuvres, but his daily responsibilities and the command of men and the
-glory of service. Colonel Vanderfelt listened and nodded and remembered
-a phrase in Mr. Ferguson’s letter: “The boy’s of the right temper.”
-Surely he was, and the whole business was perverse and pitiful! He heard
-Paul closing his little apologia.
-
-“So you see, sir, from the time when I began to think at all of what I
-should do in the world, this has always been my wish.” The lad was
-seeking to challenge and defy, but the anxiety which had tortured him
-during the last four days turned the challenge into a prayer. He
-searched Colonel Vanderfelt’s face for a sign of agreement. “I know of
-nothing,” he asserted, “of nothing at all which should hinder me from
-trying to fulfil my wish.”
-
-“But I do,” replied the other. “I think, Paul, that it would be very
-difficult for you to take your father’s name and seek a commission in
-the Army here.”
-
-Paul’s cigarette had gone out whilst he was speaking. He lit it now at
-one of the candles with trembling fingers. The gentleness of Colonel
-Vanderfelt’s voice made him think of some compassionate judge passing
-sentence.
-
-“You will, I trust, make that clear to me,” he said.
-
-“Of course,” returned the Colonel. “I admit to you that up to the last
-few minutes I had hoped to escape, and leave most of the story untold.
-And had you chosen another profession, why, very likely I should have
-spared you and myself, too.”
-
-But though he had promised to be frank, he was reluctant to begin and he
-had ended on so evident a note of discomfort and pain that Paul Ravenel
-dared not interpose a word. The windows stood open upon the garden and
-let into the room the perfume of flowers and the freshness of the dew.
-Outside was the glamorous twilight of a summer night. It was very still.
-Occasionally a bird rustled the leaves of a branch; and across a field a
-cuckoo whose voice was breaking called incessantly. Paul was never to
-forget that background to these moments of suspense. All the bitterness
-was not with him on this night. Colonel Vanderfelt was back in the dark
-places of his life amongst old shames and miseries.
-
-“Your father’s name was John Edward Revel,” he began, and the boy drew a
-long breath. “Yes, the infantry manual was his, some relic of the old
-days that he must keep, I suppose—some one small valueless thing—yes,
-I think that’s natural. He and I were friends. We passed out of
-Sandhurst together and met again in India. Years afterwards—Service
-brought us together.”
-
-He named an outlying post in the hills to the northwest of Quetta where
-John Edward Revel and he lay beleaguered during one of the frontier
-wars. They were ordered to hold on to their position at all costs and
-help would come to them.
-
-“We were neither of us youngsters, you must understand, pitchforked into
-commands we weren’t fit for. We had seen a lot of service and done
-well—both of us. That makes the matter worse perhaps. All the less
-excuse! That’s what they did say! We were losing men all the time, and
-we hadn’t many to begin with. Ammunition was running low, water still
-lower, we were attacked day and night, we two had no sleep, and the
-promised relief didn’t come. The Baluchis got into our outer court one
-evening and we had the greatest trouble to get them out. The same night
-one of our spies came in with the news that a fresh big force was
-hurrying to reinforce the Baluchis. We were pretty well at the end of
-our tether—Ravel and I—. Something snapped in both of us . . . we
-slipped out under cover of darkness, the whole force, and fell back in
-spite of our instructions, leaving this key-post unguarded. And the new
-enemy we fell back from was our own relief expedition which had marched
-night and day and turned the Baluchis’ flank. They found the fort empty,
-which we had been ordered at all costs to hold. You can guess what
-happened. We were arrested, court-martialled—cashiered! So you can
-understand perhaps now our queer reception of you in the drawing room
-this evening. When you startled us by calling me, ‘The man with the
-medals,’ it sounded like some bitter jibe from those bad days.”
-
-“But I don’t understand,” Paul Ravenel stammered. “You were cashiered
-both of you, you and my father?”
-
-“Both of us.”
-
-“Yet I saw you coming from a dinner at the Guildhall, with your medals
-upon your breast. You are here in your own home, wearing your rank! How
-can that be, sir?”
-
-Colonel Vanderfelt replied with a curious accent of apology to his young
-guest.
-
-“I was lucky. I had served in India longer than your father. I had been
-more interested; and dialects came to me easily. More than once I had
-spent my leave living in the Bazaars, and as far north as Leh. Therefore
-it wasn’t so difficult for me. I disappeared. I’m a dark man naturally.
-I grew a beard. I joined a battalion of irregular levies. I served for
-three years in it on the frontier.”
-
-“Did no one guess who you were?”
-
-“I think one or two suspected and—winked. They were busy years you see.
-A good deal was going on all this time and men who knew anything about
-soldiering were valuable. Of course they were pretty rough, hard years
-for any one with delicate tastes, but there was so much to be perhaps
-regained,” and Colonel Vanderfelt pulled himself up quickly. “Well,
-after three years I was wounded rather badly. As you see I limp to this
-day. It looked then as if the game was up altogether and I was going
-out. So I sent a message in my own name to an officer on the border whom
-I had known. The Governor of Quetta came up himself to see me in
-hospital and the end of it was that my sentence was annulled. There, my
-boy, that’s the whole story.”
-
-Colonel Vanderfelt rose from his chair and limping over to the window
-looked out upon that quiet garden, which he had lost, and after such
-unlovely years won back again. They were years of which he could never
-think even now without a shiver of disgust and a cold fear lest by some
-impossibility they should come again. None indeed had ever known the
-full measure of their abasement and squalor and degradation. Even with
-the great prize continually held in view, they had been hardly
-endurable. The chance of winning it had been the chance of a raft to a
-man drowning in the Pacific. The voice of Paul Ravenel who was still
-seated at the table broke in upon him.
-
-“And that’s the whole story, sir?”
-
-“Yes, Paul.”
-
-Paul shook his head.
-
-“The whole story, sir, except that what you did—my father didn’t.
-Therefore he lived and died an outcast,” and the young man’s voice died
-away in a whisper.
-
-Colonel Vanderfelt turned back to him and laid his hand upon Paul’s
-shoulder and shook it in a gentle sympathy.
-
-“There’s another question I would like to have answered,” said Paul. He
-was very pale, but his voice was firm again.
-
-“Yes?”
-
-“The disgrace, I suppose, killed my mother?”
-
-“I have no right to say that.”
-
-“The truth, sir, please!” and the appeal came so clearly from a man in
-the extremity of torture, that Colonel Vanderfelt could not but answer
-it.
-
-“It did. She was in India when this shameful business happened. She came
-home and died.”
-
-In a few moments Paul began to laugh. The laughter was pitched in a low
-key and horrible to hear; and there was such a flame of agony burning in
-the boy’s eyes and so dreadful a grin upon his white face that Colonel
-Vanderfelt feared for his reason.
-
-“Steady, Paul, steady!” he said gently.
-
-“I was thinking of the fine myth by which I explained everything to the
-honour of the family,” Paul cried in a bitter voice. “Our seclusion, the
-antagonism between my father and me, the change of name—it was all due
-to a morbid grief at the loss of a wife too deeply loved. That’s what I
-believed, sir,” he said wildly, but Colonel Vanderfelt had already
-learned of these delusions from Mr. Ferguson. “And shame’s the
-explanation. Disgrace is the explanation. He killed my mother with it
-and now the son too must hide!”
-
-“No,” said Colonel Vanderfelt with decision. “There’s a good way out of
-this tangle for you, a way by which you may still reach all you have set
-your heart on—your career, your name and an honoured place amongst your
-own people.”
-
-Paul lifted incredulous eyes to the other man’s face.
-
-“Yes,” insisted the older man. “You don’t believe me. You young fellows
-see only the worst and the best, and if the best doesn’t tumble into
-your hands, you are sure at once that there’s nothing for you but the
-worst. Just listen to me!”
-
-Paul took hold upon himself. He was ashamed already of his outburst.
-
-“You are very kind, sir,” he said, and some appreciation of the goodwill
-which the older man had shown to him, in baring his own wounds, and
-drawing out into the light again old humiliations and guilt long since
-atoned, pierced even through the youth’s sharp consciousness of his own
-miseries. He rose up from his chair. He was in command of his emotions
-now, his voice was steady.
-
-“I have been thinking too much of myself and the distress into which
-this revelation has plunged me,” he said, “and too little of your great
-consideration and kindness. What you have told me, you cannot have said
-without pain and a good deal of reluctance. I am very grateful. Indeed I
-wonder why you ever received me here at all.”
-
-“You would have found out the truth without my help.”
-
-“That’s what I mean,” said Paul. “I should have found it out through an
-enquiry agent, and the news would have been ten times more hideous
-coming in that way rather than broken gently here. Whilst on the other
-hand you would have spared yourself.”
-
-“That’s all right,” Colonel Vanderfelt answered uncomfortably, and to
-himself he added: “Yes, old Ferguson wrote the truth. That boy’s clean
-and a gentleman.” He pressed Paul down into his chair again.
-
-“Come! Take a glass of this old brandy first—it’s not so bad—and then
-we’ll talk your prospects over like the men of the world we both
-are—eh? Neither making light of serious things nor exaggerating them
-until we make endeavour useless.”
-
-He fetched to the table a couple of big goblets mounted on thin stems
-within which delicate spirals had been blown, and poured a liqueur of
-his best brandy into each.
-
-“I have an idea, Paul. It has been growing all the time we have been
-talking together. Let’s see if it means anything to you.”
-
-He held his goblet to his nose and smelt the brandy. “Pretty good, this!
-Try it, Paul. There’s not a cough nor a splutter in it. Well, now,” he
-went on when Paul had taken his advice, “in the first place, you are
-eighteen.”
-
-“Yes,” said Paul.
-
-“And a man of means?”
-
-“Pretty well.”
-
-“You have property in Casablanca, in Morocco?”
-
-“Yes, sir,” said Paul, wondering whither all these questions were to
-lead.
-
-“And you lived there for some years?”
-
-“Yes. Before I went to school in France and my father built his house in
-Aguilas.”
-
-“You know Arabic, then?”
-
-“The Moorish dialect, yes.”
-
-“And by nationality you are French?”
-
-“Yes,” answered Paul reluctantly.
-
-“Good,” said the Colonel, warming to his theme. “Now listen to me. The
-French must move in Morocco, as we moved in India, as we moved in Egypt.
-It isn’t a question of policies or persons. It’s the question of the
-destiny of a great nation. The instinct of life and self-preservation in
-a great nation which sooner or later breaks all policies and persons
-that stand in the way. There’ll be the timid ones who’ll say no! And
-there’ll be the intriguers who’ll treat the question as a pawn to be
-moved in their own interest. But in the end they won’t matter.” Colonel
-Vanderfelt had a complete and not very knowledgeable contempt for
-politics and politicians like most of his calling until they have joined
-the ranks of the politicians themselves.
-
-“Morocco can’t remain as it is—a vast country with a miserable
-population, misgoverned if governed at all, with a virgin soil the
-richest in the world, and within a few miles of Europe. Somebody’s got
-to go in and sort it up. And that some one’s got to be France, for she
-can’t afford a possible enemy on her Algerian frontier. Yes, but
-there’ll be trouble before she succeeds in her destiny, trouble
-and—opportunity.” The Colonel paused to let that word sink into Paul’s
-mind. “Why not be one of those who’ll seize it? They are great soldiers,
-the French. Join them, since that’s your way of life. Go through the
-schools, get your commission in France and then strive heart and soul to
-get service in the country whose language you know, the country of
-opportunity. Then, in God’s good time, if you still so wish it, come
-back here, resume your own name, rejoin your own race!”
-
-Paul Ravenel, from his solitary dreaming life and his age, was inclined
-to be impressed by thoughts of sacrifice and expiation and atonement. He
-was therefore already half persuaded by Colonel Vanderfelt’s advice. It
-would be exile, as he had come to think, but it would also be a
-cleansing of his name, an expiation of his father’s crime. And after
-all, when he looked at the man who gave him this advice, and remembered
-what he had endured with a hope so much more infinitesimal, the course
-proposed to him seemed fortunate and light.
-
-“Thank you,” he said. “I should like to think over your idea.”
-
-Colonel Vanderfelt was pleased that there had been no flighty hysterical
-acceptance, no assumption that the goal was as good as reached.
-
-“Yes, take your time!”
-
-Colonel Vanderfelt rose and, removing the shades, blew out the candles
-upon the dining-table.
-
-“I don’t know what you would like to do?” he said, turning to the lad.
-“You will follow your own wish, of course. And if you would rather go
-straight now to your room, why, we shall all understand.”
-
-“Thank you, but I should prefer to join the ladies with you.”
-
-Colonel Vanderfelt smiled very pleasantly. The anticipation of Paul’s
-visit had caused him a sleepless night or two and not a little pain. How
-much should he tell? The question had been troubling him, so that he had
-more than once sat down to write to Mr. Ferguson that he would not
-receive the boy at all. He was very glad now that he had, and that he
-had kept nothing back.
-
-“Come, then,” he said.
-
-In the drawing room Phyllis Vanderfelt sang to that little company some
-songs of old Herrick in a small, very sweet, clear voice. Paul sat near
-the long, open window. The music, the homely friendliness within the
-room, and the quiet garden over which slept so restful a peace were all
-new to him and wrought upon him till he felt the tears rising to his
-eyes. Phyllis’ hands were taken from the keys and lay idle in her lap.
-In the high trees of the Park upon the far side of the road the owls
-were calling and the cuckoo still repeated his two notes from the tree
-beyond the field. Paul rose suddenly to his feet.
-
-“That throaty old cuckoo means to make a night of it,” he said with a
-laugh which was meant to hide the break in his voice and did not
-succeed. He stepped over the threshold and was out of sight.
-
-“Let him be!” said Colonel Vanderfelt. And a little later, when Phyllis
-had taken herself off to bed: “I liked him very much. The right
-temper—that’s the phrase old Ferguson used. He’ll do well,
-Milly—you’ll see. We shall see him home here one day carrying his
-sheaves,” and as his wife remained silent he looked at her anxiously.
-“Don’t you agree with me?”
-
-“I don’t know,” Mrs. Vanderfelt answered slowly. “I hope so with all my
-heart. But—didn’t you notice his looks and a sort of grace he has?”
-
-“Well?” asked the Colonel.
-
-“Well, we have left out one consideration altogether. What part are
-women going to play in his life? A large one. Tom, I have been watching
-Phyllis to-night. A day or so more, and we should have an aching heart
-in this house.”
-
-“Yes, I see,” returned Colonel Vanderfelt. “Women do upset things, don’t
-they?”
-
-“Or get upset,” said Mrs. Vanderfelt. “And sometimes both.”
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER IV
-
-
- Betwixt and Between
-
-Paul Ravenel left Colonel Vanderfelt’s house of King’s Corner on the
-next morning in time to catch an early train to London. His friends
-gathered in the drive to wave him a good-bye as he drove away.
-
-“You’ll write to us, won’t you?” said Mrs. Vanderfelt.
-
-“And there’s a room here whenever you have an evening to spare,” added
-the Colonel.
-
-Paul had quite captured the hearts of the small household and they were
-hardly less concerned for his future and his success than they would
-have been had he been their own son.
-
-Paul had given no hint at the breakfast table of his plans, if indeed he
-had yet formed any, nor did his friends press him with any question. But
-they waited anxiously for letters and in time one came with the postmark
-of St. Germain. Paul had passed into St. Cyr. Others followed with
-lively enough accounts of his surroundings and companions. Here and
-there the name of a friend was mentioned, Gerard de Montignac, Paul’s
-senior by a year, for instance, who cropped up more often than any one
-else.
-
-They heard later that he had passed out with honours and was now a
-sub-lieutenant in the 174th Regiment, stationed at Marseilles; then a
-couple of years later, just at the time when Phyllis was married, that
-he had been seconded to the 2nd Tirailleurs and was on active service
-amongst the Beni-Snassen in Algeria. He escaped from that campaign
-without any hurt and wrote a little account of it to his friends at
-King’s Corner, with some shrewd pictures of his commanders and brother
-officers. But the same reticence overspread the pages. Mrs. Vanderfelt
-was at a loss to recapture out of them a picture of the lad who had
-stayed one night with them and borne so gallantly the destruction of his
-boyish illusions. The letters, to her thinking, might have been written
-by an automaton with a brain.
-
-A few months afterwards Colonel Vanderfelt slammed down his newspaper on
-the breakfast table.
-
-“That’s where Paul ought to be. I told him! You can’t blame me! I told
-him!”
-
-The long-expected trouble in Morocco was coming to a head. The
-extravagance and incapacity of the Sultan Abd-el-Aziz; the concession of
-the Customs to the French; the jealousies of powerful kaids; and the
-queer admixture of contempt and fear with which the tribes watched the
-encroachments of Europeans; all these elements were setting the country
-on fire. Already there were rumours of disorder in the wealthy coast
-town of Casablanca.
-
-“That’s where Paul ought to be,” cried Colonel Vanderfelt angrily. But
-his anger was appeased in a couple of days. For he received a letter
-from Paul with the postmark of Oran, written on shipboard. He and his
-battalion were on their way to Casablanca.
-
-They arrived after the bombardment and massacres, and served under
-General D’Amade throughout the campaigns of the Chaiouïa. Paul was
-wounded in the thigh during the attack upon Settat but was able to
-rejoin his battalion in a month. He was now a senior Lieutenant and his
-captain being killed in the fight at McKoun, he commanded his company
-until the district was finally pacified by the victory over the great
-kaid and Marabout, Bou Nuallah. Paul had done well; he was given the
-medaille and at the age of twenty-six was sure that his temporary rank
-would be confirmed. He wrote warmly of those days to his friends. There
-was a note of confidence and elation which Mrs. Vanderfelt had not
-remarked before, and the letter ended with a short but earnest
-expression of gratitude to his friends for the help they had given him
-eight years before.
-
-For the next two years, then, the household at King’s Corner read only
-of the routine of a great camp, described with a lively spirit and an
-interest in the little trifles of his profession, which was a clear
-proof to them all that Paul had seen straight and clearly when he had
-declared: “There’s no other profession for me.” Thereafter came news
-which thrilled his audience.
-
-“I am transferred to the General Staff,” Paul wrote, “and am leaving
-here on special service. You must not expect to hear from me for a long
-while.”
-
-Neither Colonel Vanderfelt nor his wife had quite realised how they had
-counted on Paul’s letters, or what a fresh, lively interest they brought
-into their quiet lives, until this warning reached them.
-
-“Of course we can’t expect to hear,” said Colonel Vanderfelt irritably,
-“Paul’s probably on very important service. Very often a postmark’s
-enough to give a clue. But you women don’t understand these things.”
-
-Phyllis, the married daughter, and Mrs. Vanderfelt were the women to
-whom this rebuke was addressed, and neither of them had said a word to
-provoke it.
-
-“No doubt, dear,” Mrs. Vanderfelt replied meekly, with a private smile
-for the daughter. “We shall hear in due time.”
-
-But the weeks ran into months, the months into a year, and still no
-letter came. At one moment they wondered whether new associations had
-not obliterated from Paul’s mind his former aspirations: at another,
-whether he still lived. Colonel Vanderfelt ran across Mr. Ferguson
-towards the end of the year outside his club in Piccadilly and made
-enquiries.
-
-“Did you ever hear of that boy, Paul Ravenel, again?” he asked.
-
-“Oh, yes, he’s a rich man now and I have acted for him,” returned Mr.
-Ferguson. “Since the French occupation, land in and around Casablanca
-has gone up to fifty times its former value. Ravenel has realised some
-of it. I have bought the freehold of his father’s house close to you and
-let it for seven years and invested a comfortable sum for him in British
-securities. So I gather that he means to come back in a little while.”
-
-Colonel Vanderfelt was relieved upon one score, but it was only to have
-his anxiety increased upon the other.
-
-“When did you hear from Paul last?” he asked, and Mr. Ferguson answered:
-
-“Some while ago. Let me think. Yes, it must be a year at the least.”
-
-Colonel Vanderfelt repeated the conversation to his wife on his return
-to King’s Corner, and both of them shirked the question which was heavy
-at their hearts.
-
-“It will be pleasant to have him as a neighbour,” said Mrs. Vanderfelt.
-
-“Yes,” replied the Colonel. “And it might be quite soon! Seven years he
-has let the house for. And we are getting no younger, are we! The sooner
-the better, I say!”
-
-Some look upon his wife’s face, a droop of her shoulders, made him stop;
-and it was in a quiet and strangely altered voice that he began again:
-
-“We are both pretending, Milly, and that’s the truth. We are afraid. It
-would be hard lines if he died before he did what he aimed to do. Yet we
-have got to face that possibility.”
-
-Mrs. Vanderfelt was turning over a plan in her mind.
-
-“I think that it’s time we had news of him,” she said. “There’s a friend
-he has mentioned several times in his letters. He was with him at St.
-Cyr and met him again at Casablanca—Gerard de Montignac.”
-
-Colonel Vanderfelt went in search of Paul Ravenel’s letters. They were
-kept in a drawer of the writing-table in his bedroom and made a big
-bundle by now.
-
-“De Montignac. That was the fellow’s name. Let’s look at the last ones
-for his rank. He’s a captain of the Chasseurs d’Afrique. I’ll write to
-Casablanca to-night, my dear, on the chance of his still being there.”
-
-Colonel Vanderfelt was easier in his mind after he had posted the
-letter.
-
-“That was a good idea of mine, Millie,” he said to his wife. “We shall
-get some news now.”
-
-Gerard de Montignac was still in Casablanca, but at the time when
-Colonel Vanderfelt was writing to him, he was himself just as anxious as
-the Colonel about the safety of Paul Ravenel.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER V
-
-
- The Villa Iris
-
-“There’s not the slightest reason for alarm,” Gerard de Montignac
-declared testily in much the same tone which Colonel Vanderfelt was
-using to his wife nearly two thousand miles away. De Montignac was
-dining at the “popote” of his battalion in the permanent camp of
-Ain-Bourdja outside the walls of Casablanca, and more than once of late
-Ravenel’s long absence had cropped up in the conversation with a good
-deal of shaking of heads. “Paul is a serious one,” continued Gerard.
-“Too serious. That is his fault. He will not pack up and return until
-the last possible observation is taken, the last notes of value written
-down in his little book. But then he will. I am not afraid for him, no,
-not the least bit in the world. And who should be, I ask you, if I am
-not?”
-
-He glanced round the mess but not one of his companions accepted his
-challenge. It was not, however, because they shared his confidence.
-Indeed every one was well aware that more than half of it was assumed.
-They respected a great friendship sealed nearly three years before on
-the bloody slopes of R’Fakha. De Montignac, with his squadron of
-Chasseurs, had ridden in that desperate charge by means of which alone
-the crest of the plateau had been held until the infantry arrived. The
-charge had been made down a hillside seamed with tiny gullies invisible
-until they gaped beneath the horses’ feet; and the difficulties of the
-ground had so split the small force of cavalry that the attack became a
-series of scattered tourneys in which each overmatched trooper drove at
-a group of Moors armed with rifles and many of them mounted. There had
-been but ten minutes of the unequal fight, but those minutes were long
-enough for each man who fell wounded to pray with all his soul that the
-wound might be swift and mortal and do its work before the mutilating
-knife flashed across his face. Gerard de Montignac lay half way down the
-slope with a bullet in his shoulder and his thigh pinned to the ground
-beneath the weight of his grey charger. The Moors were already
-approaching him when Paul’s company of Tirailleurs doubled up to the
-crest and Paul recognised the horse. His rescue of his friend was one of
-twenty such acts done upon that day, but the memory of them all lived
-and stopped many an argument as it did to-night. If Gerard de Montignac
-chose to cry obstinately: “Some day Paul Ravenel will walk in upon us.
-He is my friend. I know,” it was the part of friendliness to acquiesce.
-There were other topics for dispute, enough in all conscience; such as
-the new dancing girl who had come that week to Madame Delagrange’s Bar,
-the Villa Iris, and about whom young Ollivier Praslin was raving at the
-other end of the table.
-
-Paul Ravenel had slipped quietly away now more than a year ago in the
-black gabardine and skull cap of a Jew pedlar with a few surveying
-instruments packed in cheap, dirty boxes of white wood hidden amongst
-his wares on the back of a mule, and a few penny account books in which
-to jot his notes. He set out to explore the countries of the Beni-M’Tir
-and the Gerouan tribes, to blacken the white spaces of the map by means
-of long and perilous journeys. There were no tribes more implacable and
-fanatical than these; none whose territories at that time were so little
-known; and since they held the mountain passes and the great forests
-which border the trade routes from the south and the west to Fez, none
-whose strongholds and numbers and resources it was more important that
-the Administration should know.
-
-“A Jew travelling alone, carrying on a mule such valuable things as
-needles and reels of thread, matches and safety pins, and some bales of
-cloth will be able to go where even a Moor of another tribe would lose
-his life,” he had declared, and for a long time in vain.
-
-“And what about your notes? How will you make them?” asked the officer
-of the Affaires Indigènes, to whom after much persistence he was
-referred.
-
-“I have a shorthand. They will take little space. I have a small tent,
-too. I shall make them at night.”
-
-“And if you are caught making them at night?”
-
-“I shall be making up my accounts—that is all.”
-
-The Native Department, however, still shook its head. “A Jew will be
-robbed, no doubt, and probably kicked and cuffed from tent village to
-tent village,” pleaded Ravenel. “But he will not be killed. He carries
-useful things.”
-
-In the end his persistence had won the day. He had been given a list of
-a few sure friends, a kaid here and there, on whose good will he could
-rely; and once or twice some news of him from one or other of these
-friends had come in a roundabout fashion to the headquarters of the
-Administration at Rabat. But the last of these messages were more than
-six months old, and Paul Ravenel himself was two months’ overdue.
-
-Gerard de Montignac was gloomily weighing up his friend’s chances when a
-louder burst of laughter came from young Lieutenant Praslin’s corner.
-
-“I tell you she is young and she is pretty, and she can dance,” Praslin
-was protesting, quite red in the face with the fervour of his defence.
-
-“And she is at old Delagrange’s Bar in Casablanca!” cried an officer,
-laughing.
-
-Here at all events was a statement which could be received with
-incredulity.
-
-“But I am not the only one to say so,” exclaimed Praslin.
-
-“Then we must admit that the case is serious,” said Commandant Marnier
-very gravely. “Come, let us consider the case of the young lady. Who is
-this other who agrees with you, my friend?”
-
-Praslin began to stammer. Commandant Marnier of the Zouaves was the
-heavy gun of the mess, a disillusioned man of forty-five with a
-satirical and at times a bitter tongue.
-
-“Who is this other?” he asked, leaning forward.
-
-“Little Boutreau of the Legion,” Praslin answered miserably.
-
-“Name of a name, here is an authority!” cried the Commandant. “And how
-old is the little Boutreau?”
-
-“Twenty-four.”
-
-“Yes? And where has the little Boutreau been stationed?”
-
-Young Praslin’s voice got smaller and smaller as he replied: “For the
-last two years on an advanced post upon the Algerian frontier.”
-
-“Where no doubt he has had full opportunity to compute the beauty of
-women,” said the Commandant sagely. “I think we can now construct a
-picture of this houri. She will be fifty if she is a day. In the colour
-and texture of her skin she will be very like a fig. Not all the kohl in
-the East will lend a sparkle to her eyes, nor all the red salve
-freshness to her faded lips. She will wear a red dress with a swaying
-whale-boned skirt glittering with spangles and she will tell you that
-she dined at the Ritz in Paris a fortnight ago.”
-
-The description was not inept, but his voice changed now into a snarl.
-Commandant Marnier had the ill humour of men who sit all their lives in
-the company of their juniors and see themselves overpassed by each in
-turn.
-
-“The ladies of the Villa Iris! Have we not all sought our good fortune
-at their hands? The poor pilgrims! Here they have reached the last stage
-but one in their doleful Pilgrimage. Paris, Madrid, Barcelona, Oran,
-Tangiers, Casablanca and then up on the supply wagons to the advanced
-Posts of the Legion from which there is no return! Francine, Florette,
-Hortense—oh, the pretty names! Yes, that’s about all they have left
-when they reach this fine metropolis of Casablanca—their pretty names!”
-
-He rose with a contemptuous movement from his chair, and Gerard de
-Montignac asked carelessly, with a mind far away from the subject.
-
-“And what is the name of this girl?”
-
-“Marguerite Lambert, an American,” replied Praslin, and close by Gerard,
-a young lieutenant of spahis who had disembarked that morning from Oran
-raised himself half out of his chair and sank back again.
-
-“Do you know her, too?” Gerard asked.
-
-“No,” replied the lieutenant. “Yet I have danced with her”; and he sat
-wondering not so much that Marguerite Lambert had come to Casablanca as
-that he should not have guessed after that short stay of hers at Oran
-that it was to Casablanca she must and would come.
-
-Gerard de Montignac moved round the table to Henri Ratenay, an officer
-of his own regiment who had made the campaign of Chaiouïa with him and
-Ravenel.
-
-“Shall we go to the Villa Iris?” he said.
-
-Ratenay laughed and lifted his cap down from a peg.
-
-“What! Has Praslin fired you? Let us go.”
-
-But outside the long wooden building with its verandah of boards, Gerard
-de Montignac stopped. Marguerite Lambert roused no curiosity in him at
-this moment.
-
-“A man from the Native Department called Baumann came from Rabat to-day
-to see the General. I hear that he has some news of Paul. He returns to
-Rabat to-morrow, but I was told that I might find him to-night at the
-Villa Iris. Let us go, then! For though I laugh, I am very anxious.”
-
-Gerard de Montignac was an officer of a type not rare in the French
-Army. An aristocrat to his finger tips, a youth with one foot in the
-drawing rooms of the Faubourg and the other in the cafés of Montmartre,
-and contemptuous of politics, he had turned his back on Paris like so
-many of his kind and sought a career in the colonial army of France. He
-kept up a plentiful correspondence with the beautiful ladies of his
-acquaintance, which did him no good with his masters at the War Office.
-For the ladies would quote his letters at their dinner parties. “What do
-you think? I had a letter from Gerard to-day. He says that such a
-mistake was made, etc., etc.” But he was not a gossip. He was a student,
-a soldier with a note book and more than one little brochure giving a
-limpid account of a campaign, bore witness to his ambition and his zeal.
-He was twenty-nine at this date, a year and a half older than Paul; gay
-and unexacting in his pleasures. “One soon gets used to the second
-best,” was a phrase of his, capable of much endurance and under a gay
-demeanour rather hard; a good comrade but a stern enemy; with no liking
-for games and not a sportsman at all in the English sense, but a
-brilliant horseman, a skilled fencer and hard, throughout his long lean
-body, as flesh can be. Women had not touched him deeply but he loved to
-be spoken of amongst them; he was flattered that one woman should envy
-another because that other received letters from him; if he had a
-passion at all it was for this country in which he served and to which
-he gave gladly his years of youth and his years of manhood. It was a new
-thing to him, half problem, half toy, at once a new rib to the frame of
-France and a jewel to be worthily set. On the one hand a country which
-wide motor roads and schools of intensive farming and the conversion of
-migratory tribes into permanent householders would develop, on the other
-a place of beautiful shrines and exquisite archways and grim old kasbahs
-with crenelated walls which must be preserved against the encroaching
-waves of commerce. In appearance he was thin and long and without
-pretension to good looks. His hair was receding a little from his
-forehead; and his nose was sharp and gave to his face the suggestion of
-a sabre; and he was as careful of his hands and his finger nails as if
-he were still living amongst the Duchesses. Moreover, he had a great
-love of Paul Ravenel, and as he looked about him on that hot night of
-early April, his anxiety increased. For the town was thronged with new
-troops, new companies of sappers, new artillery men. The information
-from the interior of the country was alarming. The fires of hatred were
-blazing up against Mulai Hafid, the new Sultan, as they had three years
-before against Abd-el-Aziz. And for the same reason. He had sold himself
-and his country to the Christians. Throughout the town there was
-excitement and unrest. A movement must be made forward and this time to
-Fez. Rumour had it that the Sultan was actually beleaguered there. And
-somewhere out in the wild, fierce country Paul Ravenel was wandering.
-
-“Let us hurry!” said Gerard de Montignac.
-
-The Villa Iris stood in one of the meanest of the alleys to the left of
-the great landward gate—a dingy, long, green house with all its windows
-on the street carefully shuttered and something sinister in its aspect,
-as though it was the house of dark stories. When De Montignac and
-Ratenay stopped in front of it not a light was showing, but from
-somewhere far within there came the tinkle of a piano.
-
-De Montignac pushed open the door and took a step down into a long, dark
-passage. They advanced for a few feet and then the door at the other end
-was thrown open, letting in a glare of lights and a great noise. Some
-one with the light behind him came towards them. Beyond that he was an
-officer in uniform they knew nothing of him until they heard his voice.
-
-“So you have come to see for yourself, eh?” he cried gaily. “But you
-will do more than see to-night. Such a crowd in there!” and Praslin went
-past them.
-
-“What in the world was he talking about?” asked Gerard.
-
-“Marguerite Lambert, I suppose,” replied Ratenay with a laugh. Gerard,
-for his part, had forgotten all about her. Nor did she dwell at all in
-his thoughts now. He went vaguely forward and found himself in a
-grotesque imitation of a Moorish room, cheap tiles of the bathroom kind,
-pillars carved and painted to mimic the delicate handicraft of Moorish
-workmen, a blaze of light from unshaded globes, and a long, glittering
-bar behind which Madame Delagrange presided, a red-faced woman cast in
-so opulent a mould that he who looked at her perspired almost as freely
-as she did herself. The bar stood against a wall opposite to the door,
-and between there were rows of little three-legged iron tables, at which
-Levantines, clerks, shopkeepers of every nationality and a few French
-officers were seated. In front of the tables a few couples gyrated in a
-melancholy fashion to a fox-trot thumped out upon an old and tortured
-piano by a complacent Greek. If there could be anything worse on this
-hot night than the glare of light and tawdry decorations, it was the
-heart-rending racket of the piano. But dancers, decorations, piano and
-glare were all lost upon Gerard de Montignac.
-
-At the side of the Bar, wide double doors stood open upon a platform
-roofed over with a vine; and in that doorway stood the officer of the
-Native Department, of which he was in search.
-
-“Baumann!” he cried, and crossed the room.
-
-Baumann, a middle-aged, stockish Alsatian, long since settled in
-Algeria, to whom this Bar seemed the very epitome of devil-may-care
-luxury and pleasure, surveyed the Captain of Chasseurs with deference.
-
-“It is gay here,” he said with a smile. “Life, my Captain, the life of
-Paris and the Boulevards. You want to speak to me? Yes? We shall be
-quieter here.”
-
-He turned back with almost a sigh of regret to the boarded verandah
-under the vines. To Gerard the verandah was a relief. Here at all events
-it was cool and dark, and the piano did not thump upon the brain with so
-exasperating a poignancy. There was a table empty at the end where a
-couple of steps led down into a dark garden.
-
-“Let us sit here!” said Gerard, and when the three were seated and the
-drinks ordered from a person of indefinable nationality dressed up as a
-Turk, he leaned forward.
-
-“You have news of Paul Ravenel?”
-
-“News? I couldn’t say as much as that,” replied Baumann. “I was at
-Meknes when the thing occurred, before Meknes had declared for its new
-patent Pretender. It’s five months ago.”
-
-Baumann checked his speech and looked over Gerard’s shoulder intently
-into the dark garden. Gerard was sitting by the edge of the verandah,
-with his face turned eagerly towards Baumann.
-
-“What’s the matter?” Gerard asked impatiently.
-
-“Nothing, I think. Nothing really.”
-
-But nevertheless Baumann appeared a little uneasy and his eyes still
-held their gaze in the same direction. Ratenay turned. At the first he
-could see nothing to account for the alertness which had come so swiftly
-into Baumann’s face. Then he made out a black figure sitting or
-crouching upon the low edge of the verandah some way behind Gerard de
-Montignac, just in the edge of the lights, and more in shadow than in
-light. Gerard had not moved by so much as the twitch of a limb. He
-rapped, however, now upon the iron table with his knuckles.
-
-“Come, Baumann!” he said sharply. “You were at Meknes five months ago.
-Well!”
-
-“I had finished my business,” Baumann replied hurriedly, but speaking in
-a lower voice than he had used before. “I was on my way back to Rabat by
-the plain of the Sebou. You know how the track runs from Meknes, due
-north over rolling country, then along the flank of the Zarhoun mountain
-to a pass.”
-
-“Yes.”
-
-“Half way to the pass stand the Roman ruins of Volubilis.”
-
-“Yes.”
-
-“But they lie off the track to the right and close under the mountain,
-and worse than that, close under the sacred City of Mulai Idris, which
-is forbidden ground.”
-
-Both Ratenay and Gerard de Montignac knew well enough the evil
-reputation of that inviolate city where the Founder of the Moorish
-Empire had his tomb. A hive of bandits and fanatics who lived upon the
-fame of the tomb, and when the offerings were insufficient made good the
-balance by murder and highway robbery. No European could pass within the
-walls of that town, and even to approach them was venturesome.
-
-“I turned off with my small escort,” continued Baumann, “to visit those
-ruins, but even before we reached them we heard a clamour from the walls
-of the City, far away as it was. And the leader of the escort was very
-anxious that I should not delay amongst those tall, broken pillars and
-huge, fallen blocks of stone. So I hurried over my visit, but even then,
-half way between us and the track a line of men armed and some of them
-mounted sprang up from the bushes of asphodel and barred our return.”
-
-“We shall have to unlock and scour that City one of these months,” said
-Gerard de Montignac, little thinking that it was he upon whom, in after
-years, the duty would fall, or what strange and tragic revelations would
-be made to him upon that day.
-
-“When they saw that we were soldiers they let us pass with a few curses,
-that is, all of them except one, a young fellow in a ragged djellaba,
-armed with a great pole. ‘What are you doing in our country, you dog of
-a Christian?’ he screamed at me in a fury, and he twirled his staff
-suddenly about his head. He was so near to me that he could have broken
-my back with it before I could have raised a hand to defend myself. I
-had just time to understand my danger and then he grounded his staff and
-laughed at me. His friends grinned, too. I expect that I did look rather
-a fool. I was thoroughly frightened, I can tell you. The whole thing had
-happened so suddenly. I almost felt my spine snapping,” and Baumann
-wiped his face with his handkerchief at the recollection of that great
-staff whirling in the air and him helpless upon his horse with his
-holsters strapped. “So that until we had passed them and were back upon
-the track again, I didn’t understand.”
-
-“Understand what?” asked Gerard de Montignac.
-
-“Understand who had played this joke upon me,” returned Baumann. “It was
-Captain Ravenel.”
-
-Gerard de Montignac was startled.
-
-“You are sure?” he cried. “He was there in Mulai Idris, one of them!”
-and Baumann suddenly exclaimed:
-
-“Hush! Don’t turn round. There’s a man behind you. He has been creeping
-along the edge of the verandah. This town is full of spies.”
-
-Gerard did not turn, but Ratenay, from where he sat, could see. The
-black figure crouching well away behind them on the edge of the raised
-floor had slipped quietly towards them, whilst Baumann had been telling
-his story. He was now close behind Gerard, squatting low upon the plank,
-with his feet in the garden, a ragged and dusty Jew with a mass of
-greasy ringlets struggling from beneath his skull cap.
-
-Gerard de Montignac turned swiftly round upon him.
-
-“What do you want here?” he cried angrily.
-
-“A whiskey and soda!” replied Paul Ravenel. For that once insular drink
-had become lately known with favour to the officers of France.
-
-[Illustration: _A William Fox Production._ _The Winding Stair._ A
-CHANCE MEETING IN THE ARABIAN MARKET PLACE.]
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER VI
-
-
- The Order
-
-Paul Ravenel reported to the General and then betook himself to the
-house by the sea-wall in which he had spent so much of his boyhood. He
-had a month’s furlough and an account of his wanderings to write. At the
-end of a week he had got the stain from his skin and the dye out of his
-hair, but he had not got far with his report, not liking the look of the
-words as he wrote them down, and composing the page again to find it no
-better done than it had been before. He was sitting despondently at his
-writing-table at ten o’clock on one of these evenings, his hair all
-rumpled and a chaos of notes spread about him, when Gerard de Montignac
-burst into the room.
-
-“Paul, I am worn to a shadow with sheer idleness,” he cried. “Always
-something is going to happen, never anything does happen; except ships
-and ships and ships and batteries landing and soldiers marching to God
-knows where. I can bear no more of it. We will break out to-night, Paul.
-We will drink Casablanca in one draught. We will do something wild and
-utterly original.”
-
-Paul looked up and laughed.
-
-“For instance?”
-
-“Yes, it is rather difficult. To begin with, we might go to the Villa
-Iris.”
-
-“That _bouge_?”
-
-“And we might dance with Marguerite Lambert, the American?”
-
-Paul stared.
-
-“And who the devil is Marguerite Lambert?” he asked. Could any good
-thing come out of the Villa Iris?
-
-“It is high time you knew her,” said Gerard de Montignac decidedly.
-
-“What is she like?”
-
-“I haven’t seen her, either. But the little Praslin says she’s a dream,
-and the little Boutreau, the little Boutreau of the Legion cannot sleep
-at night for thinking of her. It is high time, Paul, that we both made
-her acquaintance.”
-
-Paul laughed and shook his head.
-
-“I daren’t risk catching the little Boutreau’s malady until I have
-finished this report.”
-
-“You have a month.”
-
-“I know. But I want to go back to my battalion and command my company.
-Some day we are going to march to Fez. Don’t forget it!”
-
-Gerard de Montignac sat down, took off his cap, lit a cigarette and drew
-up his chair to the table.
-
-“You are a serious one,” he said very sagely, “a fastidious, serious
-one. When you look at me I feel that you are very sorry for me—that
-poor Gerard—and that you know I can’t help it. And when there are
-Generals about, I point to you and say loudly: ‘Ah, there is a serious
-one who will go far!’ But here privately I am afraid for you, Paul. I
-say to myself, ‘He is not of stone. Some day things will happen with
-that serious one, and where we common people scrape our shins, he will
-break his neck. When we amuse ourselves for a month, he will marry the
-Sergeant-Major’s daughter.’”
-
-Paul had heard this homily a good many times before. He just went on
-writing as if his friend were not in the room.
-
-“But I am not sure that something has not already happened to you—oh, a
-long time ago.”
-
-Paul’s pen stopped abruptly, but he did not look up from the page.
-
-“Why are you not sure?” he asked.
-
-“Because you have compassions and sympathies and little delicacies of
-thought which the rest of us have not. The garrisons of the Colonial
-army and the coast towns of North Africa are not the natural soil for
-such harvests. Some long time ago, a thing has happened, eh?”
-
-“No,” said Paul. He gathered his papers together and got up. Gerard was
-beginning to guess a little too shrewdly. “But I will tell you what is
-going to happen. I am going with you to the Villa Iris.”
-
-The nine years which had passed since Paul had listened through an
-evening to Colonel Vanderfelt had written less upon his face than on his
-character. He hardly looked older, nor had he lost the elusive grace
-which made others warm to him from the outset of acquaintanceship. But
-he had now the ease, the restful quality of a man who has found himself.
-Youth which is solitary is given to luxuriate in woe, but the years of
-companionship, of friendly rivalry, of strenuous effort, and a little
-trifle of achievement had enabled Paul Ravenel to contemplate the blot
-upon his name with a much less tragic eye than when it had first been
-revealed to him. He had hurried from Colonel Vanderfelt’s house to
-France and for a week had roamed the woods of Fontainebleau sunk in such
-an exaggeration of shame that he shunned all speech and company and felt
-himself a leper. Paul remembered that week now with amazement and scorn.
-He had served throughout the Chaiouïa Campaign, from the capture of
-Settat, right on to the wonderful three weeks in March when with the
-speed and the mobility of Stonewall Jackson’s “foot-cavalry” they had
-marched and fought and straightway marched again until the swift pounce
-upon the great camp of Bou Nuallah had put the seal upon their
-victories. Settat, M’Kown, Sidi el Mekhi, the R’Fakha, the
-M’Karto—those had been royal days of friendship and battle, and
-endurance, and the memory of the week at Fontainebleau could only live
-in shame beside them.
-
-Gerard de Montignac’s careless words had suddenly set Paul upon this
-train of thought, so that he forgot for a moment his friend’s presence
-in the room. He had not changed his plans—he found himself putting that
-question silently. No, he still meant to go back to his own home and
-race and name. He was not of those to whom Eastern lands and Eastern
-climes make so searching an appeal that they can never afterwards be
-happy anywhere else. He was a true child of the grey skies, and he meant
-in due time to live under them. But the actual date for that migration
-had been pushed off to a misty day. He put his cap on his head.
-
-“Come, let us sample your Villa Iris,” he said; and the two friends
-walked across Casablanca to the green, dark-shuttered house.
-
-The Bar was full and the piano doing its worst. Above the babel of
-voices, every harsh note of it hurt like a tap upon a live brain. Paul
-and Gerard de Montignac were the only two in uniform there that night. A
-few small officials of the French business companies, Greeks, Italians,
-nondescripts from the Levant, and Jews, who three years before, paddling
-barefoot in the filth of their Mellah, were the only people to shout
-“Vive la France,” as the troops marched through Casablanca—these made
-up the company of the Villa Iris.
-
-Gerard de Montignac looked about the room. At a big table at the end, a
-little crowd of these revellers, dandies in broadcloth and yellow,
-buttoned boots, were raising a din as they drank, some standing and
-gesticulating, others perched on high stools, and all talking at the top
-of their high, shrill voices. Half-a-dozen women in bedraggled costumes
-covered with spangles which had once done duty in the outlying Music
-Halls of Paris were dancing with their partners in front of the tables.
-But Gerard could not believe that any one of them could have cost even
-little Boutreau of the Legion five minutes of his ordinary ration of
-sleep.
-
-“She may be outside,” said Gerard. “Let us see!”
-
-He made his way between the tables, crossed the open space of floor and
-went out through the wide doorway on the big verandah. Paul followed
-him. The verandah was almost empty. They sat down at one of the small
-iron tables near to the garden, and Gerard de Montignac broke into a
-laugh as he noticed his friend’s troubled face.
-
-“You cannot bear it, eh? It is all too vulgar and noisy and crude. You
-are sorry for us who are amused by it.”
-
-Paul laughed and his face cleared.
-
-“Don’t be an idiot, Gerard. It isn’t that.”
-
-“What’s the matter, then?”
-
-The look of perplexity returned to Ravenel’s eyes.
-
-“I have seen her,” he said.
-
-“Seen whom?” asked Gerard.
-
-“Your Marguerite Lambert. At least, I think so. It must have been she.”
-
-There was a real note of distress in Paul’s voice which Gerard de
-Montignac was quite at a loss to understand. He turned in his chair and
-looked into the saloon. Between the doorway and the tables a few couples
-were revolving, but the women were of the type native to such places,
-their countenances plastered with paint, a fixed smile upon their lips,
-and a deliberate archness in their expression, and in their features the
-haggard remains of what even at its bloom so many years ago could have
-been no more than a vulgar comeliness.
-
-“She is sitting at the big table with those half-drunken Levantines,”
-said Paul. “What is she doing amongst them?” He asked the question in a
-voice of bewilderment and pity. “Why is she here at all—a child!”
-
-Suddenly the hard uproar of the piano ceased, the dancers stopped their
-gyrations, with the abruptness of mechanical figures whose works have
-run down, and sauntered to their chairs. Gerard could now see the big
-table but there was such a cluster of men about it, gesticulating and
-shouting, that Gerard de Montignac was moved to disgust.
-
-“It is for those men we fight and get killed,” he cried, turning towards
-Paul. “Look at them! Three years ago they were cringing in their Mellahs
-or shivering in their little shops and offices for fear of an attack
-upon the city. Now they are the bloods of the town, picking up the money
-all day, and living the Life at night. Another three years and half of
-them will have their automobiles and take supper at the Café de Paris,
-whilst you and I, Paul, if we are lucky, will be shaking with fever in
-some garrison in the desert. I should like to bang their noisy heads
-together.”
-
-Paul laughed at his friend’s indignation.
-
-“All wars fatten the carrion birds, but it isn’t for the carrion birds
-that they are fought,” he said, and in the saloon all the voices ceased.
-
-Gerard de Montignac swung round again in his chair. The men who had been
-standing about the big table had taken their seats and on the far side
-of it, almost facing the doorway and the two officers beyond in the dark
-of the verandah, a girl was standing. Gerard uttered a little cry, so
-startled was he by her aspect, by the sharp contrast between her
-delicacy and the squalor of her company. He heard Paul Ravenel move
-behind him, but he did not turn. His eyes were drawn to that slight
-figure and held by it.
-
-“Marguerite Lambert,” he whispered to himself. There she stood, looking
-straight out through the doorway towards them. Could she see them, he
-wondered. Why was she standing there in view before that crowd, in this
-dustbin of Casablanca? It was wrong.
-
-The piano sounded a note and Marguerite Lambert began to sing. But she
-could not sing—that was evident from the first bar. A tiny voice, which
-even in that silence hardly reached to the two men on the verandah,
-clear and gentle but with no range of music in it. It was like a child
-singing and an untrained child without any gift for singing. As singing
-it was ridiculous. Yet Gerard de Montignac neither laughed, nor could
-withdraw his eyes. He even held his breath, and of her singing he was
-altogether unaware.
-
-She was pretty—yes, but too thin, and with eyes unnaturally large for
-her face. She was fresh: yes, strangely fresh for that place of squalor
-and withered flowers. And she was young, so that she stood apart from
-the other women like a jewel amongst pebbles. But it was not her beauty
-which arrested him, nor some indefinable air of good breeding which she
-had, but—and when she was halfway through her little song Gerard
-reached the explanation in his analysis—a queer look of fatality. Yes,
-a fatal look as though she was predestined to something out of the
-common, greater joys perhaps or greater sufferings, a bigger destiny
-than falls to the ordinary lot.
-
-Gerard de Montignac had all the Frenchman’s passion for classing people
-in their proper categories, and his knack, as soon as that was done, of
-losing all interest in them. He was unable to place the girl in hers.
-
-What was she singing about in that absurd little tinkling voice?
-Moonlight, and lovers, and lilies on the water? To a lot of degenerate
-money-grubbing Levantines? Through Gerard’s memory, to the tune which
-she sang was running a chain of names—names of places—names which
-Commandant Marnier had savagely strung together one night in the Mess;
-the names of the stages in that melancholy pilgrimage from which women
-do not return. Paris, Madrid, Barcelona, Toulon, Marseilles, Oran,
-Tangiers, Casablanca, and the Advanced Posts of the Legion. Yes, but the
-pilgrimage occupied a lifetime. What was this girl’s age? Was she
-nineteen or twenty? Not more, assuredly! How then had she come to the
-penultimate stage so soon? By what desperate circumstance of crime or
-ill-fortune? . . .
-
-The song ceased and at once the clatter of voices broke out again.
-Madame Delagrange behind her bar poured out the drinks for three or four
-dark-skinned waiters dressed like Turks and a painted woman with worn
-eyes and wrinkles which no paint could hide minced out in her shabby,
-high-heeled dancing slippers to the officers on the verandah.
-
-“Give me something to drink, dearie—I am dying of thirst,” she said,
-and she drew a chair to their table. Gerard de Montignac laughed
-brutally and would have driven her away, but Paul was quick to
-anticipate him. He had seen the woman flush under her paint when Gerard
-laughed.
-
-“Of course,” he said at once. “What shall we all drink, Mademoiselle?”
-
-She turned to him gratefully.
-
-“If you will take my advice, the whiskey. The champagne—oh, never.”
-
-“I can imagine it,” said Paul. “Chiefly sugar and sulphuric acid and
-mixed in the back yard,” and he laughed pleasantly to put the woman at
-her ease.
-
-The one sure gain which had come to Paul from the destruction of his
-illusions was a hesitation in passing judgment upon people and
-estimating their values and characters. He had been so utterly mistaken
-once. He meant to go gently thereafter. And partly for that reason,
-partly because of an imagination which made him always want to stand
-behind the eyes of others and see what different things they looked out
-upon, from the things which he saw himself, there had grown up within
-that compassion and sympathy which Gerard de Montignac had noticed as
-dangerous qualities.
-
-So although in truth he was more impatient than Gerard that this woman
-should be gone, he betrayed no sign of it. She had surely humiliations
-enough each day without his adding yet another. Accordingly they sat
-about the table, and the woman began with the usual gambit of her class
-in the only game which she knew how to play.
-
-“I have not seen you here before. You have just arrived in Casablanca,
-too—a few days ago? My name is Henriette. Only to think that a
-fortnight ago I was dining in the Café de Paris! But I wanted a
-change—so fatiguing, Paris!—and to pay my expenses meanwhile. So I
-dance here for a few weeks and return.”
-
-Paul accepted the outrageous lie with a fine courtesy which was lost
-upon his friend, who for his part grinned openly, remembering the
-Commandant Marnier’s descriptions.
-
-“And what is that little one, Marguerite Lambert, at her age and with
-her looks, doing here at the Villa Iris?” he asked bluntly.
-
-Henriette flushed and her eyes grew as hard as buttons. “And why
-shouldn’t she be here?” she asked with a resentful challenge. “Just like
-the rest of us! Or do you think her so different as those idiots do over
-at the table there? But I will tell you one thing,” and she nodded her
-head emphatically. “She will not be here long—no, nor anywhere else,
-the little fool! But, there!—” Henriette’s anger died away as quickly
-as it had flared up. “She is not a bad sort and quite friendly with us
-girls.”
-
-“And why will she not stay here long?” asked Gerard.
-
-“Oh, ask her yourself, if you are so curious,” she cried impatiently.
-“But you are dull, you two! No, you are not amusing me at all,” and,
-emptying her glass, Henriette flung off into the saloon as the
-accompanist began once more to belabour the keys of the piano.
-
-Gerard watched her go with a shrug of the shoulders and a laugh. He
-turned then towards Paul and Paul’s chair was empty. Paul had risen the
-moment Henriette had flung away and was walking at the back of the
-tables towards the doorway into the Bar. Gerard watched him curiously
-and with a certain malicious amusement. Was he, too—that serious
-one—to go at last the way of all flesh? To seek the conventional
-compensation for a long period of strenuous service in the facile amours
-of the coast towns?
-
-The beginning of the affair, at all events, was not conventional. Gerard
-noticed, with a curious envy which he had not thought to feel, that Paul
-Ravenel went quietly to the back of that noisy table in the Bar, and
-stood just behind Marguerite Lambert. No one at the table noticed him
-nor did Marguerite turn. But she rose slowly to her feet, like a person
-in a dream. Only then did the men drinking at the table look toward Paul
-Ravenel. A strange silence fell upon them, as Marguerite turned about
-and went towards Paul. For a moment they stood facing one another. Then
-Marguerite fell in at his side, as though an order had been given and
-they moved away from the group at the table, slowly, like people alone,
-quite alone in an empty world. And no word had been spoken by either of
-them to the other, nor did either of them smile; and their hands did not
-touch. But as they reached the open floor where a few were dancing,
-Marguerite glanced quickly, and to Gerard’s fancy, with fear, at the fat
-woman behind the Bar; and then she spoke. There was no doubt what she
-was saying.
-
-“We had better dance for a few moments.”
-
-Paul took her in his arms, and they danced. Gerard de Montignac rose and
-went out of the Villa Iris. The picture of the meeting between those two
-was still vivid before his eyes. It was as though an order had been
-given and both without haste or question had perfectly obeyed it.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER VII
-
-
- The Pilgrimage
-
-When they reached the wide doorway they slipped out onto the balcony. It
-was cool here and quiet and there was no light except that which came
-from the Bar. They sat down at a table apart from the others and close
-to the garden. A waiter followed them out quickly and looked at
-Marguerite for an order.
-
-“May I have a citronade?” she asked of Paul, and he replied:
-
-“Let me order for you, will you? A little supper and some red wine. You
-are hungry.”
-
-Marguerite looked at him swiftly and dropped her eyes.
-
-“Yes, I am hungry,” she said, and a smile slowly trembled about her lips
-and then lit up her whole face. “I have never admitted it before.”
-
-The hollows of her shoulders, the unnaturally bright, large eyes burning
-in her thin face, and an air of lassitude she had, told a story of
-starvation clearly enough. But the visitors at the Villa Iris had not
-the compassion nor the interest to read it, and Marguerite, for her own
-reasons, had always been at pains that it should not be read at all.
-Now, however, she smiled, glad of Paul’s care, glad that he had seen at
-once with such keen, sure eyes one of the things which were amiss with
-her. Paul ordered some chicken and a salad.
-
-“But the waiter will be quick, won’t he?” she urged. “Madame is not very
-content if we are idle.”
-
-Paul laughed.
-
-“I’ll speak to her,” he said lightly. “I’ll tell her that she is not to
-worry you to-night.”
-
-He rose half out of his chair, meaning to buy an evening of rest for
-Marguerite Lambert from the old harridan behind the Bar. A bottle of
-champagne would no doubt be the price and there was no compulsion upon
-them to drink it. But he was not yet upon his feet when the girl reached
-out her hand and caught his sleeve.
-
-“No! Please!” she cried with a vehemence which quite startled him. “If
-she sends for me, I have got to go and you mustn’t say a word! Promise
-me!”
-
-She was in terror. Even now her eyes glanced affrightedly towards the
-open doorway, already expecting the appearance of her mistress. To the
-enigma which the girl’s presence at all in the Villa Iris proposed to
-Paul Ravenel, here was another added. Why should she be so terrified of
-that red-faced, bustling woman behind the Bar? After all, Marguerite
-Lambert—the only delicate and fresh and young girl who had danced there
-for a living—must mean custom to Madame Delagrange; must be therefore a
-personage to be considered, not a mere slave to be terrified and driven!
-Why, then—? How, then—? And his blood was hot at the mere thought of
-Marguerite’s terror and subjection.
-
-But he showed nothing of his anger, nothing of his perplexity in his
-face. He was at pains to reassure her. Let him not add to her fears and
-troubles.
-
-“I promise, Marguerite,” he said. “But let’s hope she doesn’t notice
-your absence.”
-
-Once more she smiled, her face a flame of tenderness.
-
-“You called me by my name.”
-
-He repeated it, dwelling upon its syllables.
-
-“It’s a beautiful name,” he said.
-
-“Perhaps, as you speak it,” she answered with a laugh. “But wait till
-you hear how harsh a word Madame can make of it.”
-
-The waiter brought the supper and laid it on the table between them.
-
-“Eat and drink first,” said Paul Ravenel, as he poured the red wine into
-her glass. “Then we will talk.”
-
-“You shall tell me your name before I begin.”
-
-“Paul—Paul Ravenel,” said he, and she repeated the name once with her
-big, serious eyes fixed upon him and a second time with a little grimace
-which wrinkled up her nose and gave to her whole face a flash of gaiety.
-She drew her chair to the table with an anticipation and relish which
-filled Paul with pity and tugged sharply at the strings of his heart.
-She ate her supper with enjoyment and daintiness.
-
-“A cigarette?” said Paul, offering her his case as soon as she had
-finished.
-
-“Thank you! Oh, but I was hungry!”
-
-She lit it and leaning back in her chair smoked whilst the waiter
-cleared the supper away and set the bottle and the glasses between them
-on the table. Then Marguerite leaned forward, her face between her
-hands, her elbows on the table.
-
-“Paul!” she said with a smile, as if the name was a fruit and delightful
-to taste.
-
-“I saw you,” she continued in a low voice, “when you first came into the
-room, you and your friend. I thought at once that you would come for me
-as you did. I called to you—yes, even then—oh, with all my
-strength—quietly—to myself. But I called so earnestly that I was
-afraid that I had cried my little prayer out loud. And then when I lost
-sight of you out here in the dark I was afraid. I didn’t see you come in
-again. I only knew suddenly that you were standing behind me.”
-
-Paul Ravenel watched her as she spoke, her great eyes shining, her face
-delicately white in that dim light. He had no doubt that she spoke in
-all frankness and simplicity the truth. Were they not once more alone,
-shut off by a wall of dreams from all the world? Paul leaned forward and
-took her hand.
-
-“I did not need to hear you call, Marguerite. I saw you, too, at once.
-My friend had heard of you, was looking for you. I saw you. I told him
-where you were”; and for a moment the girl’s face clouded over and the
-spell was broken.
-
-So far Paul Ravenel had spoken in French. Now he asked in English:
-
-“Why do they call you the American?”
-
-Marguerite Lambert stared at him with her eyes opened wide.
-
-“You, too?”
-
-“Yes. We are of the same race.”
-
-She looked at his uniform.
-
-“My mother was French, my father English. He took my mother’s
-nationality,” he said.
-
-Marguerite suddenly stretched both her hands across the table to him in
-a swift abandonment.
-
-“I am glad,” she said. “I come from Devonshire.”
-
-“I from Sussex.”
-
-“I from the county of broad moors and little valleys. You from—”; and
-some look upon his face checked her suddenly. “I have said something
-that hurts?” she asked remorsefully.
-
-“No,” answered Paul, and for a few moments they were silent. To both of
-them this revelation that they were of the same race was no longer so
-much of a surprise as a portent. They were like travellers not quite
-sure that their feet were on their due appointed road, who come upon a
-sign post and know that they have made no mistake. These two had no
-doubt that they were upon their road of destiny, that this swift,
-unexpected friendship would lead them together into new countries where
-their lives would be fulfilled.
-
-“Just to imagine if I had never come to the Villa Iris!” Paul exclaimed
-with a gasp of fear; so near he had been to not coming. But Marguerite’s
-eyelids drooped over her eyes and a look of doubt and sadness shadowed
-her face. Exaltations and hopes—here were bright things she dared
-hardly look upon, for if she once looked and took them to her heart, and
-found them false, what was merely grievous would no longer be endurable.
-
-“It is a long way from Devonshire to Casablanca,” cried Paul, and
-Marguerite smiled.
-
-“There’s a question very prettily put,” said she.
-
-Her story was ordinary enough in its essentials. “Some families go up,”
-she said simply. “Others seem doomed to go right down and bring every
-member of them down too. Most English villages have an example, I think.
-Once and not so long ago they were well off and lived in their farm
-house. Now every descendant is a labourer in a cottage, except one or
-two perhaps who have emigrated and fared no better abroad. The Lamberts
-were like that.”
-
-Marguerite had been born when the family were more than half way down
-the hill, although outwardly it still showed prosperous. Her father, a
-widower, spent more of his time upon race-courses than upon his farm and
-made it a point of pride to educate his children in the fashionable and
-expensive schools.
-
-“He was the most happy-go-lucky man that ever lived,” said Marguerite.
-“We knew nothing of the debts or the mortgages. He was all for being a
-gentleman and to be a gentleman in his definition was to spend money. He
-came down to breakfast one morning—there were the four of us at home,
-my brother, my two sisters and myself, and said cheerily, ‘Well, girls,
-all the money’s gone and the farm, too.’ Then he ate his breakfast
-cheerily, went upstairs and blew out his brains with his shot-gun, I
-suppose quite cheerily, too.”
-
-The catastrophe had happened a little more than two years before, when
-Marguerite was between seventeen and eighteen. Misfortune scatters a
-family as a wind autumn leaves. The brother, a small replica of his
-father, departed for the Argentine, cheerily confident of rebuilding by
-an opportune speculation the Lambert fortune; the eldest of the sisters
-married an unsuccessful farmer in the neighbourhood with whom she was in
-love; the second became a private secretary, lost her job within the
-week, and discovered her proper sphere of work, as a pretty waitress in
-a tea-shop. Marguerite herself secured an engagement in the chorus of a
-Musical Comedy company which was touring the provinces.
-
-“We were just ordinary girls,” Marguerite continued, “rather fecklessly
-brought up, fairly good-looking, decent manners, but nothing
-outstanding. There wasn’t any Edna May amongst us. We just did what we
-could, not very well.” Marguerite suddenly broke into a delicious laugh.
-“You heard me sing, didn’t you? Pathetic, wasn’t it? At least it would
-have been if I hadn’t felt the humour of it all the while. Well, we got
-stranded in Wigan—I am speaking of my Musical Comedy company. I pawned
-a few things and travelled to London. Three of the chorus girls and I
-clubbed together and got lodgings in Bloomsbury. But it was October when
-the most of the touring companies had already gone out and fresh
-engagements were only probable for the Christmas pantomime. One after
-another of my companions dropped away. Finally I was offered an opening
-in a concert party which was to tour the music halls in France. I was to
-dance between the songs.”
-
-“A concert party!” said Paul. “That sounds doubtful.”
-
-Marguerite nodded.
-
-“I was warned against it. The White Slave traffic! But I had to take my
-risk. And as it happened there wasn’t any roguery of that kind. Our
-concert party was genuine. Only it didn’t attract and at Avignon it came
-to an end. There seems to me to be a curse on families going down hill.
-Misfortunes centre upon them. It is as though a decent world wanted to
-hurry them right down and comfortably out of sight as soon as possible,
-so that it might no longer feel the shame of them.” Marguerite laughed,
-not so much in bitterness as in submission to a law. “Perhaps it is
-simply that we who belong to those families don’t will hard enough that
-things should go right.”
-
-Paul Ravenel looked sharply at his companion. He had instances within
-his own knowledge to bear out the shrewdness of her remark. His father
-and Colonel Vanderfelt! What difference was there between them, except
-that one willed hard enough to atone for a crime and the other did not?
-
-“Yes. I expect that’s the truth, if you are started down hill,” he said
-slowly. “And then what did you do?”
-
-There was a great fear in his heart as to what her answer might be. He
-was already making excuses—already arguing why should there be one law
-for the man and another for the woman—and rebelling against the
-argument. Marguerite did not resolve his fears in her account of her
-miserable little Odyssey; nor, on the other hand, did she increase them.
-
-“I had enough money to take me to Marseilles. . . . I danced at a café
-there for a little while. I was told that if I crossed the Mediterranean
-to Oran . . . I managed to do that and I danced at Oran for a little
-while. Then I came on to Casablanca,” and she caught her breath and
-clasped her hands convulsively under the sting of some ever-present
-terror. “And I am afraid,” she whispered.
-
-“Of what?” asked Paul.
-
-“That I shall not stay here long, either,” she cried in a dreadful note
-of despair, with her great eyes suddenly full of tears. “Then what shall
-I do?”
-
-Even as she spoke that question her face changed. Some one was coming
-out from the Bar through the doorway. A smile of convention upon her
-lips masked her misery.
-
-“I shall have to go now, Paul,” she said in a low voice, caressing his
-name. “I am sorry. And you will let me go, as you promised?”
-
-“Yes,” said Paul regretfully.
-
-“And you will come here again, some evening, soon, Paul!” she whispered
-with a wistful little smile upon her lips.
-
-“I shall wait now.”
-
-The smile disappeared at once.
-
-“No. I must dance now. I told you Madame did not like to see me idle. I
-shall not be able to sit with you again this evening, and we do not
-close until two or three in the morning, if there is any one to stay. So
-to-morrow, perhaps, Paul?”
-
-“To-morrow, Marguerite.”
-
-She stood up as a man approached the table. He was a thick-set, stoutish
-man with a heavy black moustache and a yellowish, shiny face. He was one
-of those who had been seated at the table in the saloon with Marguerite
-when Ravenel and Gerard de Montignac had entered the room. He came up
-with a frown upon his face and spoke surlily in French, with a harsh,
-metallic accent.
-
-“We wait a long time for you.”
-
-Marguerite Lambert made no rejoinder. “You wish me to dance with you,”
-she said. “I am very happy,” and with a smile of convention upon her
-lips she said good-night carelessly to Paul Ravenel. But the appeal and
-softness of her eyes took the convention out of her smile and the
-carelessness from her farewell.
-
-Paul, left alone at the table, watched her through the doorway as she
-danced. Her little plain pink frock was as neat as attention could make
-it, her shoes and stockings were spotless, her hair, brown with a
-flicker of copper, parted at the side and with a curiously attractive
-little peak in the centre of her forehead, was waved smoothly about her
-small head. His hands had been tingling to stroke it, to feel its silk
-and warmth rippling beneath his fingers, whilst they had been sitting
-together on the balcony. There was a slovenliness in the aspect of the
-other women. Marguerite was orderly as though even amidst the squalor of
-her environment she kept on respecting herself. She wore no ornaments at
-all. She was fairly tall, with slim legs and beautiful hands and feet.
-As he watched her Paul fell into a cold and bitter rage against the
-oily-mustachioed creature with whom she danced.
-
-“Gerard was right,” he said to himself. “We go out and fight, we get
-ourselves killed and mutilated, so that such fellows may make money and
-keep it up all night in the Bars. The Profiteers! We who are about to
-die salute you!”
-
-Thus he apostrophised the man who had taken Marguerite Lambert away from
-him, raging furiously. The old prudent Paul Ravenel counting his steps
-and avoiding emotions, had for the moment quite disappeared. He was a
-boy of nineteen, ardent and unreasonable, and a little ridiculous in the
-magniloquence of his thoughts. The only comfort he drew was from an
-aloofness in Marguerite of which she had shown nothing whilst she sat
-with him, but which was now very evident. She did not speak whilst she
-danced, her eyelids were lowered, her face had lost all its expression.
-Paul had a fancy that she had just left her body to revolve and glide
-delicately in the dance, whilst her spirit had withdrawn itself into
-some untarnished home of its own. The piano suddenly was dumb; the
-dancers stopped: Marguerite and her partner were standing face to face
-in front of the doorway. Paul had promised not to interfere. Very well
-then, he would go. He rose abruptly to his feet, his eyes fixed upon the
-couple; and at once, though Marguerite never looked his way, she moved
-sharply. It was a quick little start, hardly perceptible. Paul felt a
-wave of joy sweep over him. She was conscious of him, as he was
-conscious of her, so that if he moved abruptly she at a distance was
-startled. He turned with a smile upon his lips, but after all he did not
-go, as he had intended to do. For Henriette came out of the Bar towards
-him.
-
-“Won’t you stay for a minute,” she said, “and give me something to
-drink! I am dying of thirst!”
-
-“Of course,” he said, and he called to the waiter. He had a great
-goodwill towards all women that night, but above all to the women of the
-Villa Iris.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER VIII
-
-
- Henriette Explains
-
-Paul was rewarded out of all measure for his courtesy. For as Henriette
-sat and drank her whiskey and soda, she talked.
-
-“You were civil to me when your friend would have sent me contemptuously
-away,” she said. “And when I told you that I had dined at the Café de
-Paris only three weeks ago, and your friend laughed, you did not. You
-pretended that you believed it. That was polite of you. For we both knew
-that never once in all my life have I dined at the Café de Paris or any
-such swell restaurant in Paris. And it was kind of you. It made me ready
-to fancy that I had dined there and that does one a little good, eh? One
-feels better in one’s self. So I will be kind in my turn. You are
-interested in that little one,” and she jerked her head towards the
-table in the Bar, where Marguerite had rejoined the noisy group. “Yes,
-she has chic, and she is pretty on her feet, and she has a personality,
-but—” Paul Ravenel leaned forward, his face hardening.
-
-“Mademoiselle, I do not want to hear.”
-
-“Oh, I am not going to crab her,” replied Henriette, and her petulant
-temper flamed up. “You think, I suppose, that women cannot admire a girl
-who is younger and prettier than themselves and cannot like her. That is
-foolish. I tell you we all like Marguerite Lambert. And I speak to you
-for your good and hers. But, of course, if you do not care to hear me—”
-
-“I beg your pardon, Mademoiselle,” said Paul. “I will listen to you very
-willingly.”
-
-Henriette’s passions were no more than bubbles upon the surface of her
-good-humour. They burst very quickly and left no traces. The flush faded
-from her throat and forehead and no doubt from the painted cheeks as
-well, though that could not be discovered by mortal eye.
-
-“Listen,” she said. “Your friend asked me what Marguerite Lambert was
-doing at the Villa Iris, and I would not answer him. Why should I? It
-was clear what he meant, wasn’t it? Why was she, who might really have
-dined at the Café de Paris three weeks ago, already here at Casablanca,
-so near to the end of things?” Henriette’s face grew for a moment
-haggard with terror, as she formulated the problem. The last stage but
-one of the dreadful pilgrimage of her class! She herself was making that
-journey, and what lay beyond and so hideously close, loomed up when she
-thought of it, and appalled her.
-
-Paul interrupted her with a word of solace.
-
-“You are making too much of his question.”
-
-But Henriette would have none of his consolation.
-
-“No, that is what he meant and what you meant, too?”
-
-“I said nothing.”
-
-“But the question was in your face. The question and a great deal of
-trouble. Why was Marguerite Lambert already at Casablanca?”
-
-Paul did not contradict her again. She would not believe him if he did
-and he might lose the answer to the question.
-
-“You made it still more difficult to understand,” he said frankly. There
-was no good to be gained by beating about the bush with this woman who
-was disposed to help him. “For though you didn’t answer our question you
-added to it another perplexity. You said that she wouldn’t remain here
-long.”
-
-Henriette nodded.
-
-“That is right. The answer to both questions is the same. She drifted
-here so soon, and she will stay for so short a time, because she waits
-for the grand passion. Yes, the little fool!” but it was not in scorn
-that she styled Marguerite a little fool, but with a half-contemptuous
-tenderness, and perhaps a tiny spite of envy.
-
-“The grand passion!” Paul repeated, wondering what in the world his
-companion meant.
-
-“Yes. Oh, she is quite frank with the rest of us. We talk, you know,
-when we are dressing, and after the café is closed, when we are changing
-back to our street clothes. Until the grand passion comes, nothing,
-nothing, nothing to any man. Look, they are dancing again, she and
-Petras Tetarnis, the Greek.”
-
-So he was a Greek, the man with the yellow-buttoned boots and the heavy
-black moustache! Henriette watched them with the eye of a professional.
-
-“Yes, she dances prettily, that little one. But would you like a girl to
-dance with you just in that way—so unconcerned, so half-asleep, so
-utterly indifferent to you? And if you wanted her as Petras Tetarnis
-does, furiously, wouldn’t you be mad when she swam in your arms so
-lightly, with so correct a grace and not one look or smile or thought
-for you? So that if you spoke to her, she had to recall her thoughts
-from the end of the world before she could answer you? You would be wild
-with rage, eh? You would want to take that slim little white throat
-between your two big hands and squeeze and squeeze until some attention
-was paid to you, if it was only the attention of agony and fear. Am I
-not right?”
-
-Paul’s face turned white. He leaned across the table and cried in a low,
-fierce voice:
-
-“Was that what you meant, Henriette, when you said that she would not be
-here long? That the Greek would murder her?”
-
-Henriette burst into a laugh.
-
-“Oh, no, no, no, my friend. Petras Tetarnis is not the man to run such
-perils. He has made much money, since the French have come to
-Casablanca. He is a prudent one. It would have to be a very dark night
-and a very empty street before Tetarnis risked his beautiful money and
-all the enjoyment he gets from it; and even then some one else would
-have to do the work. But he will use other ways.”
-
-“What kind of ways?” asked Paul.
-
-Henriette shrugged her shoulders.
-
-“He is always here. He is rich. Madame Delagrange makes much of him.
-Very likely he has lent her money, and if so, he will want his
-interest.”
-
-“I see.”
-
-Paul leaned back in his chair and Henriette looked at him curiously.
-
-“You were much moved, my friend, when I spoke of the big, coarse hands
-gripping that little throat.”
-
-“Well, any man would be, and whoever the woman,” he protested, and
-Henriette smiled her disbelief.
-
-“Would you have been so moved if it had been my throat which you thought
-to be in danger?” she asked shrewdly. “No! Let us be frank. You would
-have said, ‘It is Henriette’s business to look after herself. She is old
-enough, anyway’; and you would have forgotten me the next moment.” She
-turned her eyes again upon Marguerite Lambert.
-
-“The grand passion. Oh, la, la, la! Until it comes nothing, oh, but
-nothing at all for any one—not half a heart beat! But when it does
-come, everything, at once, with both hands. The folly!”
-
-“The glorious imprudence!” replied Paul.
-
-Henriette broke into a harsh laugh as she heard the softly spoken words
-and saw the light in Paul Ravenel’s eyes. It was the light of a great
-relief rather than of hope. The fear which had plagued him all through
-this evening had gone now. There was no need for the excuses. He had not
-to argue a defence for Marguerite Lambert.
-
-“The glorious imprudence,” Henriette repeated with a sneer. “Yes, so you
-say—you, the man who has everything to gain from the glorious
-imprudence and when he is tired of it, can drop it in the road behind
-him. But I tell you those are not good ideas for a girl who dances for
-her living, in the cafés. There is the patron behind the patron like
-Petras Tetarnis, who will make trouble if he doesn’t get what he wants,
-for there are rich patrons whom the patron does not wish to drive away.
-Or there are jealousies which may mean fighting and the police. No, my
-fine gentleman! Girls who are difficult, the Villa Irises are no place
-for them. That is why Marguerite Lambert at twenty is dancing in
-Casablanca and will not dance there long.”
-
-“But if the great passion comes?” cried Paul.
-
-“Then it must come quick! Believe me, very quick. Petras Tetarnis is
-growing troublesome. And if it comes! Shall I tell you what will happen?
-She will blow her brains out! Oh, you may start in your chair. But look
-at her where she sits! There is the mark of fate already upon her face.
-It is written, as they say in this country.”
-
-So to Henriette as to Gerard de Montignac and to Paul Ravenel, that
-indefinable look of destiny in Marguerite was evident. Paul asked
-himself whether it was not simply the outward and visible sign of that
-passionate self-respect which had kept her untarnished against the rush
-and play of the great passion when it came. Or was the future really
-written there—a history of great joys perhaps and great sorrows
-certainly to be?
-
-“So Marguerite lives on seven francs a day and—”
-
-She got no further. Paul interrupted her with an exclamation of horror.
-
-“Seven francs!”
-
-“Yes. That is what our generous Madame Delagrange pays us each night and
-we provide our own dancing kit out of it. Oh, the little fool starves.
-That is certain—all the more certain because she will not let any of
-the clients here give her food.”
-
-“But she let me,” cried Paul with a smile of pride.
-
-“Yes, she let you to-night. But the others, never, never, lest—you
-understand? Lest they should make a claim.”
-
-“Out of so small a service?” asked Paul incredulously.
-
-Henriette smiled.
-
-“You have been lucky in your world,” she said. “The clients of the Villa
-Iris are not so generous. They will make a claim out of anything, as, by
-the way, most men will, if the claim may get them what they want. So
-that little one, since she will give herself to none of them, is wise to
-starve. You are the only one from whom she has taken food. It is
-curious, eh? It is because of that and because you treat me like a human
-being that I, Henriette, who like the little fool, ramble on so
-seriously to you to-night.”
-
-The plastered face softened into tenderness and the bird-like eyes shone
-and filled suddenly with tears.
-
-“It is kind of you,” said Paul. If any one had said to him a couple of
-hours before that he would have felt himself intensely privileged
-because a little dancing girl of the Villa Iris had taken supper from
-him and from him alone, he would have laughed his informant to scorn.
-But it was so. Paul was radiant with pride. He saw himself as a very
-fine fellow, a much finer fellow than he had ever believed himself to
-be. The loneliness of his boyhood, a sudden blow crushing his pride and
-his dreams in the dust, and years thereafter informed with a strong
-purpose to regain his name and his place in his own country, had
-combined to defer but had not slain his youth. It was back with him now,
-all the more ardent and dangerous from the restraint which had held it
-in check. Paul Ravenel was a boy of nineteen on this evening in the fire
-of his passion, but with the will and the experience of his own years;
-and he was old enough to hide any plans which he might be forming and to
-seek all the knowledge he could get from Henriette.
-
-“Why should she blow out her brains, as you say?” he asked, offering to
-Henriette a cigarette.
-
-“Because that is what she will do,” replied Henriette as she lighted her
-cigarette. “I know my world. Listen! My father kept a little
-eating-house at Rouen, where I saw many types of men. He went bankrupt.
-I went to dance in Paris. Oh, I was nothing out of the way. I danced in
-a quadrille at the Casino de Paris for a little time, then at the Bal
-Tabarin. I went to Madrid and Barcelona where I danced at the Lion d’Or,
-the restaurant which has no doors, for it is open night and day. And in
-the end I came here. Well, I tell you this. Fine dreams are for rich
-people. For us, if we are wise, we bury them out of sight the moment
-they are born. We will not think of them. We will not allow them. The
-rich have much which makes disappointment bearable. For us—we blow our
-brains out.”
-
-Whilst she spoke she kept darting little swift glances at her companion,
-as though she was practising on him some trivial diplomacy. She
-believed, in truth, every word she said. But since her philosophy was
-not Marguerite’s, if this man could give the girl a year or two of
-happiness, it would be something, at all events. But Paul sat and
-listened carelessly and answered not at all.
-
-“See!” she cried. “When you spin the racquet for the choice of courts at
-the tennis, it is ‘rough’ or ‘smooth,’ eh? Well, it is always rough with
-us and we lose the choice.”
-
-She laughed at her trifle of a joke, and again her eyes glanced at Paul.
-But the clearer his purpose became to himself, the more impassive grew
-his face. Long ago he had learnt that lesson of defence. Henriette rose.
-She, at all events, was openly disappointed.
-
-“So! I have talked to you long enough,” she said. The piano began once
-more its dreadful cacophany. “Ah, Marguerite is dancing with another of
-that band. He does not matter. You yourself will dance with her again
-to-night, isn’t it so?”
-
-Paul shook his head.
-
-“No,” and as he saw Henriette’s face cloud over, he added, “she herself
-bade me keep away.”
-
-The cloud passed at once. That was good news. There was an understanding
-between them, then, already. Henriette beamed.
-
-“I understand that,” she said in a whisper, “and I hope you understand
-it, too. Madame Delagrange is not very content that we dance much with
-the officers. She says they have no money.”
-
-Paul laughed. He would have loved to have seen Gerard de Montignac’s
-face if that remark had been made before him and to have heard his
-reply.
-
-“Not so much, certainly, as those gentlemen over there whom we have made
-rich. But enough, Mademoiselle Henriette, to thank a good friend.”
-
-For a moment Henriette was puzzled. Then she looked down. Beside her
-empty glass lay a folded slip of paper. The broad band of purple told
-her the amount of the bank note. She leaned forward and spoke in a
-whisper.
-
-“A thousand francs! It is a fortune to me! You understand that? I will
-take it, yes, with a thousand thanks, but it was not to get your money
-that I spoke to you.”
-
-“I never thought it. If I had thought it, your surprise would have
-proved me wrong.”
-
-Henriette gathered the note in the palm of her hand and making a
-movement as if to take her handkerchief, slipped it secretly into her
-bosom. Another thought came to her.
-
-“You are really rich then! You could make a little home, a little safe
-home, where there would be no clients or patrons or starving. Oh, that
-would be different!” she said in a wondering voice. “I take back what I
-said about the end her grand passion would lead her to.” Henriette
-glanced again towards Marguerite. “She is chic, eh? She has style, the
-little one? An air of good breeding. Whence does it come? How is it that
-she has kept it?” Paul could have answered that question had he wished
-to. She had kept it because of her immense pride and self-respect, she
-had probably got it to keep, from the same source. Henriette looked from
-the girl dancing to the officer at the table.
-
-“A little home, eh. If it could be!” she pleaded. Paul gazed at her with
-a smile upon his lips and in his eyes, but he did not answer her, and
-she flung away.
-
-“Oh, you are a box with the lid shut! Good-night, Monsieur!”
-
-“Good-night, Mademoiselle Henriette.”
-
-A few moments later Paul Ravenel followed Henriette into the Bar. He
-stopped before the counter where Madame Delagrange was vigorously wiping
-the wet rings made by the bottoms of the glasses from the light polished
-wood. She had always the duster in her hand, except when she was
-measuring out her drinks into the glasses, and very often then, and
-generally was at work with it.
-
-“This is quite Maxim’s, Madam,” he said.
-
-The flattery had little effect. Madame barely paused in her polishing
-and smiled sourly.
-
-“In that case I must see about raising my prices, Monsieur,” said she.
-No, clearly she did not like the officers. Paul went on to the door.
-Marguerite, seated with the Levantines, never looked at him, but just as
-he was going out she raised her glass to her lips with a little nod of
-her head, as though she drank a health to some absent friend, and her
-slow smile dawned and trembled on her lips.
-
-But the night was not yet over for Paul Ravenel. As he reached his house
-he heard his name called aloud and turning about saw his friend Gerard
-de Montignac hurrying towards him.
-
-“There is news at last,” he said.
-
-The town had been full of rumours for many days. Certain things were
-known. It was certain, for instance that the tribes of the Beni-M’Tir,
-the Ait-Youssi and the Gerouan had actually pitched their tents on the
-plain of Fez and in full revolt against Mulai Hafid the Sultan, were
-pressing the city close. It was known too that a flying column purposely
-small in order to set at rest the distrust of the German Press and the
-opposition of politicians in Paris, had been assembled at Kenitra for a
-swift march to relieve the capital. This had been delayed by bad weather
-which had turned the flat country beyond Kenitra into a marsh.
-
-But there had been for days a continual disembarkation of fresh troops
-at Casablanca which pointed to operations on a wider scale. On this
-night the truth was out.
-
-“Come into the house and let me hear, Gerard,” said Paul, and opening
-his door he switched on the electric lights and led Gerard into a room.
-
-“Meknes has risen too. A new Sultan, Mulai Zine, the brother of Mulai
-Hafid has been proclaimed Sultan there. It is no longer to be a flying
-column which will camp for a few days under the walls of Fez and return.
-It is to be a great expedition. The whole camp at Ain-Bourdja is ringing
-with it to-night. I ran down to tell you.”
-
-“That was good of you, Gerard,” said Paul.
-
-There was a great contrast visible now between the two officers, the one
-excited and eager, the other playing with the switch of the standard
-lamp upon his table, and lost in thought.
-
-“I hear that my squadron is to go up in the first column under Colonel
-Brulard. You, of course, with your battalion will be wanted too.”
-
-“I suppose so,” replied Paul slowly. “I should have liked to have
-finished this report before I go.”
-
-“The report can wait,” cried Gerard, “France can’t.”
-
-The two friends talked late into the night. Paul gradually threw off the
-reticence with which he had at first answered De Montignac. They fell to
-debating the strength of the different columns, the line of march,
-whether through the forest of Zemmour or over the plain of the Sebou and
-by the Col of Segota, and who would command.
-
-“Brulard for the Advance Force,” said Gerard, “the General himself will
-follow.”
-
-“And Gouraud?” asked Paul.
-
-“Yes, yes, Gouraud. He couldn’t be left behind. It is said that he will
-have the supply column and follow a day or two behind Brulard.”
-
-“We shall know more about it to-morrow,” said Paul, and Gerard looked at
-his watch.
-
-“Do you know the time?” he said springing to his feet. “If we were in
-France now, we should see daylight.” He was in an emotional mood. He
-clapped his friend upon the shoulder. “We shall see one another again,
-my old one, before I start, no doubt. But if we don’t, and anything
-happens to either of us, well, it is good luck to the survivor.”
-
-He shook hands with Paul and Paul let him out of the house.
-
-Paul went back to the room. The eagerness with which he had discussed
-the technical details of the expedition fell from him as soon as he was
-alone. He sat down at his table and remained there until dawn at last
-did break over the town. But he was not at work upon his report. He had
-pushed it from him and sat with his face between the palms of his hands.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER IX
-
-
- Marguerite Lambert
-
-The rumours of the camp were proved true the next morning and the
-preparations for provisioning and concentrating so large a force were
-swiftly pushed forward. Gerard de Montignac was to march with his
-squadron in a week’s time by Rabat and Saller to Kenitra. Paul was to
-rejoin his battalion a few days later. Half of that battalion, Paul’s
-company included, was to form part of the escort of Colonel Gouraud’s
-huge supply column, which with its hundreds of camels was beginning to
-assemble at Meheydia at the mouth of the Sebou.
-
-Paul was now a full Captain in command of that company of the
-Tirailleurs which he had led during the last engagements of the Chaiouïa
-campaign, and marked out by his superiors as an officer likely to reach
-the high ranks and responsibilities. He had still a few days of his
-leave and he spent the greater part of them in the careful revision of
-his report. Gerard de Montignac, on his side was engaged in the
-supervision of the equipment of his squadron and was busy from morning
-until night. Two or three times during the course of the week, he went
-down between nine and ten at night to the Villa Iris, and sat or danced
-for half an hour with Marguerite Lambert. But he never saw Paul Ravenel
-there and through the week the two friends did not meet except for a
-moment or two in the thronged streets.
-
-“Le grand serieux!” said Gerard, speaking of Paul to Marguerite Lambert
-with an affectionate mockery. “He will be a General when I am an old
-Major dyeing my moustache to make myself look young. But meanwhile,
-whilst we are both Captains, I should like to see more of him than I do.
-For, after all, we go out with our men—and one never knows who will
-come back.”
-
-Marguerite’s face lost its colour at his words and she drew in her
-breath sharply. “Oh, it is our business of course,” he continued, taking
-her sympathy to himself. “Do you know, Marguerite, that for a second, I
-though you had stirred that thick soup in Paul’s veins which he calls
-his blood? But no, he never comes here.”
-
-Marguerite laughed hurriedly, and asked at random, “You have seen him
-to-day?”
-
-“Yes. He was coming out of a house close to the port with the agent who
-looks after his property, a little Italian. Paul was talking very
-earnestly and did not notice me. He has a good deal of property in
-Casablanca and was making his arrangements no doubt for a long absence.”
-
-Marguerite looked down at the table, tracing a pattern upon its surface
-with her finger. When she spoke again her voice broke upon her words and
-her lips quivered.
-
-“I shall lose all my friends this week,” she said.
-
-“Only us two,” said Gerard, consoling her.
-
-“That’s what I mean,” she returned with a little smile, and Gerard de
-Montignac leaned forward.
-
-“Marguerite, I don’t go for a couple of days,” he said, lowering his
-voice to an eager whisper. “Let us make the best of them! Let me have
-the memory of two good days and nights to carry away with me, will you?
-Why not? My work is done. I could start off with my troops at six
-o’clock to-morrow instead of at six o’clock on the third morning. Give
-me the next two days.”
-
-Marguerite shook her head.
-
-“No, my friend.”
-
-Gerard de Montignac knew nothing of that conversation which Henriette
-had held with Paul Ravenel on this spot a few nights before. He could
-but believe that Marguerite Lambert somehow found that dreadful gang of
-nondescripts with whom she foregathered more to her taste than he or his
-friend. She shone like a flower in this squalid haunt, a tired and
-drooping flower. It was extraordinary that she could endure this company
-for a moment, to say nothing of their embraces. But women, even the most
-delicate amongst them, would blindfold their eyes and stop their ears,
-and cease to appreciate both the look of their friends and the esteem in
-which they are held, if their interest prompted them. Gerard de
-Montignac rose angrily from his chair.
-
-“Of course poor devils of officers like myself can’t hope to compete
-with these rich Dagoes,” he said brutally. “We must console ourselves
-with reflecting that our efforts and dangers have made them rich.”
-
-Marguerite Lambert flushed scarlet at the insult, and then lowered her
-head.
-
-“I do not wish to speak to you again,” she said in a distinct low voice,
-and Gerard de Montignac stalked out of the Villa Iris.
-
-He was troubled by his recollection of the little scene during the next
-two days; sometimes falling into a remorse, and sometimes repeating his
-own words with bravado, and arguing that this was the proper way to
-speak; and always ending with a flood of heart-felt curses.
-
-“Damn all Dagoes and Levantines! There ought to be a special code for
-them. They ought to be made to take off their shoes when they meet us in
-the street. Those old Moors knew something! I’ll never see that girl
-again as long as I live. Luckily she’ll be gone by the time I come back
-to Casablanca. Henriette said she wouldn’t dance at the Villa Iris for
-long. No, I won’t see her again.”
-
-He kept carefully away from the neighbourhood of the Villa for
-thirty-six hours. Then a post came in and was delivered throughout the
-camp at eight o’clock in the evening. Amongst the letters which Gerard
-de Montignac received was one written in English by a Colonel Vanderfelt
-in Sussex praying for news of Paul Ravenel. Gerard had enough English to
-perceive how much anxiety and affection had gone to the composition of
-that letter.
-
-“It ought to be answered at once,” he said. “Paul must answer it.”
-
-Gerard looked at his watch. It was close upon nine now, and he was to
-parade at six in the morning. He must hand over that letter to Paul
-to-night. He could have sent it by the post very well, or he could have
-written an answer to Colonel Vanderfelt himself. But he took up his cap
-instead and walked down from Ain-Bourdja towards the town. Very likely
-he had some unacknowledged purpose at the back of his mind. For he found
-himself presently standing before the Villa Iris, though that house lay
-well out of the road between the camp and Paul Ravenel’s house by the
-seaward wall.
-
-“Well, since I am here,” he said, as though he had come to this spot
-quite by accident, “I may as well go in and make my peace with
-Marguerite Lambert. For all I know I may be quitting the world
-altogether very shortly, and why should I leave unnecessary enemies to
-hate my memory.”
-
-Thus he explained quite satisfactorily to himself his reason for
-entering and looking about him for Marguerite. But she was nowhere to be
-seen—no, not even amongst the Dagoes and the Levantines. She must be
-outside in the cool of the balcony beneath the roof of vines. But a
-glance there showed him that he was wrong. There was nothing for it but
-to approach the virago behind the Bar, who hotter and redder than ever
-on this night in early May, was polishing away at her counter and
-serving out the drinks.
-
-Gerard ordered one and taking it from her hand, said carelessly:
-
-“Mademoiselle Marguerite is not here to-night?”
-
-Madame Delagrange made a vicious dab with her duster and cried in an
-exasperation:
-
-“Look, Monsieur! When she is here I have nothing but complaints. That
-little Marguerite! She holds her nose in the air as if we smelled. She
-looks at us as if we were animals at a circus—and she has nothing to be
-conceited about with her thin shoulders and tired face. Now she is gone,
-it is all the time—‘What have you done with our little Marguerite?’
-Well, I have done nothing.” She turned to another customer. “For you,
-Monsieur? A bottle of champagne? Abdullah shall bring it to you.”
-
-Abdullah in his Turkish breeches was handed the dreadful decoction and
-Gerard de Montignac tried again:
-
-“She has left the Villa Iris altogether?”
-
-“Yes, yes, yes. She has gone, that Miss Ni’Touche!”
-
-“And where has she gone?”
-
-The harridan behind the Bar flung up her hands.
-
-“Saperlipoppette, how should I know, I ask you? I beg you, Monsieur, to
-allow me to serve my clients who do not think that because they have
-bought a whiskey-soda, they have become proprietors for the night of the
-Villa Iris.”
-
-With an indignant nod she turned to some other customers. Gerard
-wandered out into the verandah, where he sat down rather heavily. He was
-more troubled than he would have thought possible. After all the
-disappearance of a little dancing girl from a Bar in a coast town of
-Morocco!—what was there to make a fuss about in that? That is the way
-of little dancing girls. They dance and they disappear, a question or
-two from you and me and the next man are as it were the ripples upon the
-pond, and then the surface is still once more.
-
-But Gerard de Montignac could not dismiss Marguerite Lambert with this
-easy philosophy. He remembered her too clearly, her slim grace, the
-promise of real beauty if only she had food enough, her anger with him
-two evenings ago, and above all the queer look of fatality set upon her
-like a seal. Marguerite Lambert gone! How and whither? One or two
-dreadful sentences spoken a fortnight ago in the mess by the Commandant
-Marnier were written in letters of flame upon his memory. Casablanca was
-the last halting place but one in the ghastly pilgrimage of these poor
-creatures. The last of all—he shuddered to think of it. To picture
-Marguerite Lambert amongst its squalors was a sacrilege. Yet she had
-gone—she had moved on! There was the appalling fact.
-
-He saw Henriette strolling a little way off between the tables. He
-beckoned eagerly to her. She looked at him doubtfully, then with a
-mutinous air and a toss of the head she strolled towards him.
-
-“You want to speak to me? You were not very polite the last time.”
-
-“I will atone for my discourtesy to-night, Mademoiselle Henriette.”
-
-Henriette was induced to take a chair and order a drink.
-
-Gerard believed that he must practise some diplomacy with this fiery
-creature if he was to get the truth from her, but as a fact he had not
-to put one question. For Henriette had hardly begun to sip her whiskey
-and soda before she said:
-
-“The little Marguerite! She has been sent away. I am sorry. I told
-you—didn’t I?—that she wouldn’t stay here long.”
-
-“Sent away?”
-
-Henriette nodded.
-
-“By Madame?”
-
-“Last night?”
-
-“Yes. After all the guests had gone. But what a scene! Oh, la, la, la! I
-was frightened I can tell you. So were we all. We hid in the little room
-there off the Bar, where we dress, and listened through the crack of the
-door. But a scene! It was terrible.”
-
-“Tell me!” said Gerard.
-
-Henriette twitched her chair into the table with an actual excitement.
-She was really and deeply distressed for Marguerite. But for the moment
-her distress was forgotten. The joy of the story teller had descended
-upon her.
-
-“It was the Greek over there, Petras Tetarnis,” she began. “He was mad
-for Marguerite and she wouldn’t have anything to do with him. So he got
-her turned away. See how drunk he is to-night. How proud of his fine
-revenge on a little girl who asked for nothing more than permission to
-earn her seven francs a night in peace.”
-
-“She wouldn’t have anything to say to him!” Gerard protested. “Why, she
-was always at that table where he sits.”
-
-“Yes. Because he is the real owner of the Villa Iris. Madame is no more
-than his servant. So Marguerite, since she wished to stay here, must be
-friendly to him. But Petras was not content with friendliness and last
-night when your friend came in—”
-
-“My friend,” interrupted Gerard de Montignac.
-
-“Yes, the one with the yellow hair and the long legs and the face that
-tells you nothing at all.”
-
-“Paul! He was here last night!”
-
-“Yes. Oh, he has come here more than once during the last week, but very
-late and for a few minutes. He goes straight to that table and takes
-Marguerite away, as if he were the master; and somehow they all sit dumb
-as if they were the lackeys. Imagine it, Monsieur! All of them very
-noisy and boisterous and then—a sudden silence and the yellow-headed
-Captain walking away with Marguerite Lambert as if they did not exist.
-It used to make the rest of us laugh, but they—they were furious with
-humiliation and when, a little time afterwards, the Captain had
-gone—oh, how bold they were! They would pull his nose for him the next
-time, they would teach him how gentlemen behave—oh, yes, yes! But it
-was always the next time that these fine lessons would be given.”
-
-Gerard de Montignac nodded his head.
-
-“I know the breed.”
-
-Henriette described how Paul Ravenel had entered the Bar a little after
-midnight. He had taken Marguerite Lambert away, danced a round or two,
-and given her some supper; and whilst she ate, Petras Tetarnis
-emboldened by drink and the encouragement of his friends had left his
-table and begun to prowl backwards and forwards behind Paul Ravenel’s
-back, nodding and winking at his associates and muttering to himself.
-Paul had taken no notice, but Marguerite had stopped eating and sat in
-terror watching him over Paul’s shoulder like a bird fascinated by a
-snake. Tetarnis drew nearer and nearer with each turn, Marguerite sat
-twisting her hands and imploring Paul to go away and leave her. She was
-speaking in English and in a whisper so that Henriette could not repeat
-the words. But it was easy enough to translate them. “It is for my
-sake,” she was saying. “It is for my sake.”
-
-But Paul would not listen; and with a little helpless flutter of her
-frail hands Marguerite sank back in her chair. There would be a
-disturbance, very possibly a fight. Once more she was to be the Helen of
-a squalid Iliad and the result would be what it always had been. She
-would move on—and this time there was no whither she could move. She
-had come to the end.
-
-“I could read the despair in her eyes, in the utter abandonment of her
-body,” said Henriette, but there had been much at that moment in
-Marguerite Lambert’s thoughts which Henriette could not read at all. The
-passionate dream of her life was dying, as she sat there. She had come
-to the end. It would have no chance of fulfilment now. Where to-morrow,
-could she find the great love waiting for her? It had made her life
-possible, it had given her strength to endure the squalor of her lodging
-and her companions, and the loss of all that daintiness and order which
-mean so much to women. It had given her wit to defend herself against
-the approaches of her courtiers, and the self-respect which kept her
-with the manners of one of gentlest birth. Nearer and nearer drew Petras
-Tetarnis until he bumped against Paul’s chair, and then very quickly and
-quietly Paul rose to his feet.
-
-A stifled prayer burst from Marguerite’s trembling lips. Then she
-covered her face with her hands and closed her ears with her thumbs. But
-there was no disturbance at all.
-
-“The Captain Paul took Petras by the elbow and looking down upon him
-talked to him as one talks to a child. I could hear what he said. ‘You
-are terrifying this lady. You must not behave like this in public
-places. You must go back to your place and sit very quietly or you must
-go home.’ And Petras went. Yes, without a word, as if he had been
-whipped he went back to his chair amongst his friends. But, I tell you,
-Monsieur, his eyes had all hell in them! And after a little, very
-cautiously, as if he was afraid lest the Captain Paul should notice him
-he crept to the counter and talked very earnestly with Madame.”
-
-“What was he saying?” asked Gerard de Montignac.
-
-“I could not hear at all. I dared not even try to listen. I went to the
-table where Marguerite and her friend were sitting. Marguerite was
-imploring him to go away. I agreed with her. The storm was over. It was
-better for Marguerite’s sake that he should go away quietly now without
-any fuss.”
-
-“And he went?” asked Gerard.
-
-“Not at first,” returned Henrietta. “No, he was stubborn. He was
-thinking of his pride, as men do, not of the poor women who suffer by
-it. But at last—it seemed that some idea came into his head, some
-thought which made him smile—he consented. He paid his bill and walked,
-neither quickly nor slowly through the Bar and out by the passage into
-the street. And so the people settled down, and the trouble seemed at an
-end.”
-
-And so until the closing of the Bar it was. As a rule the visitors had
-all gone by two o’clock in the morning; and this particular night was no
-exception. It was the practice as soon as the room was empty for Madame
-Delagrange to pay the girls their seven francs apiece at the counter.
-Then they crossed into the little dressing room, changed their clothes
-and went out into the lane by the street door, which was locked behind
-them. On this night, however, Madame Delagrange kept Marguerite Lambert
-to the last.
-
-“You others can run away and get off your clothes. I want to have a
-little talk by myself with this delicate Miss Touch-me-not,” she said,
-lolling over the counter with a wicked leer on her coarse red face and
-licking her lips over her victim. The others were very glad to hurry
-away and leave the old harridan and Marguerite alone in the gaudily
-tiled, brightly lit room. They kept the door of the dressing room ajar,
-so that they could both see and hear what took place. But for a minute
-or two Madame Delagrange contented herself with chuckling and rubbing
-her fat hands together and looking Marguerite up and down from head to
-foot and almost frightening the girl out of her wits. Marguerite stood
-in front of the counter looking in her short dancing skirt like a
-schoolgirl awaiting punishment.
-
-“So this is how we repay kindnesses!” Madame Delagrange began, slowly
-wetting her lips with her tongue. According to Henriette she was exactly
-like an ogress in a picture book savouring in anticipation the pretty
-morsel she meant to devour for supper. “We make troubles and
-inconveniences for the kind old fool of a woman who lets us sing our
-little songs in her Bar and dance with her clients and who pays us
-generously into the bargain. We won’t help her at all to keep the roof
-over her head. We treat her rich clients like mud. Only the beautiful
-officers are good enough for us! Bah! And we are virtuous too! Oh, he,
-he, he! Yes, but virtue isn’t bread and butter, my little one. So here’s
-an address.” She took a slip of paper from the shelf behind her and
-pushed it towards Marguerite. Marguerite took a step forward to the
-counter and picked up the paper.
-
-“What am I to do with this, Madame?” she asked in perplexity.
-
-“You are to go to that address, Mademoiselle.”
-
-“To-morrow?”
-
-“Now, little fool!”
-
-“Why?”
-
-“He is waiting for you.”
-
-Marguerite shrank back, her face white as paper, her great eyes wide
-with horror.
-
-“Who?” she asked in a whisper.
-
-“Petras Tetarnis.”
-
-Madame Delagrange nodded her head at Marguerite with an indignant
-satisfaction.
-
-“Off you go! We shall be a little more modest, to-morrow evening, eh? We
-shan’t look at everybody as if they would dirty our little slippers if
-we stepped on them. Come, take your seven francs and hurry off. Or,” and
-she thrust out her lips savagely, “never come back to the Villa Iris.”
-
-Marguerite stood and stared at the paper in her hands.
-
-“You can’t mean it, Madame.”
-
-Madame snorted contemptuously.
-
-“Make your choice, little one. I want to go to bed.”
-
-Marguerite folded the paper and with the tears running down her cheeks
-slowly tore it across and across and let the fragments flutter down to
-the floor. Madame Delagrange uttered an oath and then let loose upon the
-girl such a flood of vile abuse, that even those hiding behind the door
-of the dressing room had never heard the like of it.
-
-“Out with you,” she said, spitting upon the ground and sweeping the
-seven francs off the counter towards Marguerite, so that they rolled and
-spun and rattled upon the floor. “Pick up your money and get your rags
-together and march! Quick now!”
-
-She lolled over the counter screaming with laughter as Marguerite ran
-hither and thither seeking through her blinding tears for the coins,
-stooping and picking them up. “There’s another somewhere,” the old
-harridan cried, holding her fat sides. “Seek! Seek! Good dog! It takes
-ten years off my life to see the haughty Miss Touch-me-not running about
-after her pennies.”
-
-Marguerite had got to retrieve them all. In the dreadful penury in which
-she lived, a single franc had the importance of gold. So she ran about
-the room, searched under tables and chairs and in the corners. The seven
-francs were all her capital. They stood between her and death by hunger.
-She must go on her knees and peer through the veil of her tears for the
-last of them. Even the women behind the door, hardened though they were,
-felt the humiliation of that scene in the marrow of their bones, felt it
-as something horrible and poignant and disturbing. As soon as Marguerite
-had picked up her money, Madame Delagrange shuffled out from behind her
-counter.
-
-“Now come along with me. I mean to see that you don’t take away what
-doesn’t belong to you.”
-
-She took the weeping girl by the elbow and pushed her along in front of
-her to the dressing room. Then she stood over her whilst she changed
-into her street dress and put up her dancing kit in a bundle.
-
-“Do you miss anything, girls?” Madame Delagrange asked with her
-heavy-handed irony and indeed with an evident hope that one of them
-would miss something and the police could be sent for. But all of them
-were quick to say no, though not one of them had the courage to take
-Marguerite by the hand and wish her good luck in the face of the old
-blowsy termagant.
-
-“Very well then!” and Madame Delagrange took a step towards Marguerite
-who shrank back as if she expected a blow. Madame Delagrange laughed
-heartily at the girl’s face, rejoicing to see her so cowed and broken.
-
-“Come here,” she said with a grim sort of pleasantry and she grinned and
-beckoned with her finger.
-
-Marguerite faltered across the room, and the big woman took her prisoner
-again and marched her out through the Bar onto the verandah.
-
-“There! You can go out by the garden and a good riddance to you!” Madame
-Delagrange banged to the big doors behind Marguerite Lambert and bolted
-them, leaving her with her bundle in her hand standing on the boards
-beneath the roof of vines.
-
-“That’s the last we saw of her. Poor kid!” said Henriette. “If she
-hadn’t been such a little fool! Do you know that for a moment or two I
-hoped that your friend—”
-
-“Paul,” Gerard de Montignac interrupted with a nod of his head. “I
-also—for a moment or two. But women don’t mean much to Paul.”
-
-Henriette laughed bitterly, wondering to what man women did mean
-anything at all. In her experience she had never run across them.
-
-“I am afraid for that little one,” she said, her thoughts coming back to
-Marguerite. “You know what happened? Her little bundle was found on the
-balcony this morning. The knot had broken, and her dancing dress, her
-slippers, her silk stockings were lying scattered on the boards. She
-just left them where they fell. You see, they were her stock-in-trade.
-She had brought them over with her from France and she has no money to
-replace them with. I am afraid.”
-
-Gerard de Montignac was conscious of a chill of fear too. He recognised
-the significance of the abandonment of that bundle. The knot had burst,
-as Marguerite stood on the verandah, the doors shut behind her, the dark
-garden in front of her. She had not thought it worth while to gather her
-poor trifles of finery together again. Their use was over. Whither had
-she gone? Was she alive now? Had those roaring breakers on the coast
-drawn her into their embrace and beaten her to death upon the rocks and
-the sands?
-
-“Where does she lodge?” he asked sharply.
-
-“I don’t know,” answered Henriette. “None of us know. She would never
-tell. I think that she had some poor little room of which she was
-ashamed. With her seven francs a day, she could have nothing else.”
-
-“I must find out,” cried Gerard, and then he struck his fist upon the
-table. “But I can’t find out. I march at six o’clock to-morrow morning
-for Fez.”
-
-“Your friend then,” Henriette suggested eagerly.
-
-“Paul!” replied Gerard. “Yes. He has a few days still in Casablanca. He
-has compassion, he will help. I know him.”
-
-Henriette’s face lightened a little.
-
-“But he must be quick, very quick,” she urged. “You will see him
-to-night?”
-
-“I will go to him now,” and Gerard remembered the letter in his pocket
-from Colonel Vanderfelt. “I was indeed on my way to him when I came
-here.”
-
-Gerard looked at his watch. It was half past ten. He had stayed longer
-than he had intended at the Villa Iris.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER X
-
-
- Colonel Vanderfelt’s Letter
-
-Gerard de Montignac found Paul still up and putting the last words to
-the report of long and solitary wanderings amongst the inland tribes.
-The report was to be despatched the next morning to the Bureau des
-Affaires Indigènes at Rabat, and Gerard waited in patience until the
-packet was sealed up. Then he burst out with his story of what had taken
-place on the night before at the Villa Iris. Paul listened without an
-interruption, but his face grew white with anger and his eyes burned, as
-he heard of Madame Delagrange’s coarse abuse and Marguerite’s tears and
-humiliations.
-
-“So you see, Paul, it was your fault in a way,” Gerard urged. “Of course
-sooner or later Petras Tetarnis—damn his soul!—would have presented
-his ultimatum, as he did last night, but you were the occasion of it
-being done.”
-
-“Yes,” Paul agreed.
-
-“Then you must find her. You must do what you can, send her home, give
-her a chance. I’ll start searching myself this very night. But you have
-more time and better means of discovering her.”
-
-“Yes.”
-
-Paul had knocked about Casablanca as a boy. He had many friends amongst
-the natives, and was accustomed to sit with them by the hour, drinking
-mint tea and exchanging jokes. He was a man of property besides in that
-town and could put out a great many feelers in different quarters.
-
-“I have no doubt that I can discover where she is,” he said, “if she is
-still in Casablanca.”
-
-“Where else can she be unless it’s in the sea!” cried Gerard. “But
-remember you have got to be quick. She had only the seven francs. God
-knows what has become of her!”
-
-He stood gazing at the lamp as if he could read her whereabouts in that
-white flame as the gifted might do in a crystal; with his cap tilted on
-the back of his head and a look of grave trouble upon his face.
-
-“I’ll find her, never fear,” said Paul Ravenel, touching his friend upon
-the arm. “And what I can do to keep her from harm that I will do.”
-
-Gerard responded to the friendliness and the assurance in Paul’s voice.
-He shook off his dejection.
-
-“Thank you, mon vieux,” he said and held out his hand. “Well, we shall
-meet in Fez.”
-
-He had reached the door before he remembered the primary reason for his
-visit.
-
-“By the way, I have a letter about you from some one in England, a
-Colonel Vanderfelt. Yes, he is anxious for news of you. He wrote to me
-because in your letters to him you had more than once spoken of me as
-your friend.”
-
-A shadow darkened Paul’s face as he listened, and a look of pain came
-into his eyes. He took the letter from Gerard.
-
-“Have you answered it, Gerard?”
-
-“No. It only reached me to-night. I must leave that to you.”
-
-“Right.”
-
-The door-keeper let Gerard out and he tramped through the now silent and
-empty streets the length of the town to the Market Gate; and so to his
-quarters in the camp at Ain-Bourdja. Some years were to pass before the
-two friends met again.
-
-Paul stood for a long time just as Gerard had left him with Colonel
-Vanderfelt’s letter in his hand. The fragrance of an English garden
-seemed to him to sweeten this Moorish room. Though the lattices were
-wide open, he heard no longer the thunder of the great breakers upon the
-shore. The letter was magical and carried him back on this hot night of
-May to a country of cool stars. The garden, he remembered, would be
-white with lilac, the tulips would be in flower, the rhododendrons
-masses of red and mauve, against the house the wisteria would be hanging
-in purple clusters. And in the drawing room some very kindly people
-might at this moment be counting the date on which they could expect an
-answer to this letter.
-
-Well, the answer would never come.
-
-“All those pleasant dreams are over,” thought Paul. “They have not heard
-from me for more than a year. Let the break be complete!” and with a
-rather wistful smile he tore the letter into shreds. Then he went out
-and turning into a street by the sea-wall came to that house from which
-Gerard de Montignac had seen him and his agent depart three days before.
-A lattice was open on the first floor and from a wide window a golden
-flood of light poured out upon the night. Paul whistled gently and then
-waited at the door. It was thrown open in a few seconds, just time
-enough for some one to run down the stairs and open it. Paul stepped
-into a dark passage and a pair of slender arms closed about his neck and
-drew his face down.
-
-“Marguerite, why didn’t you tell me how that venomous old harridan
-treated you?” he whispered.
-
-Marguerite Lambert laughed with a note of utter happiness which no one
-had heard from her for a long while.
-
-“My dear, what did it matter any longer;” and clinging to him
-passionately, she pressed her lips to his.
-
- * * * * *
-
-Paul could have added a postscript to Henriette’s story, as Gerard de
-Montignac had told it to him, if he had so willed. For when Marguerite
-Lambert stood alone on that verandah, her bundle in her hand, a figure
-had risen up out of the darkness of the garden and stepped onto the
-boards. She recoiled at the first moment in terror, and her bundle
-slipped from her hand and scattered its contents.
-
-“Marguerite,” the man whispered, and with a wild throb of her heart she
-knew it was Paul Ravenel who was speaking to her.
-
-“You! You!” she said in so low a voice that, though he stood at her
-side, the words only reached his ears like a sigh. “Oh!” and her arms
-were about his shoulders, her hands tightly clasped behind his head, and
-her tear-stained cheeks pressed close against the breast of his tunic.
-He tried to lift her face, but she would not let him.
-
-“No! No!” she whispered. He could feel her bosom rising and falling, and
-hear the sobs bursting from her throat. Then she flung up her face.
-
-“My dear! My dear! I was hoping that some sudden thing would kill me,
-because I couldn’t do it myself. And then—you are here!”
-
-She drew herself from his arms, and not knowing what she did she kneeled
-and began to gather together her scattered belongings. Paul Ravenel
-laughed and stooping, lifted her up.
-
-“You won’t want those things any more, my dear,” and with his arm about
-her he led her from the garden through the quiet streets to this house
-by the sea-wall which had been got ready against her coming.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XI
-
-
- A Dilemma
-
-It was the sixteenth day of April in the following year. The dawn broke
-over Fez sullen and unfriendly as the mood of the city. And all through
-the morning the clouds grew heavier. Many watched them with anxiety
-through that forenoon: the French Mission which was to set out on the
-morrow, on its return to Rabat with the treaty of the Protectorate of
-Morocco signed and sealed in its pocket; Mulai Hafid himself, now for
-these many months Sultan, who was to travel with the Mission, on his way
-to Paris; various high dignitaries of state, who though outwardly
-wreathed in smiles and goodwill had prepared a little surprise for the
-Mission in one of the passes on its line of march to the coast; and
-various young officers of the escort who after ten months of garrison
-duty outside Fez welcomed a chance of kicking up their heels for a week
-or two in the cafés of the coast towns. Like conversation before dinner,
-all these arrangements depended on the weather.
-
-At twelve o’clock Mulai Hafid gave a farewell luncheon to the Mission in
-his great Palace in Fez Djedid; and after luncheon he conducted his
-guests to a Pavilion looking upon a wide open space called Mechouar.
-They had hardly reached the Pavilion before a storm burst with all the
-violence of the tropics. The Pavilion was like everything else in
-Morocco. It had never been finished when it was new, and never repaired
-when it was old; and very soon, the rain breaking through the flimsy
-roof had driven the guests from the first floor to the chamber of
-audience below, and was splashing down the stairs in a cascade. A
-general discomfort prevailed. Mulai Hafid himself was in a difficult
-mood. To one French Commissioner of importance who apologized to him
-because a certain General, lately promoted from Colonel, had not yet had
-time to procure the insignia of his new rank, Mulai Hafid replied dryly:
-
-“The sooner he gets them the better. He’ll want them all to protect him
-before he has done.”
-
-And a little later when the Head of the Mission, with whom he was
-playing chess, indiscreetly objected to the Sultan moving
-surreptitiously one of his knights with a latitude not authorised by the
-rules, he turned in vexation to a Kaid of his friends and said: “See
-what I have come to! I can no longer even move my own cavalry as I
-please, without the consent of his Excellency and the French.”
-
-Altogether it was an uneasy luncheon party. Alone Paul Ravenel was
-content. He was on duty with the Mission and all the morning his face
-had been as cloudy as the sky because the storm did not break. Now he
-stood at a window of the upper room, sheltering himself as best he might
-from the leaks of the roof and smiled contentedly. Lieutenant Praslin,
-who a year before had trumpeted the praises of Marguerite Lambert in the
-mess at Ain-Bourdja, stood at his elbow. Praslin commanded now a platoon
-in Paul’s company and held his chief in awe. But annoyance spurred him
-to familiarity.
-
-“You are amused, my old one, are you?” he enquired. “We are of the
-escort to-morrow. We shall swim through mud. The banks of the rivers
-will be as slippery as a skating rink. We shall have horses and camels
-tumbling about and breaking our necks. We shall have ladies in the party
-too. And you are amused! Name of a name, you have a sense of humour, my
-Captain.”
-
-“I laugh,” replied Paul, “because if the rain continues, we shan’t go at
-all.”
-
-“And you don’t want to go! To arrive safely at Rabat with the Mission,
-it might easily mean your step.”
-
-That Paul should despise the indifferent gaieties of Rabat and
-Casablanca—that was understood. He was the serious one, destined for
-the high commands. But here was opportunity and Paul Ravenel had been
-quick to seize upon opportunity. There had been a pretty little fight
-between Kenitra and Segota when Paul was in command of the Advance Guard
-of Colonel Gouraud’s convoy; and Paul had fought his little battle with
-a resourceful skill which had brought his name into the orders of the
-day. He had been for ten months now in command of his Company at the
-great camp of Dar-Debibagh, four kilometres out of Fez. These were days
-of rapid promotion in an army where as a rule promotion was slow. A
-successful march to Rabat might well make him Commandant and give him
-his battalion. Yet the look upon his face, as he watched the sheets of
-rain turning the plain of the Mechouar into a marsh, was the look of a
-man—no, not relieved, but reprieved—yes, actually reprieved, thought
-the Lieutenant Praslin.
-
-Below them in the chamber of audience the Chiefs of the Mission were at
-this moment debating the postponement of the journey and they came
-quickly to the only possible decision. The departure was put off for
-three days.
-
-“We shall go then, however,” said Praslin, when this decision was
-announced. “The escort is made up. There will be no change.”
-
-“I wonder,” Paul Ravenel replied. “In three days a man may learn wisdom.
-The Mission may after all wait until a sufficient force is assembled to
-protect it properly and then the whole personnel of the escort may be
-changed.”
-
-“Oh, those stories!” cried Praslin contemptuously. He had the official
-mind which looks upon distrust of official utterances as something next
-to sacrilege. And official utterances had been busy of late. There was
-no truth, they declared stoutly, in those stories that the Maghzen, the
-Government itself, was stirring up disaffection and revolt behind the
-back of the Mission. Very likely the people of Fez were saying that the
-Sultan was the prisoner of the French, that he was being taken to Rabat
-and Paris to be exhibited triumphantly as a captive; but the people of
-Fez were born gossips and there was no danger in their talk. Had not the
-Grand Vizier himself pledged his word that the country was quiet? Thus
-the official mind. Thus too, consequently, Lieutenant Praslin, who was
-very anxious to see life as it is lived in the coast towns. And if the
-Intelligence Division and some soldiers who had spent years in the
-country took a different view, why, soldiers were always alarmists and
-foolish people and it was waste of time to listen to them.
-
-Paul rode back through the rain with Lieutenant Praslin to the camp at
-Dar-Debibagh when the reception was over. They went by the Bab Segma and
-the bridge over the Fez River. The track was already a batter of mud
-above the fetlocks of their horses. At seven o’clock, however, the rain
-ceased and Paul, changing into a dry uniform, went into Praslin’s tent.
-
-“I am dining with a friend of mine in Fez,” he said, “and I shall not be
-back until late.”
-
-“The battalion parade’s at six in the morning,” Praslin reminded him.
-“The order has not been countermanded.”
-
-“I know,” answered Paul. “I shall be on duty of course”; and mounting
-his horse he rode again into the city.
-
-He rode back by the way he had come and just within the Bab Segma he met
-four Moors mounted upon mules richly caparisoned, and themselves wearing
-robes of a spotless white. They were clearly men of high rank and one
-rode a little in advance of the others. As Paul drew closer to them he
-recognised this man as the Minister of War and one of the most important
-dignitaries of the Maghzen. Paul saluted him and to his amazement the
-Minister did not return the salute but turned to one of his companions
-with a dishonouring word.
-
-“Djiffa!” he said contemptuously, and spat on the ground. Paul took no
-notice of the insult. But if he had needed proof of the stories which
-the official mind refused to entertain, here it was openly avowed. Very
-likely the postponement of the Mission’s departure had upset the
-precious plans of the Maghzen and the Minister of War was showing his
-displeasure. The point of importance to Paul was that he should dare to
-show it so openly. That could but imply very complete plans for an
-ambuscade in force on the road of the Mission to the coast, and a very
-complete confidence as to the outcome.
-
-Paul began to think of his own affairs.
-
-“Suppose that the Mission and its escort is destroyed,” he reflected. “I
-have left nothing to chance. No! The blow must fall as lightly as I can
-make possible.”
-
-He enumerated one by one the arrangements which he had made and recalled
-the wording of his instructions to his solicitors and agents.
-
-“No, I can think of nothing else,” he concluded. He had this final
-request for help to make to-night, and he was very sure that he would
-not make it in vain. “No,—whatever money can do to lighten the
-blow—that has been done. And money can do much assuredly.
-Only—only”—and he admitted to himself at last with a little shiver, a
-dark thought which he had hitherto driven off—“she is just the kind of
-girl who might commit suttee.”
-
-He rode along the main street into the quarter of Tala. It was a street
-always narrow, but sometimes so narrow that if two mules met they could
-hardly pass. High walls of houses without any windows made it a chasm
-rather than a street. At rare intervals it widened into a “place” or
-square, where a drinking fountain stood or a bridge crossed a stream. It
-was paved with broken cobble stones with a great rut in the middle where
-the feet of the mules and horses had broken down to the brown earth
-beneath; and here and there a slippery mill-stone on which the horse
-skidded, had been let in to the cobbles by way of repair. It climbed
-steeply and steeply fell, and in places the line of houses was broken by
-a high garden wall above which showed orange trees laden with their
-fruit and bougainvillæa climbing.
-
-At times he passed under an archway where the street was built over
-above his head and huge solid doors stood back against the walls on
-either hand, that one quarter might be shut off from another during the
-night, or in times of trouble. On his right hand a number of alleys led
-into the Souk-ben-Safi and the maze of Fez-el-Bali. Into one of these
-alleys Paul turned and stopped in front of a big house with an imposing
-door studded with nails, and a stone by which to mount a horse.
-
-He dismounted and knocked upon the door. To his surprise, it was not at
-once thrown open. He looked about him. There was no servant waiting to
-take his horse in charge. If there had been a mistake! Paul’s heart sank
-at the thought. Suppose that his friend Si El Hadj Arrifa, on whom so
-much now might depend, had been called away from his home? But that
-couldn’t be—surely! However peremptory the summons had been, so
-punctilious a personage as Si El Hadj Arrifa would have found a moment
-wherein to put off his expected guest. Yet if nevertheless it were so
-. . . !
-
-Paul Ravenel felt the weighty letter under his tunic and gazed at the
-blank wall of the great house with troubled eyes. Oh, he must talk with
-his friend to-night! In three days the Mission and its escort were to
-start. He might not get another chance. He redoubled his blows upon the
-door and at last he heard a key turn in the lock and a clatter as the
-wooden cross-bars were removed.
-
-That sound completed his uneasiness. He had ridden through the city
-thinking of his own affairs, his eyes in blinkers. Now tracing his steps
-in memory, he recalled that the streets had been strangely quiet,
-strangely empty. And here at the end of his journey was this hospitable
-house barricaded against an invited guest.
-
-“Oh, no,” he said, seeking to reassure himself, “the danger’s out there
-in the ‘bled,’ on the way to the coast, not here in the town.”
-
-But a picture rose before his mind of four notable Moors in milk-white
-robes mounted on mules with trappings of scarlet and silver who sneered
-openly at the uniform and spat. Paul Ravenel was frightened now. If it
-was not only in the “bled” that danger threatened, then all his careful
-letters and arrangements were worth just as much as the cobble stones
-underneath his feet.
-
-The door was open at last and as a servant took Paul’s horse by the
-bridle and led it away to a stable, Paul hurried impatiently into the
-house. But he was no more impatient than the servant who closed and
-bolted the door behind him; and in the passage he saw a small troop of
-attendants, every one of them armed and at the entrance from the passage
-into the central court Si El Hadj Arrifa himself with a face of fear and
-in the attitude of a man poised for flight.
-
-But when he caught sight of the gold lace upon Paul’s uniform, the
-Moor’s expression changed to surprise and surprise in its turn to a
-smile of welcome. Si El Hadj Arrifa was a stout man, fair like so many
-of the Fasi, with a fringe of beard round his fat face. He was dressed
-in a silken shirt with an overgarment of pink tissue under his white
-djellaba and his hands were as well-kept as a woman’s. He wore a fine
-white haik over his turban and fez.
-
-“I am afraid that you didn’t expect me,” said Paul.
-
-“Your Excellency is always welcome,” replied Si El Hadj Arrifa. “Our
-poor little meal is ready.”
-
-But it was not ready and Paul’s uneasiness increased. He knew, however,
-that he would hear nothing until hospitality was satisfied of its
-ceremonies and then only by a roundabout road. He was led into a room
-opening by means of a wide archway onto the court. In one corner of the
-room stood a big modern brass bedstead. It was an ornament and a
-decoration, nothing more. For sleep, cushions upon the tiled floor were
-used. Round the wall there were a great number of clocks, Grandfather
-clocks, heavy Victorian clocks of ormolu, clocks of marble, most of them
-ticking away but registering quite different hours, and on the tiled
-floor stood two branched candlesticks of shining silver with the candles
-burning. Thick cushions were stretched upon the tiles about the candles
-and upon them Paul and his host took their seats.
-
-Si El Hadj Arrifa was a personage in Fez, a man of influence in politics
-and of great wealth. He had visited Manchester more than once, to buy
-cotton goods and he talked of that town whilst they waited for dinner.
-
-“They have good dentists,” he said.
-
-Paul looked at this soigné and dainty gentleman in the fine setting of
-his beautiful house, and smiled to think of the figure he must cut in
-Manchester. He probably wore a black gown like a gabardine and elastic
-sided boots over white woollen socks and lived in a small room in a
-dingy street. But Si El Hadj Arrifa fell soon into an uneasy silence and
-sat listening with his head cocked as if he expected some sound from the
-city without to ring out over the open square in the roof above the
-court. A fountain was playing in the centre of the court in honour of
-the visitor, but the Moor called to a servant to turn it off, since the
-splash and tingle of the water so filled the ears that they could
-apprehend nothing else.
-
-Dinner was brought in at last by a couple of negresses and Paul must eat
-of each course beginning with sweetmeats, and ranging through a
-couscouss, a roasted leg of mutton and a stuffed chicken. Paul put his
-right hand into the dish and tore at the meat in the due fashion and
-accepted tit-bits from the fingers of his host. Some orange water was
-brought for him to drink, and when the long meal was over one of the
-negresses brought them a ewer and soap and poured water over their hands
-whilst they washed them.
-
-“Yes, they have good dentists in Manchester,” said Si El Hadj Arrifa
-and, taking a complete set of shining teeth from his mouth, he washed
-them and polished them and replaced them.
-
-“They seem to have very good dentists there,” said Paul with befitting
-gravity.
-
-A silver tea kettle was brought and a silver spirit lamp, and Si El Hadj
-Arrifa brewed two little cups of heavily sweetened green tea and
-flavoured it with mint. But even while engaged upon this important work,
-he still kept his head cocked a little on one side, as though he still
-listened for some dreaded yet expected sound. And when he handed the cup
-to Paul, it rattled in the saucer.
-
-Nothing on this evening had so startled Paul Ravenel. His heart jumped
-within his breast. Si El Hadj Arrifa was not merely disturbed. His hand
-was shaking. He was desperately afraid. He drew a breath and leaned
-forward to speak and Ravenel said to himself with relief. “At last! It
-is coming.”
-
-But he was wrong. His host only enquired whether Paul had ever visited
-America.
-
-“No,” he answered.
-
-“A man in Manchester told me that they had a way there of stuffing
-turkeys which was very good. But they used oysters for it and of course
-so far from the sea we can get none at Fez.”
-
-“Some day there will be a railway,” said Paul consolingly. Si El Hadj
-Arrifa made another brew of tea, this time suspending in the brew a
-little lump of ambergris to flavour it.
-
-“I must begin,” thought Paul, as he took his cup. He felt for the big
-letter in his tunic but before he could take it from his breast his host
-spoke in a low, quiet tone, words which at first seemed of little more
-importance than any which had been spoken before, and afterwards were
-able to set Paul’s heart fluttering.
-
-“I sent a messenger this evening to you at the camp at Dar-Debibagh.
-
-“He missed me,” replied Paul.
-
-“It is a pity.”
-
-“Why?”
-
-“I sent him to warn you not to come into Fez to-night.”
-
-“Why?”
-
-“You are my friend. There is danger.”
-
-“But outside the city,” cried Paul, “from the tribes—after we have
-marched.”
-
-“Here in Fez too,” Si El Hadj Arrifa insisted in a voice which now
-frankly shook with terror. “For you and all of your creed that dwell in
-this city.”
-
-Paul was already on his feet, his face and his eyes set in a stare of
-horror. Si El Hadj Arrifa quite misunderstood the French officer’s
-manner. He said soothingly:
-
-“You shall stay in my house till it is all over.”
-
-“All over?” Paul repeated. He took his hand from the bulky letter in his
-tunic. If the dreadful news were true, his plans must change. His heart
-sank as he caught a glimpse of how they must change.
-
-“I must know more, my friend,” he said, and he sat quietly down again
-upon the cushions.
-
-“There are the Askris,” said the man of Fez, “the tribesmen. You have
-taken them too quickly into your armies. You have armed them too
-quickly. You have placed them with their instructors in the Kashab des
-Cherarda by the Segma gate as a garrison for this town. Oh, madness!”
-
-“Yes,” Paul agreed. “We should have waited a year—two years.”
-
-“They are told that they must carry knapsacks,” continued Si El Hadj
-Arrifa. “With us that is work for women, an insult to men.”
-
-“But it isn’t true,” said Paul Ravenel.
-
-“What does that matter if it is believed? The knapsacks were carried on
-mules publicly through the city, so that all men might see them. Six
-thousand of them.”
-
-“Not by our orders,” said Paul, and the swift look and the shrug of the
-shoulders with which the protest was received told him much. It was by
-the order of the Maghzen that those knapsacks had been paraded. The
-Government itself was behind this movement in the city as it was behind
-the insurrection on the plains. Once more he saw very clearly the four
-contemptuous notables upon their mules.
-
-“Of course we have known of this trouble,” said Paul slowly. “But we
-thought that each instructor could make it clear to his men that the
-story was a lie.”
-
-Si El Hadj Arrifa flung up his hands.
-
-“Oh, the great lessons and nothing is learnt! Was there not trouble once
-for the English in India? Was there not talk of cartridges greased with
-the fat of pigs? It was not true. No! But it served. As the knapsacks
-will serve in Fez.”
-
-“A little time,” cried Paul Ravenel, clutching at the straw of that
-faint hope.
-
-“There is no time,” answered Si El Hadj Arrifa. “Listen!” He looked
-swiftly behind him into the shadows of the court to make sure that there
-were none to overhear. “The revolt in Fez was planned for to-morrow,
-after the Mission had departed. There was to be a scouring.”
-
-“Yes.”
-
-“The Askris are ready: more than ready. It was difficult to hold them
-in, even with the promise of to-morrow. Now that the departure is
-postponed, they will not wait. It needs a word perhaps, but the speaking
-of that word cannot be delayed.”
-
-Paul nodded gloomily.
-
-“And they won’t believe it,” he said in a dull quiet voice, as he stared
-upon the ground. Believe it? Paul Ravenel knew very well that were he to
-batter down the door of the Embassy, they would not even allow him to
-blurt his story out. Why should he come prattling his soldier’s
-silliness at that unearthly hour? Let him go back to his camp and await
-his well-deserved reprimand in the morning! There are proper channels by
-which presumptuous young officers must address their importunities. It
-is the history of many disasters. Politics and ambition and the play of
-parties must decide what is going to happen, not prescience or
-knowledge. Is a country notoriously _studiis asperrima belli_? Let us
-never admit it, lest we range against us this or that faction which is
-strong enough to bring us down. It’s all a gamble. So let us plank our
-money and everybody else’s and their lives into the bargain on to our
-colour and chance it turning up. “All rising to Great Place is by a
-winding stair.” So we must twist and turn and see nothing beyond the
-next step by which we mount. Authority in Fez had just been given the
-cravat of Grand Officer of the Legion of Honour, because the
-negotiations for the Protectorate had been conducted so smoothly and had
-ended in so resounding a success. It would never do for authority to
-listen to any intrusive soldier who insisted that murder and torture
-were knocking on the door. Had not the Maghzen declared that the
-tribesmen in the “bled” were only thinking of their husbandry? Did not
-the Grand Vizier himself guarantee the goodwill and peacefulness of Fez?
-
-“They have stopped their ears and bandaged their eyes,” said Paul.
-
-“But you will stay here to-night,” his friend urged. “No one, I think,
-saw you come into my house, and my servants are faithful. Yes, you will
-stay here and be safe until this danger is overpast!”
-
-Paul shook his head.
-
-“That I cannot do,” he said, and Si El Hadj Arrifa hearing the tone he
-used, knew that there would be no persuading him.
-
-“Then go while you can, and ride quickly with your pistol loose in its
-holster.”
-
-But even so Paul did not move.
-
-“Wait,” he said.
-
-He raised his head to listen. The night was still as a tomb. A cry even
-from the most distant corner of the city, it seemed to him, must carry
-to this open square of darkness above them. He had time. “Yes, wait,” he
-repeated, and he went apart into the shadowy patio. Never had he been
-set to face so tragic a dilemma. He knew Si El Hadj Arrifa too well to
-doubt him. Nor indeed had he any real doubt as to the choice which he
-himself would make. The choice was in truth made, had been made from the
-moment he was sure that torture and massacre threatened those who
-remained in Fez as much as those who marched to Rabat. But he stood in
-that shadowy court of marble and tiles, gazing with a great sorrow upon
-many lovely cherished things which he was now forever to forego, his own
-hopes and ambitions, a little circle of good friends, honour and good
-report, a career of active service and study well-applied, and at the
-end of it all a name cleansed of its stain, and—even now the picture
-rose before his mind—a dreamlike high garden fragrant with roses, from
-which one looked out over moonlit country to the misty barrier of the
-Downs. It was such a farewell as he had never thought to make and when
-he turned back into the room his face was twisted as with a physical
-pain and anguish lay deep in his brooding eyes.
-
-He took the envelope from his breast.
-
-“I shall trust you with more than my life,” he said.
-
-“Your Excellency has honoured me with his friendship. I am his servant
-in all things.”
-
-“I have been for three nights writing this letter. I had it in my mind
-to open it here and read it to you. But the bad news you have given me
-points to another way. It may be that there will be no need to use it. I
-give it into your hands and I beg you to keep it sealed as it is, until
-you are certain of my death. If I am alive I shall find a means to let
-you know. If I am dead, I pray you to do all that I have written here.”
-
-Si El Hadj Arrifa took the letter and bowed his forehead upon it, as
-though it carried the very Sultan’s seal.
-
-“With God’s will, I will do as you direct.”
-
-Paul took his friend by the hand, and looked him in the eyes.
-
-“I could not rest quiet in my grave if my wishes written there were not
-fulfilled—if misfortune struck where there is no need that it should
-strike. A voice would call to me, in sorrow and distress, and I should
-hear it and stir in my grave though I was buried metres deep in clay. It
-is a promise?”
-
-“Yes.”
-
-Si El Hadj Arrifa struck a bell and a man came out to him from the
-servants’ quarters.
-
-“All is quiet, Mohammed?”
-
-“Up till this hour.”
-
-“His Excellency’s horse then! You will go in front of him with a lantern
-as far as the Bab Segma. His Excellency returns to the camp at
-Dar-Debibagh.”
-
-The servant’s eyes opened wide in fear. He looked from his master to his
-master’s guest, as though both of them had been smitten with madness.
-Then he went out upon his business, and the two men in the court heard
-the fall of the bars and the grinding of the lock of the door.
-
-“I will put this away,” said Si El Hadj Arrifa, balancing the letter in
-his hands; and he went upstairs to his own room. When he came down Paul
-was standing in the patio, with his cap upon his head.
-
-“I will bid you good-bye here my friend,” said Paul, but his host,
-terrified though he was, would not so far fall short of his duties. He
-went out with Paul Ravenel to the street. The city all about them was
-very quiet. There was no light anywhere but the light in the big lantern
-which Mohammed was carrying in one hand whilst he held the bridle of
-Paul’s horse with the other. Paul mounted quickly and without a word. Si
-El Hadj Arrifa stood in the doorway of his house. He watched the lantern
-dwindle to a spark, he heard the sharp loud crack of the horse’s shoes
-upon the cobbles soften and grow dull. He waited until the spark had
-vanished, and, a little time afterwards, the beat of the hoofs had
-ceased. And still there was no sign of any trouble, no distant clamour
-as of men gathering, no shrill cries from the women on the roofs. He
-went back into his house.
-
-[Illustration: _A William Fox Production._ _The Winding Stair._ PAUL
-FIRST MEETS MARGUERITE, DANCER IN THE CAFE IRIS.]
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XII
-
-
- The Little Door in the Angle
-
-Si El Hadj Arrifa squatted upon his cushions and stared at the flames of
-the candles in his branched silver candlestick. Captain Paul Ravenel
-would be half way through the Tala now. It was always in that quarter of
-the town that turbulence began. He would be half way through the Tala,
-therefore half way between this house and the Bab Segma too. And as yet
-there was not a cry. Si El Hadj Arrifa had never known a night so still.
-But then he had never listened before with such an intensity of fear,
-fear for himself, fear for that friend of his riding through the silent
-town, with the lantern swinging close to the ground in front of him. The
-sky had cleared after the rain and the stars were bright above the open
-square of the roof. But it was dark and once past the Bab Segma and
-clear of the town, Paul Ravenel would slip like a swift shadow over the
-soft ground to Dar-Debibagh. He must be near the gates by now. Si El
-Hadj Arrifa pictured him now skirting the gardens of Bou Djeloud and
-very close to the gate; a few yards more, that was all. Si El Hadj
-Arrifa imagined him knocking upon the gate for the watchman to open it.
-A sense of relief stole over the Moor. Mohammed would be back very soon
-now. Upon the relief followed drowsiness. Si El Hadj Arrifa’s head fell
-forward upon his breast and his body slipped into an easier
-attitude. . . .
-
-Yes, Paul Ravenel was undoubtedly rapping upon the Segma gate, but
-rapping rather urgently, rather insistently. How those dogs of watchmen
-slept, to be sure! And Si El Hadj Arrifa woke with a start and very
-cold. It was upon his own outer door that some one knocked urgently and
-insistently.
-
-The Moor rose to his feet and stopped. His eyes had fallen upon his fine
-silver candlesticks and he stood upright and stiff in a paralysis of
-terror. The candles had burnt low. He had slept there for a long time.
-Mohammed should have been back an hour ago. The sound of his knocking,
-too, urgent, yet with all its urgency, discreet, spoke, like a voice of
-fear. Something untoward then had happened. Yet the city still slept. Si
-El Hadj Arrifa was no braver than most of his fellow townsmen. He
-shivered suddenly and violently and little whimpers of panic broke from
-his lips. Massacres were not conducted quietly. Uproar and clamour
-waited upon them; and the strange and eerie silence brooding over the
-town daunted the soft luxurious Moor till his bones seemed to melt
-within his body. It was stealthy and sinister like an enemy hidden in
-the dark. He crept into the passage and listened. There was nothing to
-hear but the urgent scratching and rapping upon the door.
-
-“Is that you, Mohammed?” he asked.
-
-“Yes, Master.”
-
-Si El Hadj Arrifa unfastened the door and held it ajar, looking out.
-Mohammed was alone, and there was no longer a lantern in his hand.
-
-“Come in! And make no noise!” said Si El Hadj Arrifa.
-
-Mohammed slipped into the passage, closed the strong door so cautiously
-that not a hinge whined, then locked and bolted and barred it.
-
-“Now follow me!”
-
-The Moor led the way back to the room with the brass bedstead and sank
-like a man tired out on to the cushions. His servant stood in front of
-him with a passive mask-like face and eyes which shone bright with fear
-in the light of the candles. “Speak low!” said Si El Hadj Arrifa; and
-this is the story which Mohammed told in a voice hardly above a whisper.
-
-The French officer did not ride to the Segma Gate. He called in a quiet
-voice to Mohammed and turned off towards the Bab-el-Hadid on the south
-of the town.
-
-“The Bab-el-Hadid,” Si El Hadj Arrifa repeated in wonderment.
-
-“But his Excellency did not go as far as the gate. He stopped at the
-hospital and dismounted,” said Mohammed.
-
-Si El Hadj Arrifa’s face lightened. The hospital was the headquarters of
-the military command. Paul Ravenel had taken his story there.
-
-Paul had remained for a long time in the hospital. Two officers came out
-with him at length, one of whom was dressed in slippers and pyjamas with
-a dressing gown thrown on as if he had been wakened from his bed.
-
-“Was his Excellency smiling?” asked Si El Hadj Arrifa.
-
-“No. The other two were smiling. His Excellency shrugged his shoulders
-and mounted his horse heavily like a man in trouble.”
-
-Si El Hadj Arrifa nodded his head and muttered to himself.
-
-“They will not believe,” he said. “No, they will not believe.” He looked
-towards Mohammed. “Then he went out by the Bab-el-Hadid?”
-
-But Paul had not. He had turned his back to the Bab-el-Hadid and bade
-Mohammed lead to the Karouein quarter.
-
-They went for a while through silent empty streets, Mohammed ten paces
-or so ahead, holding the lantern so that the light shone upon the ground
-and Paul Ravenel following upon his horse. Mohammed did not turn round
-at all to see that the Captain was following him, but the shoes of the
-horse clacked on the cobbles just behind him and echoed from wall to
-wall. They came to the first gate and it was open. The great doors stood
-back against the wall and the watchman was not at his post. Mohammed was
-frightened. An omission to shut off the quarters of the city one from
-the other at night could not be due to negligence. This was an order
-given by authority. However, no one stopped them; they saw no one; they
-heard no one.
-
-They came to a second gate. This too stood wide. Beyond the gate the
-street was built over for a long way making a black tunnel, and half way
-down the tunnel it turned sharply at a right angle. When this corner had
-been turned, a glimmer of twilight far ahead would show where the tunnel
-ceased.
-
-Mohammed passed in under the roof over the street and after he had
-walked some twenty paces forward, he judged that Captain Ravenel had
-fallen a little behind, the shoes of the horse no longer rang so clearly
-on the stones. He turned then, and saw horse and rider outlined against
-the dark sky, as they reached the tunnel’s mouth. He noticed Paul
-Ravenel bent forward over the neck of his horse to prevent his head from
-knocking against the low roof. Then he entered the tunnel and was at
-once swallowed up in the blackness of it.
-
-Mohammed walked forward again rather quickly. For he was afraid of this
-uncanny place, and turned the angle of the street without looking round
-again. He did not think at all. If he had, he would have understood that
-once the feeble flicker of his lantern were lost beyond the corner, Paul
-Ravenel would be left in the darkness of the blind, the mouth of the
-tunnel behind him, a blank wall before his face. Mohammed was in a fever
-to reach the open street again and now that he saw it in front of him at
-the end of the passage opaquely glimmering as an uncurtained window on a
-dark night will glimmer to one in a room, he pushed eagerly forward. He
-was close to the outlet when he realised that no horse’s hoofs rang on
-the cobbles behind him.
-
-He turned and peered back into the tunnel. There was nothing to be seen
-and there was no sound. Mohammed did not dare to call out. He stood
-wavering between his duty and his fear; and suddenly a tremendous
-clatter broke the silence and frightened Mohammed out of his wits.
-Mohammed had just time to draw back close against the wall when a horse
-dashed past him at a full gallop. A stirrup iron struck and tore his
-djellaba and the horse was gone—out of the tunnel up the street. But
-Mohammed’s eyes were now accustomed to the darkness. He was able to see
-against the sky that the horse was riderless.
-
-Something had startled the horse and the French Captain was thrown. He
-was lying on the ground back there, in the darkness. That was all! Thus
-Mohammed reasoned, listening. Yes, certainly that was all—except that
-it might well be that the French Captain was hurt.
-
-Mohammed must return and find out. Quaking with alarm he retraced his
-steps, throwing the light of his lantern on one side of the passage
-after the other. But so far the passage was empty. No doubt the Captain
-would be lying on the ground beyond the angle where the tunnel turned.
-But here too he searched in vain. The Captain had disappeared: somewhere
-between the two outlets in this black place. He had gone!
-
-Mohammed lifted the lantern above his head, swinging it this way and
-that so that the light flickered and danced upon the walls. Then his arm
-grew steady. Opposite it to him in the darkest corner there was a little
-door studded with great nails—a door you never perceived though you
-passed through the tunnel ten times a day. Mohammed crossed to it,
-touched it, shook it. It was locked and bolted. He was debating whether
-he should knock upon it or no. But he dared not. This was the beginning
-of that Holy War which was to free El Magreb from the clutch of the
-Christians,—the stealthy beginning. To-morrow there would not be one of
-them alive in Fez, and outside Fez the land would be one flame of
-vengeance. If the French Captain were behind that little door he must be
-praying for a swift death!
-
-Mohammed drew back and suddenly the mouth of the tunnel was obscured and
-he saw the figures of two men. Panic had been hovering about Mohammed
-these many minutes since. It took him by the throat and the heart now.
-With a cry he dashed his lantern on the ground and fled leaping, past
-the two men. He was not followed.
-
-This is the story which Mohammed told to Si El Hadj Arrifa in the room
-with the clocks and the brass bedstead and the silver candelabra.
-
-“That is the gate by Karouein Mosque?” said the master, when his servant
-had done.
-
-“Yes.”
-
-Si El Hadj Arrifa nodded his head thoughtfully. He did not believe that
-the Captain had been captured or slain in this noiseless fashion. He
-himself had been bidden not to open that big envelope locked away
-upstairs until he was very certain that Paul Ravenel was dead. The
-Captain had his plans into which it was no business of his friend to
-pry.
-
-“As to that little door, Mohammed,” he said. “It will be well to forget
-it.”
-
-“It is forgotten, Master,” answered Mohammed, and far away but very
-clear and musical in the silence of the night the voice of a mueddin on
-a lofty minaret called the Faithful to their prayers.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XIII
-
-
- The Companions of the Night
-
-Si El Hadj Arrifa was right. When Mohammed saw Paul Ravenel ride forward
-out of the loom of the night into the darkness of the tunnel, bending
-his head so that it might not strike the roof, he missed a slight action
-which was much more significant. Paul slipped his right hand into his
-pocket and took out a heavy key. He had been seeing to it that Mohammed
-should draw gradually ahead and by the time when he came opposite to the
-little door in the angle, Mohammed was far beyond the turn and there was
-not the faintest glimmer of light from the lantern. Paul slipped from
-his saddle, gave his horse a sharp cut across the buttocks with his
-riding whip, and as the startled animal galloped off, turned quickly to
-the little door.
-
-He was in a darkness so complete that he could not see the key in his
-hand nor the hand that held it. Yet he found the keyhole at once and in
-another second he was within the house. The passage in which he found
-himself was as black as the tunnel outside. Yet he locked the door,
-picked up and fitted the stout transverse bars into their sockets as
-neatly as though he worked in the broad noon. He had made no sound at
-all. Yet he had shut a door between the world and himself, and the
-effort of his life now must be to keep it for ever closed. He had a
-queer fancy that a door thus momentously closing upon his fortunes ought
-to clang so loudly that the noise of it would reach across the city.
-
-“There was once a Paul Ravenel,” he said to himself.
-
-The lantern in Mohammed’s hands flickering upon the walls of the tunnel
-and every second dwindling a little more, receding a little more, danced
-before his eyes. There went the soul and spirit of that Paul Ravenel.
-
-He was aroused from his misery by the sound of Mohammed’s hands sliding
-curiously over the panels of the door. The cry of panic followed quickly
-and the clatter of the lantern upon the cobble stones. Paul waited with
-his pistol in his hand, wondering what had startled his attendant. But
-silence only ensued and he turned away from the door into the house. At
-the end of a short passage he opened a second door and stood on the
-threshold of a small court brightly lit and beautiful. A round pool from
-which a jet of water sprang and cooled the sultry air was in the centre
-of the white-tiled floor. Wooden pillars gaily painted and gilded and
-ornamented in the Moorish fashion, not by carving but by little squares
-and cubes and slips of wood delicately glued on in an intricate pattern,
-supported arches giving entrance to rooms. There was a cool sound of
-river water running along an open conduit waist-high against a wall; and
-poised in an archway across the court with her eyes eagerly fixed upon
-the passage stood Marguerite Lambert, a tender and happy smile upon her
-lips.
-
-When Paul Ravenel saw her, the remorse which had been stinging him
-during the ride and had reached a climax of pain as he stood behind the
-door, was stilled. Marguerite had changed during this year. The hollows
-of her shoulders and throat had filled. The haggard look of apprehension
-had vanished from her face. Colour had come into her cheeks and gaiety
-into her eyes and a bright gloss upon her hair. She wore a fragile
-little white frock embroidered with silver which a girl might have worn
-at a dance in a ball room of London or Paris; and in the exotic setting
-of that court she seemed to him a flame of wonder and beauty. And she
-was his. He held her in his arms, the softness of her cheek against his.
-
-“Marguerite!” he said. “Each time I see you it is for the first time.
-How is that?” But Marguerite did not answer to his laugh. She held him
-off and scanned him with anxious eyes.
-
-“Something has happened, Paul.”
-
-“No.”
-
-“When you came in, you were troubled.”
-
-“When I saw you the trouble passed. I was afraid that you might be
-angry. I am very late.”
-
-Marguerite did not believe one word of that explanation, but the way to
-discover the true one did not lie through argument. She drew Paul across
-the court, holding him by the hand and saying lightly:
-
-“Foolish one, should I quarrel with you on the evening before you march
-away? You might never come back to me.”
-
-She led him into a side room and drew him down beside her on the thick,
-low cushions. Upstairs there were chairs and tables and the
-paraphernalia of a western home. Here on the level of the patio and the
-street they had for prudence’ sake kept it all of the country. There was
-no brass bedstead, it is true, to ornament the room, but there were
-three tall grandfather clocks, though only one of them was going and
-that marked the true time. Marguerite laid her head in the hollow of his
-shoulder and her arm went round his waist.
-
-“Paul, you won’t get killed!” she whispered. “Oh, take care! take care!
-I am afraid. This year has been so perfect.”
-
-“You must have been lonely many days.”
-
-“And many nights,” whispered Marguerite, with a little grimace. Then she
-laughed with the trill of a bird. “But you had just gone or you were
-soon returning and my thoughts were full of you. I am not difficult and
-thorny, am I, Paul? Say so! Say so at once!”
-
-He laid her down so that her shoulders rested on his knee and her face
-smiled up at him, and bending he kissed her on the mouth for an answer.
-
-“You are the most golden thing that ever happened in this world,” he
-said. “I think of all those years that I lived through, before I met
-you, quite contented with myself and knowing nothing—no, absolutely
-nothing of the great miracle.”
-
-“What miracle, Paul?”
-
-“The miracle of man and woman,—of you and me—who want to be
-together—who are hungry when we are not together,—who walk amongst
-rainbows when we are.”
-
-Paul was the “grand serieux,” as Gerard de Montignac had called him,
-warning him too of that very fate which had befallen him. Love of this
-girl had swept him off his feet, calf-love and man’s love had come to
-him at once. Marguerite was new and entrancingly strange to him as Eve
-to Adam. He made much of her judgment, as lovers will, marvelling when
-she swept to some swift, sane decision whilst he was debating the this
-and the that. She entertained him one moment as though he were an
-audience and she a company of players; she was the tenderest of
-companions the next: in her moments of passion she made him equal with
-the gods; and the pride and glory to both of them was that each had been
-the first to enter the heart and know the embraces of the other.
-
-“Paul, what are you thinking about?” she asked.
-
-“That’s the prettiest frock I have seen you in,” said he, and with a
-smile of pleasure she raised herself and sat at his side.
-
-“It’s the prettiest I have got,” she returned.
-
-Paul lifted a strip of the fragile skirt between his fingers.
-
-“It’s a funny thing, Marguerite,” he said. “But until I knew you, I
-never noticed at all whether a girl was wearing a topping frock or
-whether she was dowdy. So long as they had something over their
-shoulders, they were all pretty much the same to me.”
-
-“And now?” asked Marguerite.
-
-“Well, it’s different,” said Paul, disappointing her of her expected
-flattery. “That’s all.”
-
-Marguerite laughed, as she could afford to. As she knew very well, he
-loved to see her straight and slim in her fine clothes and it gave him
-an entrancing little sensuous thrill to feel the delicate fabrics
-draping exquisitely her firm young body.
-
-Paul, before he had set out with Colonel Gouraud’s supply column on the
-expedition to Fez, had sent Marguerite across the Straits and up to
-Madrid, where a credit was opened for her at one of the banks. Paul had
-been afraid lest she should stint herself, not only of luxuries but of
-things needed. But she had answered, “Of course I’ll take from you, my
-dear. I am proud to take from you.”
-
-She looked back upon that journey now and said:
-
-“I had six glorious weeks in Madrid. Fittings and fittings and choosing
-colours, and buying shoes and stockings and hats and all sorts of
-things. I began at half past nine every morning and was never finished
-till the shops closed. I had never had any money to spend before. Oh, it
-was an orgy!”
-
-“And you regret those weeks?” asked Paul, misled by the enjoyment with
-which she remembered them.
-
-“Nonsense. I had more fun still when I came back with what I had bought.
-I was going to make myself beautiful in the eyes of my lord!” and
-mockingly she pushed her elbow into his side, as she sat beside him.
-
-Marguerite, upon her return, had waited for some weeks in Tangier. Paul
-had to make sure that he was to be stationed at Fez. Afterwards he had
-to find and buy this house, furnish it and provide a staff of servants
-on whose fidelity he could rely. He had secured two negresses and an
-Algerian, an old soldier who had served with him in the Beni-Snassen
-campaign before he had ever come on service to Morocco. Even when all
-was ready at Fez there was a further delay, since the road from Tangier
-to Fez was for a time unsafe.
-
-“I was tired of waiting, long before Selim and the negress and the
-little escort you sent for me appeared,” she said. “But the journey up
-country I adored.”
-
-It was early in the year. The ten villages with their hedges of cactus;
-the rolling plains of turf over-scattered with clumps of asphodel in
-flower; the aspect of little white-walled towns tucked away high up in
-the folds of hills; the bright strong sun by day, the freshness of the
-nights, and the camp fires in that open and spacious country were a
-miracle of freedom and delight to this girl who had choked for so long
-in the hot and tawdry bars of the coast towns. And every step brought
-her nearer to her lover. It was the season of flowers. Great fields of
-marigold smiled at her. Yellow-striped purple iris nodded a welcome.
-Rosy thrift, and pale-blue chicory, and little congregations of crimson
-poppies, and acres of wild mustard drew her on through a land of colour.
-And here and there on a small knoll a solitary palm overshadowed a
-solitary white-domed tomb.
-
-She rode a mule and wore the dress of a Moorish woman. All had been done
-secretly, even to the purchase of the house in Fez, which was held in
-the name of a Moorish friend of Paul’s. It was Marguerite’s wish from
-first to last. Paul would have proclaimed her from the roof tops, had
-she but lifted an eyebrow. But she knew very well that it would not help
-Paul in his career were he to bring a pretty mistress up from the coast
-and parade her openly in Fez. He would get a name for levity and
-indiscretion. Moreover, the secrecy was for itself delightful to her. It
-was to her like a new toy to a child.
-
-“I love a secret,” she had said once to Paul, when he urged that her
-life was dull. “It sets us a little further apart from others and a
-little nearer together. It will be fun keeping it up, and we shall laugh
-of an evening, locked safely away in the midst of Fez in our little
-hidden palace.” It was fun, too, for Marguerite to dress herself in a
-fine silk caftan of pink or pale blue reaching to her feet, to pass over
-the mansouriya, to slip her bare feet into little purple embroidered
-heelless slippers, to wind a bright scarf about her hair, to burden her
-ankles and arms with heavy clashing rings of silver, to blacken her long
-eyelashes and veil the lower part of her face and go shopping with one
-of the negresses in the Souk-Ben-Safi. It was fun also to return home
-and transform herself into a fashionable girl of the day and wait in
-this southern patio for the coming of her lover.
-
-“I love routine like a dog,” she said on this evening. She was sitting
-on the low cushion by Paul’s side. Her slim legs showing pink through
-the fine white silk of her stockings were stretched out in front of her.
-She contemplated the tips of her small white satin slippers. “I don’t
-want any more surprises,” and Paul’s face grew for a moment grave and
-twitched with a stab of pain. “I don’t want any more people. I have had
-enough of both. I love going up on the roof and watching that great
-upper city of women, and wondering what’s going on in the narrow streets
-at the bottom of the deep chasms between the houses. I have books, too,
-and work when I’m not too lazy to do it, and I am learning the little
-two-stringed guitar, and I want one person, one foolish dear person, and
-since I’ve got him, I’m very happy.”
-
-Paul reached forward and, closing a hand round one of her ankles, shook
-it tenderly.
-
-“Listen to me, Marguerite!” he began, but she was upon her feet in an
-instant. She snatched up Paul’s kêpi and cocked it jauntily on her
-curls.
-
-“Canada?” she cried in a sharp, manly voice, and saluted, bringing her
-high heels together with a click and standing very stiff and upright.
-She hummed the tune of “The Maple Leaf,” interpolating noises meant to
-parody the instruments of an orchestra, and she marched in front of Paul
-and round the patio quickly and briskly like a girl in a pantomime
-procession, until she came back to her starting point.
-
-“Australia!”
-
-Again she saluted and marched round to the tune of “Australia will be
-there.”
-
-“The U-nited States of America!” she announced, and this time she
-skimmed round the patio in a sort of two-step dance, swift as a bird,
-her white and silver frock glinting and rippling as she moved.
-
- “Yankee Doodle went to town
- Upon a little pony,”
-
-she sang, and she returned to her starting point.
-
-“Great Britain!” she cried.
-
-Here she saluted for a long time while marking time and calling out in a
-gruff voice: “One, two, one, two! Can’t you girls keep time! Miss
-Montmorenci, you’ve a ladder in your stocking, and if you think any one
-is going to take the trouble to climb up it, you flatter yourself. Miss
-de Bourbon, you haven’t marked your face and it can do with a lot!” and
-off she went to the tune of the “British Grenadiers.” When she came
-opposite to Paul again she held out her short skirt on each side,
-dropped a low curtsey and declared:
-
-“And that, ladies and gentlemen, will conclude our entertainment for
-this evening.”
-
-It was to conclude their entertainment for many and many an evening, for
-whilst Paul laughed and applauded, from right above their heads, it
-seemed, a voice vibrant and loud and clear dropped its call to prayer
-through the open roof of the court.
-
-“Allah Akbar! God is above all. There is no God but God and Mohammed is
-his prophet. Rise and pray! Rise and do the thing that is good. There is
-no God but God!”
-
-It was the same voice to which Si El Hadj Arrifa was listening in
-another quarter of the city. Paul’s house was built in the very shadow
-of the Karouein Mosque, and the voice pealing from its high minaret in
-the silence of the night, familiar though both Marguerite and he were
-with it, never failed to startle them. It was a voice deep, resonant, a
-voice of music and majesty.
-
-“The Companions of the Sick!” said Paul, as they listened to it without
-moving, caught in the spell of its beauty.
-
-“There are ten of them,” said Marguerite. “Like all the rank and fashion
-of Fez, I set my clocks by their voices.”
-
-“Yes, ten,” Paul explained. “Ben Hayoun, a rich man lay very ill in this
-city, and night after night he could get no sleep. The silence became
-terrible to him. He felt an appalling sense of loneliness as the hours
-dragged by and not a sound varied them. So, when he recovered, he
-founded this order of ten mueddins, each of whom must chant the summons
-to prayer for a half of one of the five hours which precede the dawn, so
-that those in pain shall be no more alone. They call them the companions
-of the sick.”
-
-Marguerite looked up to the open roof and the stars above it.
-
-“I often wonder what they think when they look down upon this bright
-square of light beneath them: whether they speculate who live here and
-why they stay up so late of nights. I fancy sometimes that the mueddin
-is looking down and watching us as we move about the court.”
-
-She stood for a moment gazing upwards, and then her mood changed.
-
-“One o’clock,” she cried, and running to the clock against the wall, she
-opened the glass which protected its face and adjusted the hands. “Paul,
-I’ll give you a whiskey and soda, and you must go.”
-
-She turned to him, trying to laugh gaily, but her voice broke.
-
-“You have to be on parade at six and you have miles to go before you
-reach your camp.” Her gaiety deserted her altogether. She flung herself
-into his arms and clung to him, pressing her face against his coat. “Oh,
-my dear, when shall I see you again? I wish that you weren’t going. Yes,
-I do! Though I pretend to laugh and to think nothing of it when I am
-with you, I have been praying for a week with all my heart that
-something might happen to keep you here.”
-
-“Something has happened,” said Paul.
-
-Marguerite lifted her face.
-
-“You are not going?”
-
-“No.”
-
-“Paul, Paul!” she cried joyfully. But there was a look on his face which
-dashed her joy. Marguerite was quick in those days to fall from a high
-buoyancy of spirit to forebodings and alarm. This miracle of her
-happiness was balanced on so fine a needle point that sometime it must
-drop and break into a thousand useless shining splinters. “Why aren’t
-you going?” she asked suspiciously.
-
-“Because of the rain.” Paul Ravenel explained. “The departure of the
-Mission is postponed for three days.”
-
-“Only for three days?” Marguerite repeated with a wistful droop of the
-corners of her mouth.
-
-“It won’t leave after three days,” said Paul. “It won’t leave Fez for a
-long while.”
-
-He spoke very gravely and after a moment of silence Marguerite
-disengaged herself gently from his embrace. A trace of the haggard look
-which had once been so familiar upon her face was visible there again:
-so visible that Paul wondered whether some hint of the threatened
-massacre had not been given to her by Selim or the negresses.
-
-“Yes, you were in great trouble when you came into the court to-night,
-and when I asked you why, you put me off with an excuse. The truth now,
-Paul, please!” she pleaded though she caught her breath at the thought
-of what the truth might mean to her.
-
-“You have courage, Marguerite.”
-
-The girl’s eyelids closed and fluttered over her eyes.
-
-“I shall need it?”
-
-“Yes.”
-
-She sank down upon the cushions, for her knees had given under her. Paul
-did not understand the real cause of her distress until she took his
-hand between both of hers and spoke.
-
-“You needn’t hesitate, my dear. Of course I have always lived in fear
-that our life together couldn’t go on. In my happiest moments, deep
-down, I have felt that dread. Perfection’s not allowed, is it? There’s a
-jealousy that will shatter it. I was sure of that. But I always
-hoped—not yet. I always prayed for a little longer time to make up for
-the wretched years before.”
-
-If trouble was mentioned to Marguerite Lambert in those days she had
-just the one interpretation of the word. It meant separation from Paul
-and therefore the ending of all things. Her passion occupied her, heart
-and brain and blood. She had waited for it, curiously certain that she
-would not be denied it. Now that the great gift was hers, she was in a
-desperate alarm lest she should wake one morning to discover that it had
-been filched from her in the night. Paul dropped down upon the cushions
-at her side and with a tender laugh drew away her hands from her face.
-
-“Marguerite, you are foolish. It isn’t separation, of course. You
-haven’t to fear that—no, nor ever will have to. Believe me, Marguerite!
-Look at me and say you believe me!”
-
-He turned her face towards him and held it between his hands and her
-eyes lost their trouble and smiled at him.
-
-“That’s right. Now listen, Marguerite!”
-
-He gave her a little shake. For since she knew that the one evil which
-she dreaded was not to befall her she had ceased to attend.
-
-“I am listening, Paul.”
-
-“I dined with a friend of mine to-night. I went there to leave him a
-letter of instructions about you if anything happened to me on our march
-down to the coast.”
-
-“Happened to you?” she exclaimed with a sharp intake of her breath.
-
-“I expected an attack. Si El Hadj Arrifa would have seen that you were
-sent safely down to the coast. My agents there would have taken care of
-you. You would of course never want for anything again.”
-
-“I should want for everything,” said Marguerite slowly. “I don’t think,
-Paul, that I could go on living. . . . I was told of a girl . . . when
-her husband died, she dressed herself in her wedding gown—I couldn’t do
-that, my dear,” she interpolated with a little whimsical smile. “Then
-she lay down on her bed and took poison. . . . I often think of that
-girl.”
-
-“Marguerite, you shouldn’t. It’s morbid. You are young. Even if I
-went—” but there came a stubborn look upon Marguerite Lambert’s face
-against which he was well aware his finest arguments would beat in vain.
-“I’ll discuss that with you when it’s necessary,” he said. “To-night my
-friend Si El Hadj Arrifa warned me that not only was the Mission to be
-attacked on its way to the coast, but that there would also be a rising
-here.”
-
-He had Marguerite’s attention now. She looked at him with startled eyes.
-
-“In Fez?”
-
-“Yes.”
-
-“That will mean—?”
-
-“Yes, let us face it. A massacre.”
-
-Marguerite shivered and caught Paul’s hand. She looked about the court
-outside the lighted room in which they sat. There were shadowy corners
-which daunted her. She looked upwards, straining her ears. But the
-ceaseless chant of the mueddin on the minaret of the Karouein mosque
-alone broke the silence of the night.
-
-“When is it to be?” she whispered, as though the fanatics were already
-gathered about her door.
-
-“To-night, probably. To-morrow, certainly.”
-
-“And you can trust your friend’s word?”
-
-“As I would trust yours,” said Paul.
-
-Marguerite drew closer to her lover and huddled against him. He put his
-arm about her. She was trembling. The fun of the masquerade was over.
-She wondered now how without fear she could have wandered with her black
-servant through the narrow, crowded markets and in those deep, maze-like
-streets; she pictured to herself the men; furtive, sleek Fasi; wild
-creatures from the hills with long muskets gleaming with
-mother-of-pearl; brawny men of the people, and she painted their faces
-with the colours and the fire of fury and fanaticism. This little house
-shut in and crowded about with a thousand houses! She had thought of it
-as a secret palace hidden away in the uncharted centre of a maze. Now it
-seemed to her a trap set in a jungle of tigers—a trap in which she and
-Paul were caught. And her thoughts suddenly took a turn. No, only she
-was in that trap.
-
-She listened, turning her face upwards to the open roof. The city was
-still quiet.
-
-“Paul, there are other Christians scattered in houses in the town.”
-
-“Yes.”
-
-“Couldn’t you give a warning? So that troops from the camp might be
-hurried into the town? Leave your uniform here! Dress in your djellaba
-and your Moorish clothes. You can reach headquarters—”
-
-“I have already been there. They will not believe,” said Paul.
-
-Marguerite thought for a little while, summoning her strength to assist
-her, and the memory of the great debt she owed her lover.
-
-“Very well,” she said. “You have done all that you can. You must go back
-to the camp now, Paul, while you still can.”
-
-“No.”
-
-“I shall be all right, Paul. No one suspects this house. You have always
-been careful when you came here that the tunnel was empty. At the worst
-I have the little Belgian automatic pistol you gave me.”
-
-“No,” Paul repeated.
-
-“But your place is in the camp with your men.”
-
-“I have leave,” said Paul. “I applied for leave the moment I knew that
-we had three days more in Fez.”
-
-Marguerite did not for a moment doubt the truth of what he said. He
-spoke so simply. It was so natural a thing that he should ask for leave.
-She gave up the little scheme to which she had steeled her heart. Her
-arms crept about his neck.
-
-“There!” she whispered with a sigh of relief. “I have tried to send you
-away, haven’t I? I have done my best and you won’t go! I am glad, Paul,
-I am glad! Alone I should have shivered in terror.”
-
-“We shall be together, Marguerite.”
-
-Her lips trembled to a smile. Danger thus encountered seemed in the
-anticipation hardly to be considered a danger at all.
-
-“Listen,” she said, lifting her hand.
-
-The voice of another mueddin now rang out across the city. Marguerite
-rose.
-
-“This lighted square just above our heads, Paul, is just beneath his
-feet. Let us give him no cause to wonder.”
-
-She put out the candles and returned to Paul Ravenel’s side. They sat
-together in the darkness, huddled against one another, whilst the
-companions of the sick followed one another upon the high minaret of the
-Karouein mosque.
-
-Once, twice when some stray cries broke the silence Paul whispered
-eagerly.
-
-“It is beginning,” and as silence followed upon the cries. “No! No!” he
-added in a dull voice, a voice of disappointment.
-
-“Paul, you wish it to begin!” said Marguerite in wonder, and she tried
-to distinguish the expression of his face, even though the darkness
-showed her nothing but the silhouette of his head.
-
-“It will be the sooner over,” said Paul quickly. “The revolt can’t last
-long in any case. There’s a strong column in the field just south of
-Meknes. A call from the wireless and four days will bring them here.”
-
-But there was another reason why with all his soul he prayed to hear the
-still night break up in a clatter of firing and fierce cries. If the
-revolt began to-night, why then he himself had been caught in it, had
-been forced to seek a refuge, had been unable to regain his post. Who
-could gainsay him? All was saved—Marguerite and honour too. Whereas if
-the morning came and Fez was still at peace and his appointed place
-empty—then some other man must fill it. But the voices on the minaret
-rang out in music above their heads, until Marguerite said: “This is the
-last. It is he who raises the flag over the mosque. In half an hour we
-shall have the dawn.”
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XIV
-
-
- The Tunic
-
-“Marguerite, you must go to bed,” said Paul. “I’ll rouse you if there’s
-any danger.”
-
-It was very near to the dawn now. There was a freshness and an
-expectation in the air; a faint colourless light was invading the
-darkness; in the patch of sky above their heads the bright stars were
-swooning. For most of this last half hour Marguerite’s head had lain
-heavy upon his shoulder, and if she opened her eyes it was only to close
-them again with a sigh of content. Paul lifted her on to her feet and
-led her up the stairs.
-
-“And you, Paul?” she asked, drowsily.
-
-“I shall be within call. I shall sleep for a little on the cushions
-below. Good-night.”
-
-Marguerite noticed that the voice of the last mueddin ceased whilst she
-was still preparing herself for her bed; and after she had got into it,
-she heard a kettle singing cheerfully in the court below as if Paul were
-brewing for himself some tea. Then, with the doors of her bedroom open
-upon the little gallery above the court she went fast asleep.
-
-Hours afterwards a shattering noise awakened her. She lay for a few
-moments deliciously poised between sleep and consciousness, and vaguely
-thinking her long and troubled vigil to have been a nightmare which the
-light of day had happily dispelled. The sunlight was falling in a sheet
-of gold through the open roof. “It must be very late,” she reflected,
-lazily, and thereupon sharply and crisply two shots from a rifle split
-the air. Marguerite sprang up in her bed with a hand to her heart, as
-though one of those shots had wounded her. It was just the same noise
-which had broken through her slumbers. The nightmare was true, then! She
-listened, resting upon one arm, with her face turned towards the open
-doors. A clamour of voices was borne from a distance to her ears. The
-new Terror had begun.
-
-“Paul!” she cried loudly. “Paul”; and a tall man dressed in the robes of
-a Moor stood beside her bed. She shrank away with a little scream. It
-was not until he smiled that she recognized her lover.
-
-“You had better get up, Marguerite,” he said, and bending down he kissed
-her. “You have slept well, thank the Lord.”
-
-One of the negresses brought her a cup of tea and Marguerite, slipping
-on her dressing gown, sat upon the edge of the bed and thrust her feet
-into her slippers.
-
-“What is the time, Paul?”
-
-“A little past one.”
-
-“So late?”
-
-“I let you sleep. There was no disturbance. The first shot waked you.”
-
-“I will be quick,” she said, or rather began to say. For the words,
-half-uttered, were frozen upon her lips. Such a din, so shrill, so
-menacing and strange, burst out above their heads that Marguerite
-cowered down under it as under the threat of a blow. She had never heard
-the like of it, she hoped never to hear the like of it again; yet she
-was to hear it now for days—the swift repetition of one strident note,
-swelling and falling in a pæan of wild inhuman triumph. Marguerite
-imagined all the birds of prey in the world wheeling and screaming above
-the city; or a thousand thin voices shrieking in a madhouse;
-you—you—you—you—you—the piercing clamour ran swift as the clacking
-of a mitrailleuse, and with a horrid ferocity which made the girl’s
-blood run cold.
-
-“Paul,” she said, “what is it?”
-
-“The women on the roofs.”
-
-“Oh!”
-
-Marguerite shuddered as she listened, clutching tight her lover’s arm.
-Such a promise of cruelty was in those shrill cries as made Marguerite
-think of the little automatic pistol in the drawer of her table as a
-talisman which she must henceforth carry close to her hand. She felt
-that even if she escaped from the peril of these days, she could never
-walk again in the narrow streets between the blind houses without the
-chill of a great fear. Her clasp tightened upon her lover’s arm and he
-winced sharply. Marguerite looked up into his face, and saw that his
-lips were pressed close together to prevent a cry of pain.
-
-“Paul!” she said wonderingly. She loosened her clasp and turned back the
-sleeve of his djellaba. Beneath it, his forearm was roughly but tightly
-bandaged. “Oh, my dear,” she cried, in a voice of compunction, “what
-happened to you whilst I slept? You are wounded—and for me! Must I
-always do you harm?” and she beat her hands together in her distress.
-
-“It was an accident,” said Paul.
-
-“An accident?”
-
-She ran to her medicine-chest, and making him sit beside her, unfastened
-the bandage. “An accident?” she repeated. It looked to her as if he had
-been stabbed. A knife had been driven right through the flesh of his
-forearm. Paul did not reply to her exclamations and she did not press
-her questions. She washed and dressed the wound and bound it up again.
-
-“It must hurt terribly,” she said, her forehead knitted in distress.
-
-“It is easier now,” he answered. “The knife was clean.”
-
-“You are sure of that, Paul?”
-
-“Quite.”
-
-She made a sling of his arm and sent him away. She dressed quickly,
-wondering how that wound had been inflicted and why he wished not to
-explain it. Surely he had not gone out whilst she slept? Surely there
-had been no attack upon the house? No! But she was plunged now into a
-world of mystery and fear, and she wrung her hands in an impotent
-despair.
-
-They took their breakfast in a room upon the first floor, Paul asking
-questions as to how far the house was provisioned, and Marguerite
-answering almost at random, whilst the cries of the women rang shrill
-overhead.
-
-“Oh, yes, there is food,” she answered.
-
-“We can always send Selim out,” he added.
-
-Marguerite’s eyes lightened.
-
-“We will send him out, Paul,” she exclaimed. “Do you know what has been
-troubling me? We haven’t a window upon any street. We are here at the
-bottom of a well with nothing but our ears to warn us of danger. We can
-see nothing.”
-
-Paul looked at her anxiously. She was nervous, the flutter of her hands
-feverish, and her voice running up and down the scale as though she had
-no control over it. Paul reached across the table and laid his hand upon
-her arm.
-
-“You poor little girl!” he said gently. “These are trying days. But
-there won’t be many. The wireless here will have got into touch already
-with Moinier’s column near Meknes. The troops, too, at Dar-Debibagh may
-do something,” and ever so slightly his voice faltered when he spoke of
-the troops, yet not so slightly but that Marguerite noticed it. “They
-have some guns,” he went on hurriedly, and again Marguerite noticed the
-hurry, the desire to cover up and hide that little spasm of pain which
-had stabbed him when he thought of his men. “Yes, the guns!” he said.
-“There will be an end to that infernal twittering on the roof tops when
-the guns begin to talk.”
-
-“Paul, you should have been with your men,” said Marguerite, and he
-answered her with a kind of violent obstinacy which drew her eyes in one
-swift glance to his face. “I am on leave.”
-
-He changed his tone, however, immediately.
-
-“We will send Selim into the town for news,” he said cheerfully, “and we
-will go up on to the roof.”
-
-Selim was bidden to knock twice, and, after a tiny interval, once more
-upon his return. Paul stood behind the door listening to make sure that
-the tunnel was empty before he opened it. Then he let him go, and locked
-and barred the door again.
-
-“Come,” he said to Marguerite and, picking up some cushions, they went
-upstairs to the roof. Marguerite had followed Paul’s example, and was
-dressed in Moorish clothes; the house was higher by a storey than any
-which adjoined it, and the roof itself was enclosed in a parapet
-waist-high. They crouched upon the cushions behind the wall and
-cautiously looked over it.
-
-A pack of clouds was threatening in the west, but just now the city
-glittered in the sunlight like a jewel, with its hanging gardens and
-high terraces, its white houses huddling down the hillside like a flock
-of sheep, and the bright green tiles of its mosques. Paul and Marguerite
-never tired of this aspect of the lovely city, shut within its old
-crumbling walls and musical with the rushing noise of its many rivers.
-But to-day they saw it as they had never seen it before. For the roofs
-were crowded with women in their coloured robes of gauze and bright
-scarves, who danced and screamed, and climbed from one house to another
-on little ladders in such a frenzy of excitement that the eyes were
-dazzled and the ears deafened. Paul turned towards the north. Upon the
-roof of one house men were breaking through with axes and picks, whilst
-others flung down rags and sticks which had been soaked in paraffin and
-lighted, through the holes into the rooms below.
-
-“I think that’s the house of the French veterinary surgeon,” said Paul;
-and from all about that house rose a continuous rattle of firing.
-
-“Look!” said Paul, and he nodded to the south. Here there was a gap
-between the houses, and Marguerite could see far below a tumble-down
-stone bridge built in a steep arch across a stream. As she looked, a
-wild horde of men swarmed upon the bridge, capering and yelling.
-
-“There are soldiers amongst them,” said Marguerite. “I can see their
-rifles and their bandoliers.”
-
-“Yes, the Askris who have revolted,” answered Paul, and suddenly he
-covered Marguerite’s eyes with the palm of his hand. “Don’t look!” But
-Marguerite had already seen, and she sank down behind the parapet with a
-moan. In the midst of that wild procession some rifles with bayonets
-fixed were held aloft, and on one of the bayonets the trunk and the
-limbs of a man were impaled. The head was carried last of all, and upon
-a pole taller than the bayonets, a head black with blood, like a
-negro’s, on which a gold-laced kêpi was derisively cocked.
-
-Paul swore underneath his breath.
-
-“One of my brothers,” he whispered. “Oh, my God,” and dropping his head
-into his hands, he rocked his body to and fro in an agony of remorse.
-
-Marguerite touched him on the shoulder.
-
-“Paul, there’s a carbine in your room.”
-
-“It would be fatal to use it.”
-
-“I don’t care,” Marguerite cried fiercely. Her face was alive with
-passion. “Use it, Paul. I don’t care!” and from far below there rose the
-sound of a loud knocking upon a door.
-
-Marguerite’s heart fluttered up into her throat. She stared at Paul with
-her eyes opened wide in horror. The same thought was in both their
-minds. Both listened, holding their breath that they might hear the
-better.
-
-“It was upon our door they knocked,” Marguerite whispered, and she crept
-a little closer to her lover.
-
-“Listen!” replied Paul, and as the knocking began again, but this time
-louder, he added with a grim look upon his face, “Yes.”
-
-“And it was not Selim who knocked,” said Marguerite.
-
-They could hear cries now, angry orders to open, followed by a muffled
-clamour and such a clatter of heavy blows as shook the very house.
-
-“I must go down,” said Paul, in a low voice. “Otherwise they’ll break in
-the door.”
-
-Marguerite nodded. Her face was white to the lips, but she was quite
-still now and her eyes steady. They crept down to the uppermost floor of
-the house. The noise was louder.
-
-“You will stay here, Marguerite?”
-
-“Yes.”
-
-“You have your pistol?”
-
-Marguerite drew it from her broad waistbelt of gold brocade, snapped
-back the barrel, and set the safety catch. Her hand never shook. Now
-that the peril was at her elbow she could even smile. Paul took her
-passionately in his arms.
-
-“You are gold all through, Marguerite,” he cried. “If this is the end, I
-thank you a thousand times. I would hate to have died without knowing
-the wonder of such rare love as yours.”
-
-“‘We two embracing under death’s spread hand.’” She quoted from a book
-upon her shelf in which she was pleased to find a whole library of
-wisdom and inspiration.
-
-“You will wait until the last moment?” said Paul, touching the little
-automatic in her hand.
-
-“Until they are on this last flight of stairs,” she replied, in an even
-voice. “Paul!” She clung to him for a second, not in terror, but as to
-some inestimable treasure which she could hardly let go. Then she stood
-away, her eyes shining like the dew, her face hallowed with tenderness.
-“Now, my dear, go!”
-
-Paul Ravenel ran down the stairs. The clamour echoing from the tunnel
-had taken on a fiercer note; the door, stout as it was, bent inwards
-under the blows. Marguerite, standing upon the landing, heard him unbolt
-the door. She drew back out of sight as a crowd of men, some in
-djellabas spotted with blood, some in ragged caftans, some armed with
-rifles, others with curved knives, others, again, with sharpened poles,
-swept screaming like madmen over the court.
-
-“The Frenchman,” cried a great fellow, brandishing a butcher’s cleaver.
-“Give him to us! God has willed that they shall all die this day.”
-
-What had become of Paul? she wondered. Had he been swept off his feet
-and trampled down in the rush? She heard his voice above the clamour.
-She imagined him standing with uplifted hand claiming silence. At all
-events, silence followed, and then his voice rang out.
-
-“God willed that he should die yesterday,” said Paul.
-
-Marguerite peered out between the curtains which overhung the entrance
-to the room. She saw him move, calm and smiling, across the court to an
-alcove and point to a corner.
-
-“The Frenchman came to my house once too often. Look! He sought refuge
-here last night. He was not wise to seek refuge in the house of Ben
-Sedira the Meknasi. For to-day his body rolls in the river—” Paul threw
-open a small door in the back wall and showed them the Karouein River
-tumbling, swollen with the rain, past the walls of his house. Then he
-pointed to the alcove: “And his livery lies there.”
-
-There was a rush into the alcove, and the shouts of exultation broke out
-again. A blue tunic, on the breast of which medals glinted and rattled,
-was tossed out high amidst the throng. The tunic was gashed and all
-cluttered and stained with blood which had dried. Paul’s gold-lace cap
-spun through the air, was caught, and clapped upon the head of a boy,
-his breeches and boots and accoutrements were flung from hand to hand
-and shared out amidst laughter and cheering. And once more there was a
-surge of men, and the court was empty and silent. No, not quite empty.
-Paul was talking in a gentle voice to one wild man who was now wearing
-over a ragged caftan Paul’s uniform tunic. Paul held him firmly by the
-elbow, and was speaking in a curiously soft, smooth voice, than which
-Marguerite had never heard anything more menacing.
-
-“You will leave that tunic, good friend. You will take it off at once
-and leave it here. It is my trophy. Have I not earned it?”
-
-The man protested, and sought to disengage himself, but Paul still held
-him firmly.
-
-“It shall hang in my house,” he continued, “that my children may
-remember how once there were Frenchmen befouling the holy ground of
-Morocco.”
-
-Once more Marguerite heard the rattle of the medals as the coat was
-restored, and the Moor cried out: “There will be none alive in Fez this
-night. Salam aleikum, O man of Meknes!” And a little afterwards the door
-was slammed and barred.
-
-Paul returned to the court, holding the tunic in his hands. The peril of
-the last few moments was swept altogether out of his mind. For a moment
-Marguerite herself was forgotten. He was holding the badge of many years
-of honourable service, and the shining medals which proved that the
-service had been of real value to the country he served. All was now
-wasted and foregone.
-
-“I should make the sacrifice again,” he said obstinately to himself, “if
-it were to make again. I should! I should!”
-
-But he had not borne to see the tunic and its medals paraded in triumph
-on the back of one of these assassins through the streets of Fez. When
-he stopped the Moor and held him back from his companions, his hand had
-gripped close the revolver hidden in his waistband. Had the man clung to
-the tunic, Paul would have killed, whatever the risk. The traditions and
-the whole training of his life had forced his hand. He knew that, as he
-stood in the silent sunlit patio fondling the stuff of the coat between
-his fingers, and his heart aching as though some little snake had
-slipped into his bosom and was feeding there.
-
-“I have done what my father did,” he thought. “I, who set out to atone
-for him.” And he laughed aloud with so much mockery at his own
-pretensions that the laughter startled him. “I can plead a different
-reason. But what of that? I have done what my father did!”
-
-He folded the tunic reverently, and laid it down again in the alcove. As
-he stood up he was startled by the clatter of something falling overhead
-and the sharp explosion of a pistol. He looked upwards. The sound had
-come from behind those curtains where Marguerite was hidden. Had she
-been watching? Had she seen him fondling the tunic? Had she heard his
-bitter laughter? Perhaps he had spoken aloud. For a moment his heart
-stood still. Some words that Henriette had said to him—oh, ever so long
-ago, in the Villa Iris, flashed back into his mind. “Even if the grand
-passion comes—oh la, la la!—she will blow her brains out, the little
-fool!”
-
-He sprang up the stairs, crying “Marguerite! Marguerite!” and stumbling
-in his haste. No answer was returned to him. He tore the curtains aside,
-and saw her lying on the floor by the side of a divan. The pistol had
-slipped from her hand and fallen a little way from her. Paul flung
-himself upon his knees beside her, lifted her, and pressed her close to
-his heart. “Marguerite! Marguerite!” he whispered. There was no wound,
-and she was breathing, and in a moment or two her eyes opened. Paul
-understood in that supreme moment of relief how greatly his love of
-Marguerite overpowered his grief at honour lost.
-
-“Oh, my dear, you frightened me!” he said.
-
-She smiled as he lifted her onto the divan.
-
-“I was foolish,” she answered.
-
-She had waited upon the outcome of that wild scene in the court below,
-her nerves steady, her mind unconscious of any effort to steel herself
-against catastrophe. She could catch but a glimpse of what was going
-forward; she did not understand the trick by which Paul Ravenel had
-appeased the invaders; she heard the wild babble of their frenzied
-voices and Paul’s voice over-topping them. She had waited serenely with
-her little pistol in her hand, safety to be reached so easily by the
-mere pressure of a finger. Then suddenly all was over; the court was
-empty, the house which had rung with fury a moment since was silent; and
-as she heard the bolts of the door shot once more into their sockets her
-strength had melted away. She had stood for a little while in a daze
-and, catching at the divan as she fell, had slipped in a swoon to the
-floor. The pistol fell from her hand and exploded as it fell.
-
-“I was foolish,” she repeated; “I didn’t understand what had happened. I
-don’t even now.”
-
-“I was afraid that some time or another some one had seen me enter this
-house and remembered it,” Paul Ravenel explained. “Last night something
-happened outside the door—what, I don’t know, but enough to trouble me
-a little. So after you had gone to bed I boiled a kettle—”
-
-“Yes, I heard it.”
-
-“And sterilized my big knife. I drove the knife through my arm and let
-the blood soak through my tunic, and then I stabbed the tunic again in
-the back. It was lucky that I did.”
-
-“What should I have done without you?” she said, as she rested upon the
-cushions of the divan. She laid a hand gently in his.
-
-“Does the wound hurt, Paul?”
-
-“It throbs a little if I move it. That’s all. It’s nothing.”
-
-“I’ll dress it again to-night,” she said, sleepily, and almost
-immediately she fell asleep. She slept so deeply, that a muffled roar,
-which shook the house, did not even trouble her dreams. Paul smiled as
-he heard that sound. “That’s one of the seventy-five,” he reflected. The
-guns from the camp at Dar-Debibagh were coming into action.
-
-He left Marguerite sleeping, and climbed again to the roof. The guns
-were firing to the south of the town, and were still far away. But no
-man who had fought through the Chaiouïa Campaign could ever forget the
-tribesmen’s terror of the guns.
-
-“Another day or two!”
-
-Paul counted up the stages of the march of Moinier’s column from Meknes.
-If only he was quick, so that the tribesmen could not mass between him
-and Fez! There were houses alight now in Fez-el-Bali. The work of
-massacre was going on. But let General Moinier hurry, and the guns over
-there at Dar-Debibagh talk insistently to Fez! Moreover, at five o’clock
-the rain began again. It fell like javelins, with the thunder of surf
-upon a beach.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XV
-
-
- On the Roof Top
-
-Marguerite drove her two trembling negresses out of the corners into
-which they had flown when the house was invaded, stood over them while
-they cooked the dinner, and strictly ordered that it should be served
-with the proper ceremonies. She dressed herself in her European clothes
-and with even more, to-night, of the scrupulous daintiness which was
-habitual to her. Paul watched her with a great pride and wonderment.
-
-“How in the world do you know at once what we have to learn?” he asked.
-“When people are rattled, routine’s the great remedy. Just doing the
-ordinary things at the ordinary hours lifts you along with a sort of
-assurance that life is going to be as sane to-morrow as it was
-yesterday. But we have men to watch, and they teach us these things.
-Where do you get them from?”
-
-“From myself,” answered Marguerite, with a blush upon her cheeks, which
-her lover’s praise never failed to provoke. “I had to keep my own little
-flag of courage flying if I could.”
-
-At half past nine they heard Selim’s three knocks upon the outer door,
-and Paul let him in and brought him to Marguerite in the room opening on
-to the patio. He brought with him a budget of black news. A couple of
-officers had been dragged from their horses and butchered in the
-streets. An engineer and his wife in Fez Djedid had been shot down as
-they sat at their luncheon. There had been an attack upon the Hôtel de
-France, where the managress and a priest had been slain.
-
-“There is a house in the Tala quarter,” said Paul, “where two veterinary
-surgeons and two other officers lodged. I saw men breaking through the
-roof to get at them this afternoon.”
-
-“They escaped, Sidi. They let themselves down from a window into an
-alley. It is believed that they are hiding in a covered drain.”
-
-“And the four French telegraph operators. They, too, occupied a house in
-the Tala.”
-
-Selim had no good tidings to tell of them. The door of their house had
-been forced at midday. Throughout the afternoon they had resisted in an
-upper room, which they had barricaded, firing with what weapons they had
-until their ammunition was exhausted. At seven in the evening a rescue
-party had arrived, but only one of them was alive, and he grievously
-wounded.
-
-“A rescue party!” asked Paul, wondering whence that party had come.
-There was not enough men at the headquarters in the hospital to do more
-than protect the quarter of the Consulates, even if they could do that.
-
-“A battalion from Dar-Debibagh forced its way into the city at five
-o’clock this afternoon,” said Selim.
-
-Paul’s face took life, his eyes kindled. No one knew better than he the
-difficulties which must have hampered that exploit.
-
-“That was well done,” he cried. “Whose battalion?”
-
-The old Algerian soldier replied:
-
-“The Commandant Philipot’s.”
-
-The gladness died out of Paul Ravenel’s face, and he sat in silence
-staring at the tiles of the floor. To Marguerite it was as though the
-light of a lamp waned and flickered out. She laid her hand upon his.
-
-“That’s your battalion, Paul?”
-
-Paul nodded, and whispered “Yes,” not trusting his voice over much.
-
-“You should have been with it, my dear. But for me you would have led
-your company,” she said, remorsefully; and he cried out aloud suddenly
-in a voice which she had never heard him use before, a voice rough and
-violent and full of pain.
-
-“I am on leave.”
-
-Hearing him, she felt the compunction of one who has carelessly knocked
-against a throbbing wound. Her eyes went swiftly to his face. During
-these moments Paul Ravenel was off his guard, and she was looking upon a
-man in torture.
-
-“The little Praslin will be leading my company,” he said, “and leading
-it just as well as I could have done.” He turned again to Selim. “Did
-the battalion have trouble to get through?”
-
-“Great trouble, Sidi. The commandant tried to come in by the little gate
-in the Aguedal wall and the new gardens of the Sultan. But he was
-attacked by a swarm of men issuing from the Segma Gate on his left flank
-and by sharp-shooters on the wall itself in front of him.”
-
-“And we taught them to shoot!” cried Paul in exasperation. “The
-commandant was held up?”
-
-“Yes, Sidi.”
-
-“What then? He was losing men, and quickly. What did he do?” Paul asked
-impatiently. His own men were under fire. He had got to know, and at
-once. “Out with it, Selim. What did the Commandant Philipot do?”
-
-“He led his battalion down into the bed of the river Zitoun,” said
-Selim, and a long “Oh!” of admiration and relief from Paul welcomed the
-manœuvre. He spread before his eyes, in mind, an imaginary map of the
-difficult ground at that southwest corner of the city, outside the
-walls. Pressed hardly upon his left flank, at the mercy of the riflemen
-on the crest of the high, unscalable wall of the Aguedal, Commandant
-Philipot, leaving a rear-guard—trust the Commandant Philipot for
-that!—had disappeared with his battalion into the earth. Paul chuckled
-as he thought of it—the ingenuity and the audacity, too!
-
-“He made for the Bab-el-Hadid?” he said.
-
-“Yes,” answered Selim.
-
-There had been risk, of course, risk of the gravest kind. Out of shot,
-the battalion certainly was—out of shot and out of sight. But, on the
-other hand, in the deep chasm of the Oued Zitoun it could not see any
-more than could its antagonists. If its rear-guard was overwhelmed by
-the insurgents from the Segma Gate, if a strong band of tribesmen rode
-up to the southern lip of the chasm and caught the battalion floundering
-below amongst the boulders and the swollen river! Why, there was an end
-of that battalion and, for the moment, of the relief of Fez. But he had
-got through—there was the fact. And by no other way and with no smaller
-risk could he have got through. Paul Ravenel, watching that unprinted
-map upon the floor, over which he bent, had no doubt upon that point. A
-great risk nobly taken for a great end, and adroitly imagined! And with
-what speed they must have covered that difficult ground!
-
-“Well, the little Praslin would lead very well,” he said aloud, but with
-just a hint of effort in his cordiality. “He knows his work.”
-
-“And you are on leave, Paul?”
-
-Marguerite was watching her lover with startled eyes. But Paul noticed
-neither her look nor the urgent appeal of her voice. He was away with
-his company in the bed of the Oued Zitoun, now stumbling over the great
-stones, now flung down headlong by the rush of the rain-swollen torrent
-and pressing on again in the hurried march. He sat tracing with his
-finger on the tiles the convolutions of the river, the point where the
-battalion must leave its shelter and march through the gardens to the
-gates—lost to all else. And Marguerite, watching him, caught at any
-reason which could reassure her.
-
-Of course, Paul was unconsciously expressing the regret of a true
-soldier that his company had gone upon difficult and hazardous service
-without him, and a soldier’s interest in a brilliant manœuvre
-successfully accomplished. His absorption meant no more than that.
-But—but—his cry, “I am on leave,” startled out of him a challenge, an
-obstinate defiance, harsh with pain, rang in her ears still, argue as
-she might. In spite of herself, an appalling suspicion flickered like
-lightning through her mind and went out—and flickered again.
-
-She heard Paul asking questions of Selim and Selim answering. But she
-was asking of herself a question which made all other questions of
-little significance. If her suspicion were true, could his love for her
-remain? Could it live strongly and steadily after so enormous a
-sacrifice? Wouldn’t it die in contempt of himself and hatred of her? If
-Paul Ravenel had looked at Marguerite Lambert at this moment he would
-have seen the haggard dancing girl of the Villa Iris, as he had seen her
-under the grape-vine of the balcony with her seven francs clenched in
-her hand.
-
-Paul, however, was giving his attention to Selim. The quarter of the
-hospitals and the Consulates was now thought to be safe, though the
-Moors, uplifted by their success, had planned to attack it that night.
-An attempt had been made by a company of Philipot’s battalion to force
-the Souk-Ben-Safi and its intricate, narrow streets, but the company had
-been driven back. A second company had been sent out to capture and hold
-the Bab-el-Mahroud, but it was now beleaguered and fighting for its
-life. Another section was at the Bab Fetouh, in the south of the town,
-under fire from the small mosque of Tamdert. A good many isolated
-Europeans had been rescued from the houses, and brought into the
-protected quarter, but Fez, as a whole, was still in the hands of the
-insurgents.
-
-At this point Paul Ravenel broke in with a sharp question.
-
-“You spoke to no one of this house?”
-
-Selim shook his head.
-
-“To no one, Sidi.”
-
-“To none of the French soldiers? To no friend of the French? You are
-sure, Selim? You are very sure? There were no Europeans to be rescued
-from this house? Answer me truthfully!”
-
-Never was question more insistently expressed. Why?—why?—why? . . .
-Marguerite found herself asking whilst her heart sank. That their secret
-might still be kept, its sweetness preserved for them? No, that reason
-was inadequate. Why, then? Because the danger was over? But it was not
-over. So much Selim had made very clear. The few troops had been
-withdrawn to the protected quarter of the Consulates. The detachments
-outside were hard put to it. The city of Fez was still in the hands of
-the insurgents. Why then? Why the eagerness that the French should know
-nothing of this secret house? Oh, there was an answer, dared she but
-listen to it! An answer with consequences as yet only dimly suspected.
-If it was the true answer!—Marguerite sat stunned. How was she to get
-away quite by herself that she might think her problem out, without
-betraying the trouble of her mind to Paul?
-
-It was Paul himself who made escape easy for her. He dismissed Selim and
-said to Marguerite:
-
-“I’ll go up on the roof, my dear, for a little while. The rain has
-stopped, but, dressed as you are, it wouldn’t be wise for you to come.”
-
-The excuse was feeble, and he spoke looking away from Marguerite—a rare
-thing with him. But Marguerite welcomed the excuse and had no eyes for
-the shifty look of him as he made it.
-
-“Very well,” she said, in a dull voice, and Paul went quickly up the
-stairs.
-
-Selim’s story had moved him to the depths of his soul. He was conscious
-of an actual nausea. “I should make the sacrifice again.” He repeated a
-phrase which had been growing familiar to him during this day, repeated
-it with a stubborn emphasis. But he was beginning to understand dimly
-what the sacrifice was to cost him. Soldiering was his business in life.
-He was sealed to it. He had known it when he stood in his father’s death
-room on the islet off the coast of Spain; and when he sat over Colonel
-Vanderfelt’s wine in the dining room looking out upon the moonlit
-garden; but never so completely as now when his thoughts were with the
-men of his company stumbling in the river bed, and his feet were
-dragging up the stairs to the roof.
-
-“I must be alone for a little while, otherwise Marguerite will guess the
-truth.”
-
-It was an instinct rather than a formulated thought which drove him
-upwards. He dreaded Marguerite’s swift intuitions, that queer way she
-had of reaching certainty, cleaving her way to it like a bird through
-the air. He drew a long breath as he crept out upon the roof. He was
-alone now, and, sinking down upon the cushions underneath the parapet,
-he wrestled with his grief, letting it have its way up here in the
-darkness so that he might confine it the more surely afterwards. For an
-hour on this first night of the revolt he remained alone upon the
-roof-top whilst Marguerite, separated from him by the height of the
-beleaguered house, sat amongst the lighted candles in the room by the
-court, steeling herself to a sacrifice which should equal his.
-
-When she was sure of herself she wrapped a dark cloak about her shining
-frock and climbed in her turn to the roof. But she moved very silently,
-and when she raised her head above the trap she saw her lover stretched
-upon the terrace, his turban thrown aside, his face buried in his arms,
-his whole attitude one of almost Oriental grief. He was unaware of her
-until she crouched by his side and, with something maternal in the
-loving pity of her hands, gently stroked his head.
-
-“Paul!” she whispered, and he sprang swiftly up. She got a glimpse of a
-tortured face, and then he dropped by her side and, putting his arms
-about her, caught her to his heart.
-
-“My dear! My dear!” he said.
-
-“Paul,” she began, in a breaking voice, but Paul would not listen. He
-pointed his arm westwards over the parapet.
-
-“Look!”
-
-In their neighbourhood all was quiet, though here and there a building
-was burning near enough to light up from time to time their faces. But
-away in the southwest a broad red glare canopied the quarter and flames
-leapt and sank.
-
-“What is that?” asked Marguerite, distracted from her purpose.
-
-“The Mellah,” replied Paul. “They have looted and burnt it. It’s the
-rule and custom. Whatever the cause of an uprising, the Mellah is the
-first to suffer.”
-
-Marguerite had never set foot in that quarter. Paul described it to
-her—its dirty and crowded alleys, its blue-washed houses jammed
-together and packed with rich treasures and gaudy worthlessness,
-gramophones blaring out some comic song of London or Paris, slatternly
-women and men, ten thousand of them, and then the bursting in of the
-gates.
-
-“And the Jews themselves! What has become of them?” she asked, with a
-shudder.
-
-“God knows!”
-
-Unarmed, pounded like sheep within their high walls, they were likely to
-have been butchered like sheep, too.
-
-“There’s a small new gate, however, leading to their cemetery. They may
-have found that way free,” said Paul, without any confidence. But, as a
-fact, they had escaped whilst their houses were being plundered. The
-gardens of the Sultan’s Palace, which adjoined, had been swiftly thrown
-open to them, and at this very moment they were camping there without
-food or money or shelter—except the lucky ones who had made little
-family groups in the empty cages of Mulai Hafid’s menagerie between the
-lions and the jaguars.
-
-“Paul”—Marguerite began a second time, but now a rattle of firing and a
-distant clamour of fierce cries broke out upon their left hand. Paul
-Ravenel turned in the direction of the noise eagerly, and as Marguerite
-turned with him, once more her attention was arrested. From a
-semi-circle of streets a blaze of light across which thick volumes of
-smoke drifted, rose above the house-tops, so that the faces of the two
-watchers were lit up as by a sunset.
-
-“It is the attack upon the Consulates,” said Paul. “It will fail. There
-are troops enough now to hold it.”
-
-On the other side of the city, however, to the north, it was a different
-matter. By the Bab-el-Mahroud the French outpost was hard-pressed. Paul
-was listening with all his intentness.
-
-“It sounds as if our ammunition was running short,” he said, in a low,
-grave voice; and this time Marguerite was not to be denied. Kneeling up,
-she caught Paul by the arms as he sat, and turned him toward her. The
-light, strong and bright, was sweeping across his face in waves.
-
-“Paul, is it true?” she asked, searching his eyes.
-
-Paul Ravenel had no need to ask what was true; he had no heart to deny
-its truth. The thing which most he dreaded had come to pass. Marguerite
-knew what he had done. He had been certain that she knew from the moment
-when she had laid her hand upon his head.
-
-“Yes,” he answered, meeting her gaze. “It is true.”
-
-“You are not on leave!”
-
-“No.”
-
-“You have deserted!”
-
-Paul’s face twitched with a spasm of pain, but he did not take his eyes
-from Marguerite.
-
-“Yes,” he said.
-
-Marguerite shook him gently as one might shake a wayward child.
-
-“But you can’t do that, Paul.”
-
-“I have done it, Marguerite.”
-
-“Oh, Paul—you can’t have understood what you were doing! You can’t have
-thought!”
-
-“I have thought of everything.”
-
-“You have sacrificed your honour.”
-
-“I have you.”
-
-“Your career.”
-
-“I have you.”
-
-“You have lost every friend.”
-
-“What do I care about friend’s, Marguerite, when I have you?”
-
-She let go of his arms with such an expression of grief and despair upon
-her face as cut him to the heart to see. She bowed her forehead upon the
-palms of her hands and burst into tears. Paul drew her close to him,
-seeking to comfort her.
-
-“We shall be together, Marguerite, always. Yesterday night, when I
-foretold you of these massacres—you took it lightly because we were
-together. You seemed to say nothing in the world mattered so long as we
-were together.”
-
-“But don’t you see, Paul”—she drew herself away and raised her face,
-down which tears were running—“we have been both of us alone
-to-night—already. You here on the roof—I in the court below—and we
-wanted to be alone, yes, my dear—why deny it, since I know? We wanted
-to be alone, each of us with our miserable thoughts. . . . In a little
-while you’ll hate me.”
-
-“No,” he said, violently. “That could never be.”
-
-She bent her head over his hands and pressed them to her eyes, wetting
-them with her tears.
-
-“Paul,” she whispered between her sobs, “I can’t take such a sacrifice.
-Oh, my dear, you should have left me with my seven francs and my broken
-bundle on that balcony in Casablanca.”
-
-Paul stooped and kissed her hair.
-
-“Marguerite, I wouldn’t have left you there for anything in the world.
-From the moment I saw you there was no world for me, except the world in
-which you and I moved step by step and hand-in-hand.”
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XVI
-
-
- Marguerite’s Way Out
-
-Gradually the attack upon the Consulates died away. The waving light
-from the blaze of torches in the ring of streets about that quarter
-diminished, and darkness came again to the watchers upon the roof top.
-They sat huddled together in silence. Marguerite’s broken sobbing had
-ceased. Above them the bright stars wheeled in a sky of velvet. Only
-away to the north, where the beleaguered post still held out at the
-Bab-el-Mahroud, was there now any sound of firing, or any faint clamour
-of voices. The troubled city rested, waiting for daylight.
-
-Paul became conscious that Marguerite was stirring out of the
-abandonment of grief in which she had lain. He felt her supple body
-stiffen in his arms. Some idea, some plan perhaps, had occurred to her
-of which he must beware; all the more because she did not speak of it.
-He was pondering what that plan might be, when above their heads, in
-their very ears it seemed, the first mueddin on the balcony of his
-minaret launched over the city his vibrant call to prayer.
-
-The sound startled them both so that they clung together.
-
-“Don’t move,” whispered Paul.
-
-“The Companions of the Sick!” said Marguerite, in a low voice. “My dear,
-we shall need them to-night as much as any two in Fez.”
-
-They waited for a few moments. Then they crept swiftly and silently to
-the hatchway and closed it above their heads. In Marguerite’s room Paul
-lighted the candles. Marguerite was wearing the little frock of white
-and silver in which she had dressed the night before, and she let the
-dark cloak slip from her shoulders and fall about her feet.
-
-“Paul,” she said, joining her hands together upon her breast in appeal.
-“I want you to do something—for me. You can walk safely through the
-streets. Dressed as you are, no one will know you. No one will suspect
-you. If you are spoken to, you can answer. You are Ben Sedira the
-Meknasi. I want you to go at once to the Protected quarter.”
-
-“Why, Marguerite?”
-
-“You can rejoin your battalion.”
-
-“No.”
-
-“Oh, you can, Paul! You can make yourself known. They will let you
-through their barricades.”
-
-“It is too late,” said Paul.
-
-Marguerite would not accept the quiet statement.
-
-“No,” she pleaded, her eyes eager, her mouth trembling. “I have been
-thinking it out, my dear, up there on the roof. You can make an excuse.
-You were seized yesterday night after you had visited the Headquarters.
-You were pulled from your horse. You were kept imprisoned and escaped
-to-night.”
-
-Paul shook his head.
-
-“No one would believe that story, Marguerite. The people of Fez are
-making no prisoners.”
-
-“Then you took refuge in the house of a friend! You have many friends in
-Fez, Paul. A word from you and any one of them will back you up and say
-he gave you shelter. It’ll be so easy, Paul, if you’ll only listen.”
-
-“And meanwhile, Marguerite, what of you?”
-
-She was waiting for that question with her answer ready upon her lips.
-
-“Yes. I have thought of that too, Paul. I shall be quite safe here now
-by myself. They have searched this house already. They went away
-satisfied with your story. They will not come here again.”
-
-Paul smiled at her tenderly. She stood before him with so eager a flush
-upon her face, a light so appealing in her eyes. Only this morning—was
-it so short a time ago as this morning?—yes, only this morning she had
-been terrified, even with him at her side, because they were shut in
-within this house without windows, because they could see nothing, know
-nothing, and must wait and wait with their hearts fluttering at a cry,
-at the crack of a rifle, at the sound of a step. Now her one thought was
-to send him forth, to endure alone the dreadful hours of ignorance and
-expectation, to meet, if needs must, the loneliest of deaths, so that
-his honour might be saved and his high career retained.
-
-“You are thinking too much of me, Marguerite,” he said, gently.
-
-Marguerite shook her head.
-
-“I am thinking of myself, my dear, just as much as I am thinking of you.
-I am thinking of your love for me. What am I without it?”
-
-“Nothing will change that,” protested Paul.
-
-Marguerite smiled wistfully.
-
-“My dear, how many lovers have used and listened to those words? Is
-there one pair that hasn’t? I am looking forward, Paul, to when this
-trouble is over—to the best that is possible for us two if we are alive
-when it is over. Your way! Flight, concealment for the rest of our lives
-and a bond of disgrace to hold us together instead of a bond of love
-which has done no harm to any one and has given a world of happiness to
-both of us. Paul, my way is the better way! Oh, believe it and leave me!
-Paul, I am pleading for myself—I am!—and”—the light went out of her
-eyes, her head and her body drooped a little; he had never seen anything
-so forlorn as Marguerite suddenly looked—“and, oh, ever so much more
-than you imagine!” she added, wistfully.
-
-Paul took her by the arm which hung listlessly at her side.
-
-“My dear, I can invent no story which would save me. The first shot was
-fired at noon to-day, not yesterday. Nothing can alter that. And even if
-it could be altered, I won’t leave you to face these horrors alone. I
-brought you to Fez—don’t let us forget that! I hid you in this house.
-My place is here with you.”
-
-But whilst he was speaking Ravenel had a feeling that he had not reached
-to the heart of the plan which she had formed upon the roof. The sudden
-change in her aspect, the quick drop from eager pleading to a forlorn
-hopelessness, the wistful cry, “I am pleading for myself ever so much
-more than you imagine!”—No, he had not the whole of her intention.
-There was more in her mind than the effort to persuade him to leave her.
-There was a provision, a remedy, if persuasion failed.
-
-Paul let her arm go and drew back a step or two until he leaned against
-a table of walnut wood set against the wall. Marguerite turned to the
-dressing-table and stood playing absently with her little ornaments, her
-brushes, and her combs. Then she surprised him by another change of
-mood. The eager, tender appeal, the sudden hopelessness were followed
-now by a tripping flippancy.
-
-“Fancy your caring so much for me, Paul!” she cried, and she tittered
-like a schoolgirl. “A little dancing thing from the Villa Iris! I am not
-worth it. Am I, Paul?”
-
-She turned to him, soliciting “Yes” for an answer, smiling with her lips
-though she could not with her eyes, and keeping these latter lowered so
-that he should not see them. “Well, since your silence tells me so
-politely that I am, I’ll give up trying to persuade you to leave me.”
-She yawned. “I am tired to death, Paul. I shall sleep to-night. And
-you?”
-
-She cocked her head on one side with a coquettish gaiety, false to her
-at any time, and never so false to her as now. To Paul, whose memory had
-warned him for the second time that day, it was quite dreadful to see.
-
-“I shall watch in the court below,” he said, and he moved a step or two
-away from the little table against the wall.
-
-“Then go, or I shall fall asleep where I stand,” said Marguerite, and
-she led him to the wide doors opening on to the landing. “I shall leave
-the doors open, so that you will be within call.”
-
-She gave him a little push which was more of a caress than a push, and
-suddenly caught him back to her. Her eyes were raised now, her arms were
-about his neck.
-
-“Paul,” she whispered, and both eyes and lips were smiling gravely,
-“whatever happens to me, my dear, I shall owe you some wonderful months
-of happiness. Months which I had dreamed of, and which proved more
-wonderful than any dreams. Thank you, dear one! Thank you a thousand
-times!”
-
-She kissed him upon the lips and laid her hand upon his cheek and stood
-apart from him.
-
-“Good-night, Paul.”
-
-Paul Ravenel answered her with a curious smile.
-
-“You might be saying good-bye to me, Marguerite.”
-
-Marguerite shook her head with determination.
-
-“I shall never say good-bye to you, Paul, not even if this very second
-we were to hear the assassins surging up the stairs,” she said, her eyes
-glowing softly into his, and a sure faith making her face very
-beautiful. “We have broken codes and laws, my dear, both of us. But we
-have both touched, I think, in spite of that, something bigger and finer
-than we had either of us believed was here to touch. And I don’t believe
-that—you and I”—she made a little gesture with her hand between
-herself and him—“the miracle as you called it, of you and me can end
-just snapped off and incomplete. Why, my dear, even if we go right back
-to earth, at the very worst, I believe,” she said, with a smile of
-humour, “some spark of you will kindle some dry tinder of me and make a
-flame to warm a luckier pair of lovers.”
-
-Paul looked at her in silence.
-
-“You talk to me like that!” he said, at length. “And then you try to
-persuade me you weren’t worth while.” He turned the moment of emotion
-with a laugh. “Good-night, Marguerite,” and he went downstairs.
-
-Marguerite waited without moving whilst he descended the stairs and
-crossed the court. She heard him pass into the room with the archway and
-the clocks. He was quite invisible to her now. Therefore, so was she to
-him; and she was standing very close to the doors; just within her
-bedroom—no more. She stepped back silently. There were rugs upon the
-floor, and between the rugs she stepped most carefully lest one of the
-heels of her satin shoes should clack upon the boards. She went straight
-to the little table of walnut wood set against the wall and laid her
-hand upon the drawer. The handle was of brass; she lifted it so that it
-should not rattle, and so stood with an ear towards the stairway,
-listening. But no sound came from the court, there was not a creak of
-any tread on the stairs. Reassured, Marguerite pulled open the drawer a
-little way. The table had been fashioned in a century when tables really
-were made. The drawer slid out smoothly and noiselessly just far enough
-for Marguerite’s hand to slip through the opening.
-
-Her fingers, however, touched nothing. She opened the drawer wider. It
-was empty. Yet it had not been empty that evening when she had changed
-her clothes.
-
-“Paul was standing here,” she said to herself. “Yes, facing me with his
-back to the table, whilst I was talking to him.”
-
-She remembered now that when she had thrown her arms about his neck, as
-he stood in the doorway, he had kept his left hand behind his back. She
-sat down upon the edge of the bed, and a smile flitted across her face.
-
-“I might have known that he would have understood,” she whispered. He
-always had understood from the first moment when, without a word, he had
-called her to him at the Villa Iris. But Marguerite must make sure. She
-stole out on to the landing. From the point where she stood she could
-look down and across the court into the room with the clocks. Paul was
-lying upon the cushions in a muse, looking at something which lay darkly
-gleaming on the out-stretched palm of his hand—her little automatic
-pistol. He had cleaned it and reloaded it and replaced it in the drawer
-that afternoon, after Marguerite had fainted and it had exploded on the
-floor. He had taken it out of the drawer when Marguerite was bidding him
-good-bye a few minutes back. For, mingled with her words, another and a
-coarser voice had been whispering in his ears. “And if it comes—the
-grand passion! She will blow her brains out—the little fool!”
-
-Not from disillusionment, as Henriette with her bitter experience of
-life expected, but to save him, Paul Ravenel, to set him free, whilst
-there was still perhaps a chance that by some deft lie he might hold on
-to his career and his good name. “That, no!” said Paul, and he pushed
-the pistol into his waistbelt and composed himself for his long vigil.
-
-The candles burned down, and one by one flickered out; mueddin succeeded
-mueddin in the minaret; but for their voices the town was quiet; Paul
-Ravenel tired with the anxiety, the sleeplessness, and the inward
-conflicts which through thirty hours had been his share, nodded, dozed,
-and in the end slept. He woke to find the grey of the morning thinning
-the shadows in the house, making it chill and eerie and an abode of
-ghosts. Surely a ghost was stirring in the house with a little flutter
-and hiss of unsubstantial raiment, a ripple of silver and fire—there by
-the balustrade above the patio, now on the stairs. . . . And now Paul
-Ravenel, though he did not move, was wide awake, watching from his dark
-corner with startled eyes. Marguerite was on the stairs, now stopping to
-peer over towards her lover, lest he should have moved, now most
-stealthily descending.
-
-The last mueddin had ceased his chant, a hum of voices rose through the
-still air without the house; the city was waking to another day of
-massacre. And Marguerite was creeping down the stairs. She had not gone
-to bed that night, after all. She was still wearing her white frock with
-the embroidery of silver. She had thrown over her shoulders a glistening
-cloak. She had put on the jewels he had given her. They sparkled in the
-dim light on her bosom—a square sapphire hung on a chain of platinum
-and diamonds which went about her neck—on her wrists, on her shoes, at
-her waist.
-
-“Why? Why?” he asked of himself; and as Marguerite reached the foot of
-the stairs and stepped into the court, he had the answer to his
-question. For something gleamed in her hand—the great key of the street
-door.
-
-Paul Ravenel was just in time. For with the swiftness and the silence of
-the ghost he had almost taken her to be, Marguerite flashed across the
-patio, and was gone.
-
-“Marguerite!” he cried aloud, as he sprang to his feet, so that the
-house rang with his cry. A sob, a wail of despair answered him, a clink
-as the heavy key dropped from her startled hands. He found her blindly
-fumbling at the bolts, distraught with her need of haste.
-
-“Paul, let me go! Let me go!” she cried.
-
-He lifted her in his arms as one lifts a child and carried her back into
-the court.
-
-“Marguerite!” he whispered. “A step outside that tunnel dressed as you
-are, now that Fez is awake, and—”
-
-“I know, I know,” she interrupted him. “I should be out of your way
-altogether. Oh, Paul, let me go! I have been thinking of it all night. I
-can’t take, all the time, and everything you have that’s dear to you!
-Let me give too—something in return—my life, my dear, that’s worth so
-little. Oh, Paul, let me give it now, when I am ready to give it—before
-my courage goes,” and she struggled and beat upon his breast with her
-small fists in a frenzy.
-
-But he held her close to him. “Poor child, what a night of horror she
-must have lived through,” he reflected. Lying on her bed in the dark,
-waiting for the first gleam of dawn, for the first sounds of the city’s
-awakening, and shutting her eyes and her ears against the terror of
-these savage and wild-eyed fanatics, forbidding her heart to sink before
-the ordeal of her great sacrifice. She had decked herself out in her
-jewels, like that bride of whom she had told him, but for a different
-reason; that she might the sooner attract notice and invite murder.
-
-“It was mad, Marguerite!” he cried, and then, holding her to his heart.
-“But it was splendid!”
-
-Already her strength was waning. She no longer struggled. She hung in
-his arms. Her hands stroked his face.
-
-“Let me go, Paul,” she pleaded, “won’t you? It will be quick. The first
-of them who sees me! Oh, while I can do it. My dear, my dear, I’ll
-gladly die for you, I love you so.”
-
-“Quick?” exclaimed Paul Ravenel, savagely. “You don’t know them! I have
-seen our men on the battlefields. Quick? My dear, they would bind you
-hand and foot and give you to their women to mutilate alive.”
-
-Marguerite uttered a cry and struggled against him no more. He carried
-her up the stairs, undressed her, and put her to bed. She laid her hand
-in his. He would have his way. She gave herself into his keeping and,
-holding fast on to his hand, she fell asleep.
-
-That morning the roar of the guns was louder, and the shells were flying
-over the city.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XVII
-
-
- The Outcasts
-
-That day, the eighteenth of April, broke in gloom. A heavy canopy of
-sullen clouds hung over Fez. Nowhere within eye’s reach was there a
-slant of sunshine. There were no shadows, no flashes of colour. White
-houses and dark gardens and green-tiled mosques all lay very clear and
-near and distinct, but without any of the radiance which on a day of
-sunlight gives to the city so magical a beauty, that a stranger looking
-down upon it can believe that he has wandered into fairyland.
-
-The shells were screaming over Fez from the south. They dispersed the
-Moors holding the North Fort outside the walls, and they destroyed the
-Castle of Sidi Bou Nafa in Fez Djedid, close to the Sultan’s Palace,
-which was held in force by the insurgents. But there were too many
-refugees still hiding and too many Fazi secretly friendly to the French
-to make possible such a bombardment as would reduce the city to terms.
-
-The insurgents were still in possession of every quarter of the town
-except the Sultan’s Palace and the district of the Embassy and
-Consulates. The little post at the Bab-el-Mahroud had been exterminated
-during the night. The company of which that post had been a section,
-under Captain Henry, subsequently to be famous as a general upon a wider
-field, was fighting its way desperately back in the Souk Senadjine.
-Another company sent to join hands with him and occupy the quarter of
-Tala was held up in the Souk-Ben-Safi; and the post at the southern gate
-of Bab Fetouh was in desperate straits. The only gleam that morning was
-the rescue of the guests besieged in the Hôtel de France under the
-covering fire of a platoon stationed on the roof of the British
-Consulate. The screams of the women indeed shrilled from the terraces
-with a fiercer exultation than even on the outbreak of the rising.
-
-Marguerite woke later to the sound of them. She held her hands over her
-ears and called loudly to Paul:
-
-“I want to look at your arm,” she said, when he ran to her.
-
-“It’s going on finely. It can wait until you are dressed.”
-
-“No.”
-
-She slipped her legs out of bed and sat on the edge of it, thrusting her
-feet into her slippers. She wanted to do something at once which would
-take her thoughts from that piercing and inhuman din. Paul brought to
-her the medicine-chest and she dressed and bandaged the half-healed
-wound.
-
-“Thank you, Marguerite. I’ll tell them to get your bath ready,” he said,
-as he turned to go. But the screaming overhead made her blood run cold.
-She could endure the roar of the seventy-fives, the rattle of musketry,
-even the wild yelling of the men; but this cruel frenzy of the
-gaily-dressed women upon the house-tops, never tiring whilst daylight
-lasted, shocked her as something obscene, the screaming of offal-birds,
-not women, a thing not so much unnatural as an accusation against nature
-and the God that made nature. She quickly called her lover back.
-
-“Paul, you took my little pistol from the drawer of my table there last
-night.”
-
-“Well?” said Paul, looking at her in doubt.
-
-“I want you to give it back to me.”
-
-Paul Ravenel hesitated.
-
-“You need not fear,” she continued. “Yesterday I meant to use it—for
-your dear sake as I thought—or rather for both our sakes. But since you
-will keep me with you—why, all that’s over and I shall not use it
-unless there is real need. Listen!”
-
-She lifted her hand and, as she listened, shuddered. “You spoke of those
-women this morning. What they would do to me. I should feel—safe if you
-would give my pistol back to me.”
-
-Paul took it from his belt and laid it on the flat of her hand.
-
-“Thank you,” she said, with a sigh of relief. She sat on the edge of the
-bed, her hair tumbled about her shoulders, smiling at this little weapon
-which could make death swift and easy, like a child delighted with a new
-toy.
-
-Things which make the flesh crawl and the spirit shudder have sometimes
-a curious and dreadful fascination. All through their luncheon these
-strident cries called to Marguerite, drew her like some morbid vice. She
-wanted to creep up on to the roof, to crouch behind the parapet, though
-she knew that her heart would miss its beats and her senses reel on the
-edge of terror. And when Paul Ravenel said:
-
-“Marguerite, I shall lie down on my bed and sleep when we have
-finished,” she realized that it was her own wish which he was uttering.
-She was almost disappointed when he lit a cigar. A cigarette, yes; but a
-cigar! That needs a deal of smoking. “You’ll wake me if there’s need,”
-said Paul. “I think that I shall sleep soundly.”
-
-Marguerite noticed the heaviness of his eyelids, and was filled with
-compunction.
-
-“If I must,” she answered, determining that whatever happened he who had
-hardly slept at all for fifty hours should sleep his sleep out now.
-
-Yet within an hour she had waked him.
-
-Hardly, indeed, had Paul’s eyes closed before she climbed to the roof.
-The terraces of the houses were a very kaleidoscope of shifting colours.
-Orange, scarlet, deep waistbelts of cloth of gold over dresses of purple
-and blue and pink were grouped in clusters here like flower beds. There
-the women moved in and out with frantic gestures like revellers in
-Bedlam. And over all the shrill vibrant pæan like a canopy!
-
-Marguerite watched and listened, shivering—until one house caught and
-riveted her eyes. Beneath her flowed the Karouein river. The farther
-bank was lined with the walls of houses, and about one, a little to
-Marguerite’s right, there was suddenly a great commotion. Marguerite
-lifted her head cautiously above the parapet and looked down. A narrow
-path ran between the houses and the stream, and this path was suddenly
-crowded with men as though they had sprung from the earth. They beat
-upon the door, they fired senselessly at the blind mud walls with
-rifles, they shouted for admittance. And the roof of that one house was
-empty. Marguerite was suddenly aware of it. It was the only empty roof
-in all that row of houses.
-
-The shouts from the path were redoubled. Orders to open became screams
-of exultation, threats of vengeance. Marguerite, looking down from her
-high vantage point, saw the men upon the pathway busy like ants. A group
-of them clustered suddenly. They seemed to stoop, to lengthen themselves
-into line—and now she saw what they were lifting. A huge square long
-beam of wood—a battering ram? Yes, a battering ram. Three times the
-beam was swung against the door to the tune of some monotonous rhythm of
-the East, which breathed of deserts and strange temples and abiding
-wistfulness, curiously out of keeping with the grim violence which was
-used. At the fourth blow the door burst and broke. It was as though a
-river dam had broken and a river torrent leapt in a solid shaft through
-the breach.
-
-For a few moments thereafter nothing was seen by Marguerite. The walls
-of the house were a curtain between her and the tragic stage. She could
-only imagine the overturning of furniture, the pillage of rooms a moment
-since clean and orderly, now a dirty wreckage, a pandemonium of a
-search—and then the empty roof was no longer empty. A man sprang out
-upon it, a man wearing the uniform of a French officer. He had been
-bolted like a rat by dogs.
-
-Clearly his enemies were upon his heels. Marguerite saw him spring over
-the parapet on to the adjoining roof and a cloud of women assail him.
-Somehow he threw them off, somehow he dived and dodged between them,
-somehow he reached the further parapet, found a ladder propped against
-the outside wall, and slid down it on to a third housetop. And as he
-reached the flat terrace, yet another swarm of screaming termagants
-enveloped him. He was borne down to the floor of the room.
-
-For a little while there was a wild tossing of arms, a confusion of
-bodies. It seemed to Marguerite as though all these women had suddenly
-melted into one fabulous monster. Then, with shrieks of joy and
-flutterings of scarves and handkerchiefs, they stood apart, dancing
-flatly on their feet. The officer for his part lay inert and for the
-best of reasons; he was bound hand and foot. . . . And shortly
-afterwards the women lighted a fire. . . .
-
-“A fire?” said Marguerite, in a perplexity. “Why a fire?”
-
-She watched—and then she heard the dreadful loud moan of a man in the
-extremity of pain. In a moment she was shaking Paul Ravenel by the
-shoulder, her face white and quivering, her eyes still looking out in
-horror upon a world incredible.
-
-“Paul! Paul! Wake up!”
-
-Ravenel came slowly out of a deep sleep, with a thought that once more
-the insurgents were about his door. But a few stammering words from
-Marguerite brought him quickly to his feet. He unlocked a cupboard and
-took from it a carbine in a canvas case. He slipped off the case and
-fitted a charged magazine beneath the breech.
-
-“You will wait here, Marguerite.”
-
-Whilst he was speaking he was already on the stair. Marguerite could not
-wait below as he had bidden her. This horror must end. She must know, of
-her own knowledge, that it had ended. She followed Paul as far as the
-mouth of the trap, and came to a stop there, her feet upon the stairs,
-her head just above the level of the roof. The groans of the tortured
-man floated across the open space mingled with the triumphant screams of
-the women.
-
-“Oh, hurry, Paul, hurry,” she cried, and she heard him swear horribly.
-
-The oath meant less than nothing to her. Would he never fire? He was
-kneeling behind the parapet, crouching a little so that not a flutter of
-his haik should be visible, with the barrel of his carbine resting upon
-the bricks. Why didn’t he fire? She stamped upon the stairs in a frenzy
-of impatience. She could not see that the women were perpetually
-shifting and crossing about their victim and obscuring him from Paul
-Ravenel.
-
-At last a moment came when the line of sight was clear; and immediately
-the carbine spoke—once and no more; and all about her in this upper
-city of the air all noises ceased, groans, exultations, everything. It
-was to Marguerite as though the crack of that carbine had suspended all
-creation. In a few seconds the shrill screams broke out again, but there
-could be no doubt about their character. They were screams of terror.
-These, in their turn, dwindled and ceased. Had Marguerite raised her
-head above the parapet now she would have seen that those terraces so
-lately thronged were empty except one on which a fire was burning, and
-where one man in a uniform lay quite still and at peace with a bullet
-through his heart.
-
-But Marguerite was watching Paul, who had sunk down below the edge of
-the parapet and was gazing upwards with startled eyes. Marguerite crept
-to his side.
-
-“What is it?” she whispered.
-
-Paul pointed. Just above their heads a tiny wisp of smoke coiled and
-writhed in the air like an adder.
-
-“If that were seen—” said Paul, in a low voice.
-
-“Yes.”
-
-If that tiny wisp from the smokeless powder of his cartridge were seen
-floating in the air, there would be no doubt from what roof the shot had
-been fired. Paul drew Marguerite down beside him; together they watched.
-There was no wind at all; the air was sluggish and heavy; it seemed to
-them that the smoke was going slowly to curl and weave above their heads
-for ever. It grew diaphanous, parted into fine shreds, tumbled, and at
-last was gone.
-
-The two lovers looked at one another with a faint smile upon their lips.
-But they did not move; they crouched down, seeing nothing but the empty
-sky above their heads.
-
-The danger was not past. At any moment the sound of blows upon their
-door might resound again through the house. Or they might hear a ladder
-grate softly on the outside of this parapet, as it was raised from one
-of the roofs below. They waited there for half an hour. Then a shell
-screamed above their heads and exploded. It was followed by another and
-another.
-
-“They are shelling the Souk-Ben-Safi,” said Paul. “Look! You can see the
-twinkle of the guns.” He pointed out to her the flashes on the hills to
-the east of the town. “That’s the way! Let the guns talk to these
-torturers!” He shook his fist over the town, standing upright now upon
-the roof, his face aflame with anger.
-
-“Paul! Paul!” Marguerite cried in warning.
-
-“There’s no one to see,” he returned, with a savage laugh. “One shell in
-the Souk-Ben-Safi and they’re shivering in their cellars. Come, let us
-go down!”
-
-For an hour the shells screeched above the roof, and Paul, as he cleaned
-his carbine, whistled joyously. He raised his head from his task to see
-Marguerite, very white in the face, clinging to her chair with clenched
-hands, and trying in vain to whistle too.
-
-“I am a brute,” he cried, in compunction. “They won’t touch this house,
-Marguerite! It’s too near the Karouein Mosque. The French are going to
-stay in Morocco. They’ll not touch the Karouein Mosque. There’s no spot
-in Fez safer from our guns.”
-
-Marguerite professed herself reassured, but it did occur to her that
-gunners and even guns might make occasionally a mistake, and she drew a
-very long breath of relief when the bombardment ceased.
-
-Paul Ravenel, however, fell into a restless mood, pacing the court, and
-now and again coming to a stop in front of Marguerite with some word
-upon his lips, which, after all, he did not speak. Marguerite guessed
-it, and after a little struggle made herself his interpreter.
-
-“The bombardment’s over. It will keep Fez quiet for awhile. Even if that
-wisp of smoke was seen, no crowd will come here for an explanation—yet,
-at all events. Why don’t you go outside into the town and get the news?”
-
-The eager light in his eyes told her clearly that she had interpreted
-him aright. But Paul, not knowing the reason which had prompted her,
-sought for another. He looked at Marguerite warily.
-
-“I gave you back your pistol,” he said.
-
-“And I promised not to use it,” she replied.
-
-Paul shifted from one foot to the other, anxious for news, eager, after
-his two days’ confinement in this shell, for action, yet remorseful for
-his eagerness.
-
-“It wouldn’t be fair,” he said, half-heartedly.
-
-“But I want you to go,” she answered, with a glimmer of a smile at this
-man turned shamefaced school-boy who stood in front of her. “You’re wild
-to go really, Paul, and I am in no danger.” She drew a swift breath as
-she said that and hoped that he would not notice it.
-
-Paul Ravenel did not.
-
-“Yes, I am restless, Marguerite,” he said in a burst. “I’ll tell you
-why? Do you know what I did on the roof? What I had to do?”
-
-“You frightened the women away—shot one of them—put an end to their
-fiendishness.”
-
-Paul shook his head.
-
-“That would have been no use, my dear. The man, a brother-officer of
-mine, would still have lain upon that roof in torture and helpless. They
-would have left him there till dark and finished their work then, if he
-were still alive. Can you guess what they were doing? They were burning
-his head slowly.”
-
-“Oh!”
-
-Marguerite had a vision of herself rushing out into the street as only
-that morning she had proposed to do, and meeting the same fate. She
-covered her eyes with her hands.
-
-“I am sorry, dear. I had to tell you, because I have to tell you this
-too. I killed him.”
-
-Marguerite took her hands from her face and stared at her lover.
-
-“I had to,” said Paul, in a dull voice. “There was no other way to save
-him. But, of course, it”—and he sat down suddenly with his hands
-clenched together and his head bowed—“it troubles me dreadfully. Who he
-was I don’t know; his face was blackened with the fire. But he may have
-served with me in the Chaiouïa—he may have marched up with me to
-Fez—we may have sat together on many nights over a camp fire, telling
-each other how clever we were—and I had to kill him, just as one puts a
-horse out of its misery.”
-
-“Oh, my dear,” said Marguerite. She was at his side with her arm about
-his shoulders—comforting him. “I didn’t understand. You could do
-nothing else. And you were quick. He would be the first to thank you.”
-
-Paul took the hand that was laid upon his shoulders gratefully. “No, I
-could do nothing else,” he said. “But I want to move, so that I mayn’t
-think of it.”
-
-“I know,” she said.
-
-She made light of her own isolation in that house. Paul, it was plain to
-her, was in a dangerous mood. Horror at the thing which he had been
-forced to do, anger at the stroke of fate which had set him to the
-tragic choice between his passion and his duty, bitterness against the
-men in power who had refused to listen, were seething within him. He was
-in a mood to run riot in a berserk rage at a chance word, a chance
-touch, to kill and kill and kill, until he in turn was borne down and
-stamped to death. But Marguerite stood aside. One appeal—it would be
-enough if only her eyes looked it—and without a doubt he would stay.
-Yes, stay and remember that he had been stayed! She did not even bid him
-take care or hurry back to her. She called Selim and bade him stand by
-the outer door.
-
-Paul took a great staff in his hand and came back to Marguerite, and
-kissed her on the lips.
-
-“Thank you,” he said. “How you know!”
-
-“I pay my little price, Paul, for a very big love,” and as was her way,
-she turned off the moment of emotion with a light word and a laugh.
-“There! Run along, and mind you don’t get your feet wet!”
-
-For three hours thereafter she sat alone in the court, with her pistol
-in her hand, paying her little price; outside the noise of a town in
-tumult, inside the ticking of a clock. And darkness came.
-
- * * * * *
-
-Marguerite had her reward. Paul Ravenel returned at eight o’clock, his
-robes covered with dust and mud, his body tired, but his black mood
-gone. He dressed himself after his bath in the grey suit of a European,
-and as they sat at dinner he gave Marguerite his good news. The back of
-the rebellion was broken. The tribes which were gathering in the South
-and East of the town had been dispersed by the artillery.
-
-“Moinier and his column will be here before they can gather again. They
-were the great danger, Marguerite. For if they had once got into Fez
-they would have looted it from end to end. Friend’s house or enemy’s
-house, Fasi or Christian, would have been all the same to those
-gentlemen.”
-
-The rising was premature. That had been the cause of its failure. The
-quarter of the Consulates and the Embassy had not been carried by storm
-on the first day. A number of the Askris who had joined the insurgents
-under fear, were now returning to their duties. The great dignitaries of
-the Maghzen were in a hurry to protest their loyalty by returning the
-few wounded prisoners and such dead bodies of the French soldiers as
-they could collect, to the headquarters at the Hospital.
-
-“There’s still a post very hard-pressed at the Bab Fetouh. An effort was
-made to relieve it this afternoon—” Paul Ravenel broke off abruptly
-with a sudden smile upon his face and a light of enjoyment in his eyes.
-“I expect that they will try now from Dar-Debibagh outside the walls. It
-should be easier that way,” he said hurriedly.
-
-Something had happened that afternoon of which he had not told
-Marguerite, and to which he owed his high spirits. Marguerite was well
-aware of it. She had not a doubt that he was hiding from her some rash
-act of which he was at once rather ashamed and very glad; and it amused
-her to note how clever he thought himself in concealing it from her.
-What had happened in that attempt to relieve the post at the Bab Fetouh?
-Marguerite did not ask, having a fine gift of silence. She had Paul back
-safe and sound, and the worst of their dangers was over. They were gay
-once more that night, looking upon it as a sort of sanctuary between the
-dangers of the past two days and the troubles which awaited them in the
-future.
-
-“Shall we go up on the roof?” Marguerite asked, looking at the clock.
-
-“We will go halfway up to the roof,” replied Paul, and Marguerite
-laughed as he put out the candles.
-
-The next day the rebellion was over. A battalion from Meknes with a
-section of mitrailleuses marched in at three o’clock in the afternoon,
-having covered the sixty-five kilometres in a single stage. An order was
-given that every house which wished to avoid bombardment must fly the
-tricolour flag on the following morning, and Fez was garnished as for a
-festival. Never was there so swift a change. On every housetop daybreak
-saw the flag of France, and though the women thronged the terraces as
-yesterday, they were as silent as the bricks of their parapets. By a
-curious chance the pall of sullen rain-charged clouds, which for four
-days had hung low, was on this morning rolled away, and the city
-shimmered to the sun.
-
-Paul and Marguerite watched the strange spectacle, hidden behind their
-roof wall; and their thoughts were busy with the same question:
-
-“What of us now—the outcasts?”
-
-Paul looked across the city to Fez Djedid and the East. From that
-quarter General Moinier’s column was advancing. One day—two days
-perhaps—three days at the most, and it would be here at the Bab Segma.
-There was little time!
-
-He turned to find Marguerite’s eyes swimming in tears.
-
-“Paul, can nothing be done to give you back your own place?”
-
-“Nothing, Marguerite. Let us face it frankly! I went to Headquarters and
-warned them. Therefore I knew the danger. All the more, therefore, my
-place that night was with my company. Nothing can get over that.”
-
-Marguerite with a sob buried her face in her hands.
-
-“What I have cost you, Paul!”
-
-“What you have given me, Marguerite!” he replied, and fell into a
-silence. When he spoke to her again he spoke with his eyes averted from
-her face, lest she should read more than he meant her to in his.
-
-“Of course, Marguerite, you have done no wrong. . . . We have got to
-consider that, my dear. There isn’t really any reason why you should pay
-too. You wanted to take the risk. . . .”
-
-“The certainty, Paul, as it turned out. I should not be in the sunshine
-on this roof now if you had listened to me,” she interrupted; but Paul
-was not to be led aside.
-
-“What I mean is that you are not responsible. I am, I alone. Therefore,
-there’s no reason why you should cut yourself off from all the things
-which make life lovely,” he continued. “For it means that, my dear. All
-the things which make life lovely will go.”
-
-“Except one,” said Marguerite, quietly, “and that one outweighs all the
-rest.”
-
-Still Paul would not turn to her.
-
-“Think well, Marguerite!” and he spoke without stirring, in a level,
-toneless voice, so that no spark of his desire might kindle her to a
-sacrifice which, after days, monotonous and lonely, would lead her
-bitterly to regret. “Think carefully! You can travel in a little while
-to the coast. You can go home. No one can gainsay you. You will not be
-poor any more. In a few years you will be able to look back upon all
-this as a dream. . . .”
-
-“Don’t, Paul!” she said, in a low voice. “You hurt me. You make me
-ashamed. How could I go home and live, leaving you here?”
-
-But what hurt and shamed her most, she could not tell him. It was the
-knowledge that this hero of hers, this—her man who could do no wrong,
-had done such wrong for her that he was now an outcast who must dodge
-and duck his head, and slink unrecognized in the shadows. Her pain,
-however, was evident enough in the quiver of her voice and the tight
-clasp of her hand upon his arm.
-
-“Look at me, Paul!”
-
-She waited until he had turned, and her great eyes, dewy and tender,
-rested upon his.
-
-“Where you go, I go. That was settled for us at the Villa Iris on the
-night we met, perhaps even before that.”
-
-Paul argued no more. He was kneeling in front of her upon a cushion. He
-took her two hands, and, lifting them, he bowed his head and pressed the
-palms against his face.
-
-“Then let us go down and make our plans,” he said. “For what we do, we
-must do very quickly.”
-
-His urgency startled her.
-
-“But this house is not known. We are safe here!”
-
-Paul glanced again towards the east. He had the look of the hunted.
-
-“There’s a man drawing nearer to us every minute who will rake through
-Fez with a fine-tooth comb to find out what has become of me,” he said.
-
-“An enemy?” Marguerite asked, in dismay.
-
-“No; my friend, Gerard de Montignac. He is on Moinier’s staff.”
-
-“But he will remain your friend,” cried Marguerite, “even if he—”
-
-Paul Ravenel completed the sentence for her.
-
-“Discovers that I deserted. Not he! Perhaps, just because he was my
-friend, he would be harder than any other.”
-
-Underneath the good-fellowship, the fun, the delight in the gaieties and
-ornaments of life, Gerard de Montignac had all the hard practical logic
-of the French character. Certain things are not permissible. For those
-who do them there is a law, and that is the end of the matter. And at
-the very head of the things that are not permissible is the tampering
-with the military oath.
-
-“Friendship will lead Gerard to search for me in every corner,” said
-Paul. That was the danger. For if Gerard stumbled upon the truth in his
-search, the friend would turn straightway into the hunter.
-
-Paul followed Marguerite down the stairs, and they talked earnestly for
-a long while. Then Paul arranged his haik about his turban, slipped his
-djellaba of wool over his linen caftan, and, going out, was very busy in
-Fez all that day.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XVIII
-
-
- Captain Laguessière’s Report
-
-On the twenty-first of April, three days later, Gerard de Montignac rode
-into Fez at ten o’clock of the morning behind General Moinier. He was
-lodged at the Auvert Hospital and as he came out of his room he passed
-in the corridor a face which he remembered. He turned on the instant.
-
-“Baumann!”
-
-Baumann was that short stockish Alsatian belonging to the Department of
-Native Affairs, whom Gerard many months before had sought at the Villa
-Iris. He shook Gerard’s hand with deferential warmth.
-
-“Captain de Montignac! How can I serve you?”
-
-The sight of Gerard always made Baumann think of the Bois de Bologne and
-brought to his nostrils a smell of Paris. “Stylish” was Baumann’s
-epithet for this slim razor-like being.
-
-“You can tell me for a second time how it goes with my _grand serieux_,
-and where he is to be found.”
-
-Baumann was enchanted by the familiar allusion. It made him out as an
-intimate of Captain de Montignac. But he was baffled too.
-
-“The name would help,” he said, hesitating.
-
-“Oh, Paul Ravenel, of course,” replied Gerard impatiently, and Baumann’s
-face lengthened. He fidgeted uncomfortably on his feet. Yes, Paul
-Ravenel, to be sure! Captain de Montignac had been uneasy about Paul
-Ravenel in Casablanca, when there was really no occasion for uneasiness.
-This time, however, the case was very different.
-
-“Alas, my Captain, I can give you no news of your friend at all. Many
-officers were caught at a disadvantage. We are afraid—yes, we are all
-very much afraid.”
-
-Gerard, with his legs apart and his hands thrust into the pockets of his
-riding-breeches, looked at his twittering companion for a moment. Then
-he said abruptly:
-
-“Let me hear!”
-
-Baumann had an uncomfortable little story to tell. Late on the night of
-the sixteenth, the night before the massacres openly began, Captain
-Ravenel had ridden up to the door of the hospital with a native servant
-carrying a lantern in front of him. He was labouring under a great
-anxiety and distress. Baumann himself received Captain Ravenel and heard
-his story. Captain Ravenel had assured him that the Askris would revolt
-immediately, and that there would be a massacre of the white people
-throughout the city.
-
-“And you didn’t believe Paul Ravenel?” thundered Gerard de Montignac.
-Baumann was in a haste to exculpate himself.
-
-“I waked up the two Intelligence Officers, Colonel Renaud and Captain
-Brouarre,” he said. “They came down in their pyjamas. We went into the
-room on the right of the entrance here, and the Captain told us all
-again many bad things which have since been fulfilled.”
-
-“And you wouldn’t believe Paul Ravenel!” Gerard looked at Baumann with a
-bitter amazement. “He gave you the warning, he, the wise one, and you
-thought he was exaggerating like some panic-stricken rich Fasi.”
-
-“We hoped he was exaggerating,” said the unhappy Baumann. “You see, our
-hands were tied. Reports that disturbances were likely had gone to the
-Embassy before and had been not very civilly received. It was an order
-that no similar reports should be presented. It was late at night. We
-could do nothing.”
-
-Gerard could read into the halting sentences all that Baumann was not
-the man to say.
-
-“Well?” he asked, curtly. “What of Paul?”
-
-Paul, very disappointed, had mounted his horse again and ridden off to
-the Bab Segma on his way to the camp at Dar-Debibagh.
-
-“But he never reached the camp. He has not been seen since. We are all
-very much afraid.”
-
-It was quite clear that Baumann had no hope at all that Paul Ravenel
-would ever be seen again.
-
-“Most of our people scattered through Fez have been accounted for,” he
-added. “Many were rescued and brought here to safety. The bodies of
-others, too, but not of all. There has been no means of making
-enquiries.”
-
-“That of course I understand,” said Gerard de Montignac, as he turned
-sorrowfully away.
-
-Gerard was a monarchist. Some day the French would have a king again,
-when there was a claimant worth his salt. Meanwhile he was heart and
-soul for France, whatever its régime. So his first grief now was for the
-loss to France of the great soldier that was surely to be—nay, that was
-already beginning to be. He had lost a good comrade and friend too.
-These losses must be paid for—as soon as there was leisure to exact
-payment—and paid for in full.
-
-Meanwhile he went about his work. On the twenty-second the troops
-occupied the city. The two following days were taken up in the
-disarmament of the population. Yet other two days were given to
-pleadings and arguments and exhortations to Paris and the Civil
-Authorities for permission to declare a state of siege. Only when this
-permission was reluctantly granted and the order made, could any of the
-General’s staff unbutton their tunics and give a little time to their
-own affairs.
-
-Gerard’s first move was to ride out to the camp at Dar-Debibagh, whither
-Paul’s battalion of tirailleurs had now returned. There he found the
-little Praslin now in command of Paul’s company, and the little Praslin
-had information of importance to give to him.
-
-“Captain Ravenel rode back with me to the camp from the Sultan’s Palace
-on the evening of the sixteenth, after the great storm,” said Praslin.
-“He was very glad that the storm had delayed for three days the
-departure of the Mission.”
-
-“He knew already, then, that afternoon, that the massacres were coming!”
-said Gerard.
-
-“No! I should say not. He was quite frank about the whole position of
-affairs here, as he saw it. If he had imagined that Fez itself was going
-to rise he would have said so, I am sure. What he did believe was that a
-serious attack would be made upon the Mission out in the bled, on its
-way to the coast.”
-
-“He was afraid that the escort was not strong enough?”
-
-“He certainly thought that,” replied Praslin, slowly, and in a voice
-which suggested that he did not consider this explanation at all
-adequate to explain Paul’s satisfaction at the postponement of the
-march. “But fear doesn’t enter into the matter at all. There was
-something more. I got the impression that he just hated the idea of
-going down to the coast if only for a few weeks. He wanted to stay on
-here in Fez. An attack on the line of march! That he would have
-considered as in the day’s work. No. He didn’t want to leave Fez.
-Curious! Wasn’t it?”
-
-Gerard glanced sharply at Lieutenant Praslin.
-
-“Oho!” he exclaimed, softly. “Curious? Yes! But then Paul Ravenel was
-never like the rest of us.”
-
-He remained silent for a little while, turning some quite new thought
-over and over uneasily in his mind.
-
-“Well?” he said, waking up again.
-
-“After we had returned here, he changed into a dry uniform, for we were
-both wet through, and told me that he was going to dine with a friend in
-Fez,” Praslin resumed. “I reminded him that there was a battalion parade
-at six the next morning.”
-
-“Yes?”
-
-“He answered that he had not forgotten and rode off.”
-
-“And that was the last you heard of him?” asked Gerard de Montignac.
-
-“No!”
-
-“Oh?”
-
-“It was the last I saw of him,” Praslin corrected.
-
-“What do you mean?” asked Gerard de Montignac.
-
-“Five minutes after Captain Ravenel had gone, a native came to the camp
-and asked for him. He carried a letter.”
-
-Gerard’s face lit up.
-
-“A letter? What became of it?”
-
-“It was taken by Captain Ravenel’s orderly and placed on the table in
-his tent.”
-
-“Yes?”
-
-“The next morning I saw it there and took charge of it. It was addressed
-in Arabic.”
-
-“You have got it still?”
-
-“Yes!”
-
-“Let me see it!”
-
-Gerard reminded the little Praslin of some lean sharp-nosed pointer
-which somewhere in the stubble has picked up a scent. Praslin led him to
-his tent, unlocked a leather satchel and tipped out a number of letters
-on to his bed.
-
-“Here it is!”
-
-He handed a paper, not an envelope, folded and sealed and superscribed
-in Arabic characters, to Gerard. Gerard almost snatched at it. But once
-he had it in his hands, he was no longer so sure. He twiddled it between
-his fingers and gingerly. He sat down in Praslin’s camp chair and looked
-at Praslin and looked at the letter. He seemed to be afraid of what he
-might read in it. Finally, in a burst, he cried:
-
-“I shall open it.”
-
-“But of course,” said the little Praslin.
-
-Gerard broke the seal and read. Praslin wondered what he had dreaded to
-find written upon that paper, so evident was his relief now. It was the
-letter from Si El Hadj Arrifa which had just missed Paul Ravenel on the
-night of the sixteenth. It began with the usual flowery protestations
-and ended with an apologetic request that Paul should not come into Fez
-that night.
-
-“This makes everything easier,” said Gerard, springing up from his
-chair. “I shall keep this letter, Praslin.”
-
-He returned with it in his pocket and at once made inquiries as to what
-was known of Si El Hadj Arrifa. The warning on the face of it was a sign
-of goodwill to France. Yes, but some of these Fasi were very foxy
-people. This letter arriving at the camp just too late to save Paul
-Ravenel’s life, but in heaps of time to establish Si El Hadj Arrifa’s
-good name for loyalty, might easily have been despatched with those two
-objects. It was all quite in keeping with the sly furtive character of
-the men of Fez. However, Gerard was soon satisfied on that point. Si El
-Hadj Arrifa was of the real friends. Gerard accordingly knocked upon his
-door that very night.
-
-He was received with much ceremony and a great warmth of welcome; not to
-be wondered at, since the Moor had been sitting cowering behind his
-stoutly-barred door ever since the night of the sixteenth. Gerard made
-haste to put the timid man at his ease.
-
-“All the weapons have been collected. All the gates are held by armed
-posts. A state of siege is proclaimed so that violence can be dealt with
-sternly and at once,” he said. But even then he must not put the
-questions burning on his tongue. France was to remain in Morocco. Very
-well! Then even in small things must the ways of the country be
-respected. Gerard had the patience which is the kernel and centre of
-good manners. He sat through the five brewings of green tea,
-ceremoniously conversing. Only then did he come to the reason of his
-visit.
-
-“It has been my good fortune, O, Si El Hadj Arrifa, to bring you
-excellent news to-night. Would that I could hear news as excellent from
-you! My friend and your friend, Captain Ravenel, dined with you one
-night and rode away from your door, and that night he disappeared.”
-
-Si El Hadj Arrifa struck a bell which stood by his side and spoke a word
-to the negress who answered it. He turned again to Gerard.
-
-“I have sent for my servant Mohammed, who carried the lantern in front
-of His Excellency’s horse. He shall tell you the story with his own
-lips.”
-
-Mohammed duly appeared and told the truth—with omissions; how the
-Captain had fallen behind in the tunnel, how the startled horse had
-dashed past him, how he had returned and found no sign of the Captain at
-all, how two men had appeared and he had fled in a panic. But there was
-no mention of any small door in the angle of the wall.
-
-“We will look at that tunnel by daylight,” said Gerard, when the man had
-finished, “if, O, Si El Hadj Arrifa, you will lend me your servant.”
-
-He spoke dispiritedly. There seemed very little chance that he would
-find any trace of his _grand serieux_. He had been and he was not. No
-doubt these two men at the mouth of the tunnel had seen their
-opportunity and seized it. Paul Ravenel had been the first victim of the
-massacre, no doubt. Yet Paul—to be taken unawares—with Si El Hadj
-Arrifa’s earnest invitation to remain sheltered in his house only within
-this hour uttered—Paul, in a word, warned! That was not like the Paul
-Ravenel he knew, at all! And on the next morning, following Paul’s route
-with Mohammed for a guide, and a patrol of soldiers, he discovered the
-little door.
-
-With a thrill of excitement he ran his hands over the heavy nails.
-
-“Open! Open!” he cried, beating upon the panel with his fists; and
-pressing his ear against it afterwards, he heard the racket echo emptily
-through the house.
-
-“Open! Open!” he cried again, and, turning to the sergeant of the
-patrol, bade him find a heavy beam. Even with that used as a battering
-ram it took the patrol a good half hour to smash in the little door, so
-stout it was, so strong the bolts and bars. But the work was done at
-last. Gerard darted in and found himself in a house, small but exquisite
-in its decorations, its thick cushions of linen worked with the old silk
-embroideries of Fez, its white-tiled floors spread with carpets of the
-old Rabat patterns. But from roof to court the house was empty.
-
-Gerard went through every room with the keen eye of a possible tenant
-with an order to view; and found precisely nothing. Had he come a week
-ago, he would have discovered on the upper floors furniture of a
-completely European make. All that, however, was safely lodged now in a
-storehouse belonging to Si El Hadj Arrifa, and the upper floors were
-almost bare. Gerard had left the patio to the last, and whilst he
-stepped here and there he heard a tinkling sound very familiar to his
-ears.
-
-“What’s that?” he cried, swinging round.
-
-In a corner of an alcove the sergeant was bending down.
-
-“What’s that, Beauprè?” Gerard cried again, and the sergeant stood up
-and faced him. He was holding in his hands the blue tunic of an officer;
-and on the breast of it a row of the big French medals tinkled and
-glinted.
-
-Gerard took the tunic reverently from the sergeant’s hands. It was all
-cluttered with blood, and stabbed through and through. It had the badges
-of Paul’s rank, and still discernible on a linen label inside the collar
-was Paul’s name. It was here, then, in this house, that Paul Ravenel had
-been done to death. The tunic which Gerard held in his hand was the
-conclusive proof. He stood in the centre of the patio, so pleasant, so
-quiet now, with the shafts of bright sunlight breaking upon the tiles.
-Who had lived here? What dreadful scene had been staged in this empty
-house? Gerard shivered a little as he thought upon it. The knives at
-their slow work—the man, his friend, slowly losing, whilst the heart
-still beat and the nerves stabbed, all the semblance of a man!
-
-“But they shall pay,” he said aloud, in a bellowing voice; and while he
-shouted, a perplexity began to trouble him. He opened the door leading
-from the court into the outer passage. This passage was cumbered with
-the splintered panels, the bolts, the heavy transverse bars which the
-patrol’s battering ram had demolished. How was it that in this empty
-house the door was still barricaded from within? He returned into the
-court and saw that the sergeant had pushed aside a screen at the back,
-and in a recess had discovered a second door. This door was merely
-locked, and there was no key in the lock. It was quickly opened. The
-Karouein river raced and foamed amidst its boulders, and between the
-river and the house wall there ran a tiny path.
-
-Gerard crossed to the door.
-
-“Yes, that way they went. When, I wonder? Perhaps when we were actually
-beating on the door.”
-
-He unpinned the medals from his friend’s blood-stained tunic and wrapped
-them up in a handkerchief. There might be somewhere a woman who would
-love to keep them bright. Paul Ravenel talked little about his own
-affairs. Who could tell? If there were no one, he could treasure them
-himself in memory of a good comrade.
-
-Meanwhile there was an immediate step to take. A crowd had gathered in
-the gateway and about the door in the dark tunnel.
-
-“Whose is this house?” Gerard asked, and there were many voices raised
-at once with the answer:
-
-“Si Ahmed Driss of Ouezzan.”
-
-Gerard de Montignac was taken aback by the answer. Si Ahmed Driss was
-one of the great Shereefian family of Ouezzan, which exercised an
-authority and a power quite independent of the Sultan. From the first,
-moreover, it had been unswervingly loyal to the French. Si Ahmed Driss
-himself during the days of massacre had given shelter in the sanctuary
-of his own residence to all the Europeans whom he could reach. Gerard de
-Montignac went straight now to where he lived in the Tala and begged an
-audience.
-
-“I have broken into a house which I now learn belongs to you, Si Ahmed
-Driss, whom may God preserve,” he said.
-
-Si Ahmed Driss was a tall, dignified old gentleman with a white beard
-flowing over his chest.
-
-“It is forgiven,” he said, gently. “In these days many strange things
-are done.”
-
-“Yet this was not done without reason,” Gerard protested, and he told Si
-Ahmed Driss of the finding of the tunic and the story of Mohammed the
-servant.
-
-Si Ahmed Driss bowed his head.
-
-“That this should have happened in my house puts me to shame,” he said.
-“I let it many months ago to Ben Sedira—a man of Meknes whom . . .” and
-a flow of wondrous curses was invoked upon Ben Sedira himself and his
-ancestors and descendants to the remotest degrees of consanguinity, by
-the patriarch. A bargee, could he but have understood, would have
-listened to them in awe and withdrawn from competition. The old
-gentleman, however, in uttering them lost none of his dignity.
-
-“Ben Sedira of Meknes,” Gerard repeated. “We will see if we can find
-that man.”
-
-But he had very little hope of succeeding. There had been two clear days
-between the end of the revolt and the arrival of Moinier’s column,
-during which surveillance could not be exercised. There were not
-sufficient French soldiers to hold the town gates and question all who
-went in and out. The moment the French tricolours floated so gaily upon
-all the house-tops of Fez, Ben Sedira would have known the game was up.
-He would have gone and gone quickly; nor would Meknes in the future
-house any one of his name.
-
-Thus, Gerard de Montignac reasoned, the affair would remain a mystery.
-Official enquiries would be made. But the great wheels of Administration
-could not halt for ever at the little door in the roofed alley. Paul
-Ravenel would become a case, one of the infinite enigmas of Mohammedan
-Africa. So he thought during the next fortnight.
-
-But Gerard was on General Moinier’s staff, and many reports came under
-his eyes. Amongst them, one written by a Captain Laguessière, giving an
-account of an unsuccessful attempt to relieve a little post at the Bab
-Fetouh on the afternoon of the seventeenth, the second day of the
-revolt. Gerard was reading the report in his office not overcarefully
-when a passage leaped out on the written page and startled him. He sat
-for a moment very still. Then he shook or tried to shake some
-troublesome thought from his shoulders.
-
-“It couldn’t be, of course!” he said, but he read the passage again.
-
-And here is what he read:
-
-“I met with no trouble until I had passed the lime-kilns and crossed a
-bridge over the Oued el Kebir. Here further progress was stopped by
-three strong groups of Moors armed with rifles. It was clear to me that
-I could not force a way through with my twenty men and retain any hope
-of relieving the post. I determined, therefore, to make a detour and try
-to advance by way of the Bab Jedid. As I recrossed the bridge I was
-violently attacked from the rear, from in front of me and from a street
-upon my left; whilst from a house upon my right I saw a number of the
-Askris pour out. I ordered a charge, and, leading ‘_au pas
-gymnastique_,’ I brought my men into a narrow turning, whence we were
-able to clear the street by repeated volleys. I had two men killed and
-six wounded. I received great assistance from a tall Moor who, jumping
-from the crowd, charged with my men. He was armed only with a big heavy
-pole, but he swung it about him with so much vigour and skill that he
-cleared a space for us. I tried to find this Moor when I had re-formed
-my men, but he had disappeared as suddenly as he had come.”
-
-Gerard de Montignac sat back in his chair and ran his fingers through
-his sleek hair.
-
-“Of course, it’s quite out of the question,” he assured himself. But
-none the less he rose abruptly and, leaving the report on his desk, went
-into another office inconveniently crowded. At the far end of the room
-was seated at a desk the man for whom he was looking.
-
-“Baumann!” he called. “Can you spare me a minute?”
-
-Baumann rose and followed Gerard back to his room.
-
-“Take a chair there.” He pointed to one at the side of his desk.
-
-“Do you remember telling me some time ago at Casablanca that you once
-met Captain Ravenel close to Volubilis?”
-
-“Yes,” said Baumann. “I didn’t recognise him. He twirled a great staff
-round his head and frightened me out of my life.”
-
-“Yes, that’s it,” said Gerard. “A little thing in one of these reports
-reminded me of your story. I wanted to be sure of it. Thank you.”
-
-Baumann rose to go and stopped with his hand upon the door-knob.
-
-“A great loss, Captain Ravenel. There is no news of him, I suppose?”
-
-Gerard shook his head.
-
-“None.”
-
-“Is it known whom he dined with that last night he was seen?”
-
-“Yes. Si El Hadj Arrifa.”
-
-Baumann nodded.
-
-“Si El Hadj Arrifa was one of Captain Ravenel’s closest friends in Fez.
-But there’s another closer still of whom you might enquire.”
-
-“I will. Give me his name,” said Gerard eagerly, and he drew a slip of
-paper towards him.
-
-But he did not write upon it. For Baumann answered: “Si Ahmed Driss.”
-
-Gerard dropped his pencil and looked swiftly up.
-
-“Of the Sheereefs of Ouezzan?”
-
-“Yes.”
-
-“You are sure?”
-
-“Quite.”
-
-Gerard set his elbows on the arms of his chair and joined his hands
-under his chin.
-
-“So Paul was a great friend of Si Ahmed Driss, was he?” he said ever so
-softly.
-
-“Yes. It was as a servant in the train of Si Ahmed Driss of Ouezzan that
-Captain Ravenel travelled through the Zarhoun country, and visited the
-Holy Cities.”
-
-“I see. Thank you, Baumann.”
-
-Gerard de Montignac was swimming in deep waters. He was not imaginative
-but he had imagination. He comprehended, though he did not feel, the
-call and glamour of the East; and nowhere in the world is there a land
-more vividly Eastern in its spirit, its walled cities, its nomad tribes,
-and its wide spaces, than this northwestern corner of Africa. Gerard had
-lived long enough in it to see men yield to it, as to a drug, forsake
-for it all that is lovely and of good repute. Was this what had happened
-to his friend? He wondered sorrowfully. Paul was friendly, cheerful,
-gay, but none the less really and truly a man of terrific loneliness.
-Walled about always. Gerard tried to think of an intimate confidence
-which Paul had ever made him. He could not remember one. He was the very
-man to whom the strange roads might call with the voices of the Sirens.
-It might be . . . it might be. Gerard de Montignac never sought again
-for traces of his lost friend. He left the search to the Administration
-and the Administration had other work to do.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XIX
-
-
- In the Sacred City
-
-The sharp lesson, then the goodwill; and always even during the
-infliction of the lesson, fair dealing between man and man, and nothing
-taken without payment on the spot. This, the traditional policy of the
-great French Governors, was carried out in Fez. Only the lesson was not
-so sharp as many thought it should have been. But the policy achieved
-its end, and it was not long before many a Fasi, like his kinsmen of the
-Chaiouïa, would proudly assure you that he was a Frenchman. The work of
-settlement and order could be transferred to other regions, and Gerard
-de Montignac went with it. He served in the mountains about Taza during
-the autumn of that year, and then went upon long leave. He was in Paris
-for Christmas, and there, amidst its almost forgotten lights and
-brilliancies, took his pleasures like a boy. He hunted in the Landes,
-returned to Morocco, and a year later, after a campaign in the country
-south of Marrakesch, got his step and the command of his battalion.
-
-For three months afterwards he was stationed at Meknes and drew his
-breath. He had the routine of his work to occupy his mornings, and in
-this city of wide spaces and orchards to engross his afternoons. Meknes
-with the ruined magnificence of its palaces of dead kings, its huge
-crumbling stables, the great gate of mosaic built through so many years
-by so many captives of the Sallee pirates, and so many English prisoners
-from Tangier; that other gate hardly less beautiful to the north of the
-town; its groves of olives; its long crumbling crenellated walls
-reaching out for miles into the country with no reason, and with no
-reason abruptly ending—Meknes satisfied the æsthetic side of him as no
-other city in that enchanted country. He delighted in it as a woman in
-her jewels.
-
-But in the autumn the Zarhoun threatened trouble for the hundredth
-time—the Zarhoun, that savage mountain mass with its sacred cities
-which frowns above the track from Meknes to Rabat and through which the
-narrow path from Tangier to Fez is cleft. It was decided that the sacred
-cities must at last throw open their gates and the Zarhoun be brought
-into line. The work was entrusted to Gerard de Montignac.
-
-“You will have a mixed battalion of infantry, a squadron of Chasseurs, a
-section of mitrailleuses, and a couple of mountain guns,” said the
-Commander-in-Chief. “But I think you will not need to use them. It will
-be a demonstration, a reconnaissance in force, rather than an attack.”
-
-Thus one morning of June, Gerard led his force northwards over the
-rolling plain, onto the higher ground, and marching along the flank of
-Djebel Zarhoun, camped that night close to the tall columns and broken
-arches of Volubilis. In front of the camp, a mile away, dark woods of
-olive trees mounted the lower slopes, and above them the sacred city of
-Mulai Idris clung to the mountain sides, dazzlingly white against the
-sombre hill and narrowing as it rose to an apex of one solitary house.
-In the failing light it had the appearance of a gigantic torrent, which,
-forcing itself through a tiny cleft, spread fanwise as it fell, in a
-cascade of foam.
-
-There was no fighting, as the Commander-in-Chief had predicted. At nine
-o’clock the next morning the Basha, followed by three of his notable
-men, rode down on their mules through the olive groves, and, being led
-to the little tent over which floated the little red flag of the
-commander, made his obeisance.
-
-“I will go back with your Excellency into the city,” said Gerard, and he
-gave orders that a company of tirailleurs should escort him.
-
-Thus, then, an hour later they set out: Gerard riding ahead with the
-Basha upon his right, the notables behind, and behind them again the
-company of tirailleurs advancing in column of platoons with one Captain
-Laguessière at their head. When they reached the first of the rising
-ground, Gerard reined in his horse and stared about him.
-
-The Basha, a portly man with a black beard, smiled with a flash of white
-teeth and the air of one expecting compliments. He did not get them,
-however. Gerard’s face wore, indeed, a quite unfriendly look. He turned
-round in his saddle.
-
-“Captain Laguessière.”
-
-Laguessière, who had halted his company, rode up to Gerard’s side.
-
-“Do you see?”
-
-“Yes, my Commandant. I have been wondering for the last few minutes
-whether it was possible. If these fellows had put up a fight we might
-have lost a lot of men.”
-
-“Yes,” said Gerard, shortly.
-
-To the right and left of the track which led up to the gate of the town,
-very well placed, just on the first rise of the ground, were fire
-trenches. Not roughly scooped shallow depressions, but real trenches
-scientifically constructed. Deep and recessed and with traverses at
-short intervals. The inside walls were revetted; arm rests had been cut
-for the riflemen, the earth dug from the trenches had been used for
-parapets and these had been turfed over for concealment; there were
-loopholes, artfully hidden by bunches of grass or little bundles of
-branches and leaves. Communication trenches ran back and—nothing so
-struck Gerard de Montignac with surprise as this—the extra earth had
-been built into parapets for dummy trenches, so that the fire of the
-attacking force might be diverted from those which were manned.
-
-The surprise of the two officers caused the Moors the greatest
-satisfaction. The three notables were wreathed in smiles. The Basha
-laughed outright.
-
-“They are good,” he said, nodding his head.
-
-“Too good,” replied Gerard, gravely. “But it is as well that you did not
-use them against us.”
-
-To the Moors this rejoinder seemed the very cream of wit. The Basha
-rocked in his saddle at the mere idea that his trenches could have been
-designed against the French.
-
-“No, indeed! We are true friends of your Excellency and your people. We
-know that you are just and very powerful too. These trenches were
-intended to defend our sacred city from the Zemmour.”
-
-“Oh, the Zemmour! Of course,” exclaimed Gerard, openly scoffing.
-
-The Zemmour were turbulent and aggressive and marauders to a man. They
-lived in the Forest of Mamora and sallied out of it far afield. But they
-were also the bogey men of the countryside. You threatened your
-squalling baby with the Zemmour, and whatever bad thing you had done,
-you had done it in terror of the Zemmour.
-
-The Basha was undisturbed by Gerard de Montignac’s incredulity.
-
-“Yes, the Zemmour are very wicked people,” he said, smiling virtuously
-and apparently quite unconscious that he himself presided over a city of
-malefactors and cutthroats. “But now that you have taken us poor people
-under your protection we feel safe.”
-
-Gerard smiled grimly and Captain Laguessière stroked his fair moustache
-and remarked: “He has a fine nerve, this old bandit.”
-
-“And when did you expect the Zemmour?” asked Gerard.
-
-“Two weeks, three weeks ago. They sent word that they would attack us on
-a certain night, so that we might be ready.”
-
-“And then they didn’t come?” said Gerard.
-
-“No.”
-
-Captain Laguessière laughed, incredulous of the whole story. But Gerard
-recognised a simple form of humour thoroughly Moroccan. To warn your
-enemy that you meant to attack him, to keep him on the watch and
-thoroughly alarmed all night and then never to attack him at all—that
-might well seem to the Zemmour a most diverting stroke of wit. The
-Zemmour, after all, were not so very far from Zarhoun.
-
-“I wonder,” said Gerard.
-
-“I don’t, my Commandant,” replied Captain Laguessière. “I think that if
-they hadn’t seen our mountain guns passing up the track below, we should
-have found these trenches manned this morning.”
-
-Gerard turned about on his horse and looked down onto the plain.
-
-“Yes. They could see very clearly. That’s the explanation—so far.”
-
-He gave his attention once more to the construction of the trenches.
-
-“And who taught you to make those trenches, my friend?” Gerard asked,
-looking keenly at the Basha. The Basha answered composedly:
-
-“It was Allah who put it into our heads. Allah protecting the holy city
-where Mulai Idris lies buried.”
-
-“That’s all very fine,” Captain Laguessière observed. “But then who lent
-Allah his copy of the Manual of Field Engineering?”
-
-“Exactly,” Gerard agreed with a laugh. “I think we had better find that
-out. No Moor that ever I met with would take the time and trouble, even
-if he had the skill, to work out——” and the laugh died off his lips.
-He turned suddenly startled eyes upon his companion. “Laguessière!” he
-exclaimed, and again, in a lower key, “Yes, Laguessière! I was sure that
-I had never met you before.”
-
-“Not until this expedition, my Commandant.”
-
-“Yet your name was familiar to me. I did not think why. I was too busy
-to think why. But I remember now. You were in Fez two years ago. Yes, I
-remember now.”
-
-His face darkened and hardened and grew very menacing as he sat with
-moody eyes fixed upon the ground and seeing visions of old and pleasant
-days leap into life and fade. “Volubilis, too!” he said in a low voice.
-“Yes, just below those olives.”
-
-Strange that he should have seen the columns and broken arches yesterday
-and again this morning, and only thought of them with wonder as the
-far-flung monuments of the old untiring Rome! And never until this
-moment as things of great and immediate concern to him—signs perhaps
-for him to read and not neglect. For of all the pictures which he saw
-changing and flickering upon the ground, two came again and again. He
-saw Baumann and his friends riding in the springtime between clumps of
-asphodel towards those high pillars, and a horde of wild ragged men
-pouring out of the gates of this white-walled city, and Baumann
-shrinking back as a tall youth whirled with a grin a great staff about
-his head. Then he saw the same man, whirling the same staff, charge with
-Laguessière’s section in a street of Fez. A grim and sinister fancy
-flashed into his mind. He wondered whether he had been appointed by
-destiny to demand here and to-day an account for the betrayal of a great
-and sacred trust. He looked up the hill to where the big wooden gates
-stood open.
-
-“Is that the only entrance into Mulai Idris?” he asked of the Basha.
-
-“The only one.”
-
-Gerard de Montignac turned to his subordinate.
-
-“You will set a guard upon that gate, Captain Laguessière. No one is to
-go out until I give a further order.”
-
-“Very well, my Commandant.”
-
-“You will have the town patrolled and the walls watched. I will bring up
-another company to act with you.”
-
-He wrote an order with a pencil in his note book, detached the leaf, and
-sent it back by an orderly to the camp. “Now we will move on,” he said.
-All his good humour had vanished. He had no longer any jests to exchange
-with the Basha as the little cavalcade rode upwards among the olive
-trees and through the steep, narrow streets of the town.
-
-In an open space just below that last big house which made the apex of
-the triangle, a seat was placed, and to this Gerard de Montignac was
-conducted. The little city lay spread out in a fan beneath him. The
-great Mosque in which the tomb of the Founder of the Moorish Empire was
-sheltered stood at the southern angle. Gerard looked down into a corner
-of its open precincts and saw men walking to and fro. He called the
-Basha to his side, and pointed down to it.
-
-“Yes, that is the great Mosque, your Excellency.”
-
-“No one will violate it. For us it is sacred as for you,” said Gerard.
-“But no food must go into it. That is a strict order.”
-
-“It shall be obeyed.”
-
-“I shall place men of my own in the streets about the entrances. They
-will molest no one, but they will see to it that the order is obeyed.”
-
-The Mosque was sanctuary, of course. Any man who took refuge there was
-safe. Neither the law nor any vengeance could touch him. But no man must
-die in it, for that would be a defilement. A little time, therefore, and
-any refugee would be thrust out by the guardians of the sanctuary, lest
-his death should taint the holy place.
-
-Gerard sent a messenger down with a new order to Laguessière at the gate
-and waited on the seat until it had been carried out, and Laguessière
-had ridden to his side. The two officers lunched with the Basha and his
-notables in the big house and drank the five cups of tea with them
-afterwards.
-
-“I will now ride with you through the town,” said Gerard to the Basha.
-“You shall tell me of the houses and of those who live in them. And you
-shall take me into those I wish, so that I may speak to them and assure
-them of our friendship.”
-
-“That will be an excellent thing,” replied the Basha.
-
-Gerard kept a sergeant and a small guard of soldiers with him, and with
-the Basha on his mule beside him he rode down on the left side of the
-town. For on this side only, he had seen, were there any houses of
-importance. The rest of the town was made up of hovels and little
-cottages. The three chief men who rode with the Basha pointed out their
-own residences with pride; the owners of others were described, and at
-each of them Gerard smiled and said he was content. They made thus a
-complete circuit of the city.
-
-“Your Excellency has not thought fit to enter any one of the houses,”
-said the Basha with a smile of reproach. Gerard led him a little apart.
-
-“I will make good that omission now,” he replied. “There was one which
-we passed. You did not speak of it at all. Yet it was a good house, a
-fine house, finer almost than any except your Excellency’s own.”
-
-The Basha was apparently mystified. He could not remember.
-
-“I think that I can find the house again,” said Gerard. “I hope that I
-shall be able to. For it attracted me.” He looked the Basha in the eyes.
-“That is the house which I wish to enter and whose owner I wish to see.”
-
-Finality was in Gerard’s voice as clearly as in his words. The Basha
-bowed to it.
-
-“It is for your Excellency to give orders here. We are in God’s hands,”
-he said, and he drew a step nearer to Gerard de Montignac. “It is
-permitted to dismiss my friends now to their homes? Si Tayeb Reha, whom
-we shall visit, will not be prepared for so many.”
-
-“Si Tayeb Reha?” Gerard repeated. “That is his name? I had a thought it
-might be Ben Sedira.”
-
-The Basha shook his head.
-
-“That is not a name known in Mulai Idris.”
-
-He turned to his notables and took leave of them with ceremonious
-speeches. Then he mounted his mule again and rode down the hill beside
-Gerard with the sergeant and the escort at their heels. Gerard said not
-a word now. He was thinking of those carefully constructed trenches
-outside the city, and his face grew hard as granite. They came to a
-house of two storeys with one latticed window in the uppermost floor,
-and for the rest a blank wall upon the street. It was for Fez a small
-house, for Mulai Idris one of importance. The door opened upon a side
-street, and the sergeant knocked upon it whilst Gerard and the Basha
-dismounted. There followed a long silence whilst a little crowd gathered
-about the soldiers. Gerard wondered what message that sharp loud
-knocking brought to the inmate. Had he seen the cavalcade ride past from
-a corner of that latticed window and with a smile upon his lips believed
-himself to be safe? What a shattering blow, then, must have been this
-sudden knocking upon his door? Or was he himself altogether in error?
-Gerard drew a breath of relief at the mere hope that it might be so.
-Well, he would know now, for the door was opened. And in a moment all
-Gerard’s hopes fell. For the native who opened it was surprised into a
-swift movement as his eyes fell upon Gerard in his uniform. It was a
-movement which he checked before he had completed it, but he was too
-late. He had betrayed himself. It was the involuntary movement of an old
-soldier standing to attention at the sudden appearance of an officer.
-
-The Basha spoke a few words to the servant who stood inside. There was
-no court in this house. A staircase faced them steeply, and on the right
-hand of it was the kitchen. Gerard turned to the servant as he passed
-in.
-
-“And what is your name?”
-
-“Selim,” answered the servant. He led the way up the dark staircase.
-There was no window upon the staircase; the only light came from the
-doorway upon the street. At the top there was a landing furnished with
-comfort, and in the middle of the landing was a fine door. Selim knocked
-upon it, and would have opened it. But Gerard laid his hand upon his arm
-and with a gesture in place of words bade him stand aside. He opened the
-door himself and entered. He was standing in a room of low roof but
-wide. It was furnished altogether in the Moorish style, and with a
-certain elegance. But the elegance was rather in the disposition of the
-room than in the quality of its equipment. One great window, with a
-balcony protected by a rail, gave light to the room; and it looked not
-upon the street but across a great chasm to the mountain, for the house
-was built upon the town wall. The light thus flooded the room. Close to
-the window a tall Moor was standing. He bowed and took a step forward.
-
-“Had I hoped that your Excellency would do me the honour to visit my
-poor house,” he said with a smile, “I should have made a better
-preparation.”
-
-He had a small beard trimmed neatly to a point and a thin line of
-moustache. Gerard did not answer him for a little while. He took out his
-note book and wrote in it and detached the leaf. Then he sent Selim down
-the stairs to fetch up the sergeant of his escort; and it was noticeable
-that, scrupulous as he usually was in this land of observances, he made
-use of the servant as his messenger without troubling himself to ask the
-master’s permission.
-
-When the sergeant came up into the room, Gerard handed him the sheet of
-paper.
-
-“You will send this by one of your men immediately to Captain
-Laguessière at the gate.”
-
-“Very well, my Commandant,” and the sergeant went out of the room.
-
-Gerard turned to the Basha.
-
-“I have sent an order to remove the posts from the neighbourhood of the
-Mosque, and to throw open the gates so that men may go out and in as
-they will.”
-
-The Basha expressed his thanks. There would be no trouble. The people of
-Mulai Idris were very good people, not like those scoundrels from the
-Forest of Mamora, and quite devoted to the French.
-
-“Since this morning,” Gerard answered with a smile. “We shall have much
-to say to one another to-morrow morning, in a spirit of help and
-goodwill. But I beg you to leave me now, so that I may talk for a little
-while privately with Si Tayeb Reha. For I have come now to the end of
-this day’s work.”
-
-Si Tayeb Reha bowed gravely. It was the only movement he had made since
-he had spoken his words of welcome upon Gerard’s first entrance into the
-room.
-
-The Basha took his leave, went downstairs and mounted his mule.
-
-“We are all in God’s hands,” he said, and he rode slowly away towards
-his house. Within the room the two men stood looking at each other in
-silence.
-
-[Illustration: _A William Fox Production._ _The Winding Stair._
-“SO—YOU HAVE BETRAYED EVERY TRUST—WHERE IS YOUR HONOR?”]
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XX
-
-
- The Coup de Grâce
-
-The longer the silence grew, the more difficult Gerard de Montignac felt
-it was to break. He had entered the room, clothed upon with authority,
-sensible of it and prepared to demand explanations and exact
-retribution. But he had now a curious uneasiness. His authority seemed
-to be slipping from him. Opposite to him without a movement of his body
-and his face still as a mask, stood _le grand serieux_, as half in jest,
-half in earnest, he used to label Paul Ravenel. He had not a doubt of
-his identity. But _le grand serieux_ was altogether in earnest _le grand
-serieux_ at this moment.
-
-A quiet, tragic figure, drawn to his full height, wearing his dignity
-with the ease of an accustomed garment, when he should be—what? Crushed
-under shame, faltering excuses, cringing! Gerard de Montignac said to
-himself: “Why, I might be the culprit! It might be for me to offer an
-explanation, or to try to.” He almost wondered if he was the culprit, so
-complete was his discomfort, and so utterly he felt himself at a
-disadvantage. He whipped himself to a sneer.
-
-“I am afraid that I am not very welcome, Si Tayeb Reha,” he said,
-speaking in French.
-
-“Si Tayeb Reha! Yes! That is my name,” returned the Moor, in the
-Mohgrebbin dialect of Arabic.
-
-“Alias Ben Sedira of Meknes. Alias Paul Ravenel.”
-
-The Moor frowned in perplexity.
-
-“Alias,” he repeated, doubtfully, “and Pôl Rav——” He gave the name up.
-“What are these words? If your Excellency would speak my language——”
-
-“Your language!” Gerard interrupted, roughly. “Since when have the
-outcasts a language of their own?”
-
-He flung himself into a chair. He was not going to take a part in any
-comedy. He continued to speak in French. “You thought you were safe
-enough here, no doubt. Oh, it was a clever plan, I grant you. Who would
-look for Paul Ravenel in the sacred city of Mulai Idris? Yet not so
-safe, after all, if any one knew that you had once travelled through the
-Zahoun in the train of Si Ahmed Driss of Ouezzan.”
-
-He leaned forward suddenly as some prosecuting counsél in a criminal
-court might do, seeking to terrify a defendant into an expression or a
-movement of guilt. But Si Tayeb Reha was simply worried because he could
-not understand a word of all the scorn which was tumbling from Gerard’s
-mouth. The officer was angry—that was only too evident—and with him,
-Si Tayeb Reha! If only he could make it all out! Gerard grew more
-exasperated than ever.
-
-“No, not safe at all if any one had seen you come out of these gates in
-the rabble to drive away a visitor to Volubilis. Baumann, eh? Do you
-remember Baumann of the Affaires Indigènes, Paul Ravenel?”
-
-Si Tayeb Reha raised his hands:
-
-“Your Excellency speaks in a tongue I do not understand.”
-
-“You understand very well. Sanctuary, eh? If one guessed you had run to
-earth here—sanctuary! No one dare violate the sacred city of Mulai
-Idris. Once sheltered within its walls, safe to lead the dreadful
-squalid life you’ve chosen right to its last mean day! Your mistake,
-Paul Ravenel! The arm of France is stretched over all this country.”
-
-Gerard stopped abruptly and flung himself back in his chair in disgust.
-He was becoming magniloquent now. In a minute he would be ridiculous,
-and over against him all the while stood this renegade, dwarfing him by
-his very silence, and the stillness of his body, putting him in the
-wrong—for that was it! Putting him in the wrong who was in the right.
-
-Gerard had imagination. He was hampered now by that accursed gift of the
-artist. Even whilst he spoke he was standing outside himself and
-watching himself speak, and act, and watching with eyes hostilely
-critical. Thus were things well interpreted, but not thus were they well
-done. Thus they were made brilliantly to live again; but not thus were
-they so contrived as to be worthy to live again. Since by that road come
-hesitations and phrases that miss their mark.
-
-He tried to sting Si Tayeb Reha into a rejoinder.
-
-“Trenches, too! Fire-trenches on the latest plan—so that if by chance
-we should come and be fools enough to come without guns”—he broke off
-and beat upon the table with his closed fist—“you would fight France,
-would you, to keep your burrow secret! The insolence of it! The Zemmour
-indeed! Fire-trenches and traverses and the rest of it against the
-Zemmour.”
-
-Si Tayeb Reha leapt upon a word familiar to his tongue.
-
-“The Zemmour! Yes,” he cried, smiling his relief. Here was something
-which he could understand. “The Zemmour threatened us two, three, four
-weeks ago. We made ready to welcome them. But they did not come. They
-were very wise, the Zemmour!” and he chuckled and nodded.
-
-Gerard found this man of smiles and cunning easier to talk with than the
-aloof masked figure of a minute ago.
-
-“It was you who constructed those trenches and against us, who were once
-your comrades,” he said sternly.
-
-Si Tayeb Reha was once more at a loss.
-
-“If your Excellency will not speak my tongue, how shall I answer you?”
-he asked, plaintively, and Gerard did not trouble to answer.
-
-“I ought to send you down to Meknes, for a court-martial to deal with
-you,” he said, reflectively. “But all strange crimes have their lures.
-They breed. God knows what decent-living youngster might get his
-imagination unwholesomely stirred and do as you have done and bring his
-name to disgrace! Besides—do you know who guards the gate of Mulai
-Idris whilst I talk to you? Who but Laguessière? Captain Laguessière.”
-He searched the still face for a tremor, a twitch of recognition. Si
-Tayeb Reha had apparently given up the attempt to understand. He stood
-leaning against the wall at the side of the window and looking out
-across the ravine to the mountainside.
-
-“Laguessière, at whose side you charged twisting your staff—do you
-remember?—back over the bridge by the lime-kilns in Fez two years ago.”
-
-The light fell full upon the face of the man at the window. It seemed to
-Gerard de Montignac impossible that any man, even the _grand serieux_,
-who had so often carried his life in his hands through the solitary
-places, could have learnt so to school his features and keep all meaning
-from his eyes.
-
-“Yes, that charge counts for you, and something else which shouldn’t
-count at all. You and I were at St. Cyr together.”
-
-Indeed, that counted most of all. The sense of an old comradeship
-broken, the traditions of a great college violated, these had been the
-true cause of Gerard de Montignac’s discomfort. The years were beginning
-to build the high barriers about Gerard, shutting off great tracts of
-which he had once had glimpses to make the heart leap, taking the bright
-colour from his visions. A treasure-house of good memories was something
-nowadays to value, and here was one of the good memories, almost the
-most vivid of them all, destroyed. He rose from his chair, and as he
-rose, a curtain moved which covered an archway, moved and ever so
-slightly parted. It was just behind Si Tayeb Reha’s shoulder, and a
-little to his right at the side of the room; so that he did not notice
-the movement. Gerard de Montignac could look through the narrow opening.
-He had a glimpse of a woman with her face veiled, an orange scarf about
-her head, a broad belt of gold brocade about her white robe. Somehow the
-sight of her helped him, though he saw her but for a second, before the
-curtains closed again. It spurred him to that statement which from the
-outset he had been working to.
-
-“So that’s it!” he cried. “A woman, eh? Two years since she took your
-fancy! She must be getting on now, mustn’t she? What’s her age?
-Seventeen? And for that, honour, career, a decent life, all, into the
-dustbin!”
-
-He drew his heavy revolver from the pouch at his belt and laid it on the
-table.
-
-“It is loaded,” he said. “You have just the time until my sergeant
-notices that I have left my revolver behind in this house. If I come
-back, and—no shot has been fired—then it is Meknes with all its shame
-and the same end.”
-
-Nothing surprised Gerard de Montignac more than the coolness with which
-Si Tayeb Reha, as his old comrade called himself, received his sentence
-of death. He advanced to the table where the revolver lay and took the
-weapon up with a smile of curiosity and admiration.
-
-“We make no such weapons as these,” he said in Arabic, examining the
-pistol with all a Moor’s fascination for mechanical instruments. “That,
-your Excellency, is why we are never a match for you and we must open
-our gates at your summons.”
-
-He had never said one word except in Arabic during the whole of that
-interview, just as Gerard had stubbornly refused to speak anything but
-French. Gerard watched him toying with the weapon for a second and then
-turned rapidly away. He could not but admire his old friend’s courage;
-he could not but think: “What a waste of a good man!” He went out of the
-room without another word or another look. He was sick at heart. He no
-longer cared whether he had been peevish or argumentative or what kind
-of figure he had cut. One of the glamorous things in his life, his
-belief in the _grand serieux_, had been taken from him.
-
-He mounted his horse and rode away, wishing for that shot to explode as
-quickly as possible, so that he might bury the dreadful episode out of
-sight and forget it altogether.
-
-But though he listened with both his ears and though he walked his horse
-as slowly as he could, he heard nothing. He saw his sergeant suddenly
-look at his belt. It was coming, then, without a doubt. The next moment
-the sergeant was at his side and looking up into his face.
-
-“My commandant, you have left your revolver behind in that house.”
-
-Gerard de Montignac took all the time that he could. He stared at the
-sergeant and made him repeat his statement as though he had been lost in
-thought and had never heard it at all. Then he looked down at the
-holster and fingered it as if he were trying to recollect where in the
-world he had taken the revolver out.
-
-“Why, that’s true,” he said, at last. He wheeled his horse around and
-rode back very dispiritedly with his chin sunk upon his breast. “It is
-to be Meknes after all, then, and all the public shame,” the sergeant
-heard him mutter; and then a pistol cracked sharp and clear, and Gerard
-raised his face. It was lit with a great relief.
-
-They were only ten paces from the house. Gerard dismounted and gave the
-reins to the sergeant.
-
-“Wait for me here! Keep the door clear!” he ordered. He had left the
-door of the house open when he rode away. It was open still. Gerard ran
-up the stairs and burst into the room. There was a smell of gunpowder in
-the air, and the Moorish woman with the orange scarf and the white robe
-and the deep gold waistband was standing with her hands pressed over her
-face.
-
-But there was no sign of Si Tayeb Reha anywhere. They had tried to trick
-him, then! They imagined that he would accept the evidence of the
-pistol-shot and continue on his way! They took him for no better than a
-child, it seemed. No, that would not do!
-
-“Where is he?” he asked, angrily, of the girl, and now he, too, spoke in
-Arabic.
-
-She pointed a trembling hand towards the window; and Gerard saw that the
-rail of the balustrade of the balcony was broken and that the revolver
-lay upon the boards. Gerard stepped out from the window and looked down.
-
-The balcony had been built out from the sheer wall; it was a rough thing
-of boards, supported upon iron stanchions, and jutting out above the
-deep chasm at the edge of the town. Gerard could see between the boards
-deep down a precipice of rocks to a tiny white thread of stream and
-clumps of bushes. He drew close to the broken rail and leaned cautiously
-over. Caught upon some outcropping rocks, a little way below the wall,
-hung the body of Si Tayeb Reha. He was lying face downwards, his arms
-outspread. The story of what had happened was written there for him to
-read.
-
-Paul Ravenel had shot himself on the balcony, the revolver had fallen
-from his hand, his body had crashed through the flimsy rail and toppled
-down until it had been caught on the rocks below. Yes, no doubt! The
-mere fall from that height, even if Ravenel had been unhurt, would have
-been enough. Yet—yet—there had been a long delay before the shot was
-fired. Gerard looked keenly and swiftly about the room. No, there was no
-sign of a rope.
-
-He looked at the girl. She was now crouched down upon her knees, her
-face hidden between her hands, her body rocking, whilst a wail like a
-chant, shrill of key but faint, made a measure for her rocking. She was
-like an animal in pain—that was all, and for her Paul had thrown a
-great name to the winds! What a piece of irony that she, with hardly
-more brain and soul than a favourite dog, should have cost France so
-much!
-
-Gerard stooped and picked up his revolver. He broke the breech, ejected
-the one exploded cartridge, and closed the breech again with a snap. He
-leaned forward again to take a last look at that poor rag of flesh and
-bone, hung there for the vultures to feed upon, which once had been his
-friend—and he was aware of a subtle change in the woman behind him
-within the room. Oh, very slight, and for so small a space of time! But
-just for an imperceptible moment her wail had faltered, the rocking of
-her body had been stayed. She had been watching him between those
-fingers with the henna-dyed nails which were so tightly pressed over her
-face.
-
-He looked at her closely without moving from his position. It was all
-going correctly on again—the lament, the swaying, the proper
-conventional expression of the abandonment of grief. Yet she had been
-watching him, and for a moment she had been startled and afraid. Of
-what? And the truth flashed upon him. He had been fingering his
-revolver. She was afraid of the _coup de grâce_.
-
-Then they were tricking him between them—she with her wailing, he
-spread out on the bulge of rock below. They should see! He stretched out
-his arm downwards, the revolver pointed in his hand. And out of the tail
-of his eye he saw the woman cease from her exhibition and rise to her
-feet. As he took his aim she unwound the veil from before her face. He
-could not but look at her; and having looked, he could not take his eyes
-from her face. He stumbled into the room. “Marguerite Lambert!” he said,
-in a voice of wonder! “Yes, Marguerite Lambert!”
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXI
-
-
- Two Outcasts
-
-Gerard de Montignac had never been so thoroughly startled and surprised
-in his life. But he was angrily conscious of an emotion far keener than
-his surprise. He was jealous. Jealousy overmastered the shock of wonder,
-stabbed him through and left him aching. Marguerite Lambert, the girl of
-the Villa Iris, so politely difficult! And Paul Ravenel, the man without
-passion! Why, his brother officers used to laugh at him openly—nay,
-almost sneered at him and made a butt of him—because of his coldness;
-and he, indifferent to their laughter, had just laughed back and gone
-his way. Well, he could afford to, it seemed, since he was here, and for
-two years had been here, hidden quite away from the world with
-Marguerite Lambert.
-
-They had stolen a march upon their friends, the pair of them, they had
-tricked them—yes, that was the exact right word—tricked them, even as
-they had just tried to trick him, she with her Oriental abandonment to
-grief—little “animal,” as he had called her in his thoughts—he
-stretched out on a knob of rock above a precipice in a pose of death!
-Gerard was in an ugly mood, and he spoke out his thought in a blaze of
-scorn.
-
-“I asked you the last time I saw you to give me two days of your life,
-my only two days. I asked no more. Yet you were insulted. You could give
-two years to another, but two days to me? Oh, dear, no! You wished never
-to speak to me again.”
-
-“I would give two days to no man,” Marguerite replied, gently, “though I
-would give my whole life to one man.”
-
-“Even though he deserted?” Gerard asked, with a sneer.
-
-“Paul had not deserted when I gave myself to him,” she answered,
-quietly. “When he did, it was to save me!”
-
-Gerard did not want to hear anything about that. Some conjecture that
-the truth of this catastrophe was to be discovered there, had been at
-the back of his mind ever since he had recognised Marguerite. But he
-intended not to listen to it, not to let it speak at all. Somehow, her
-use of Paul’s name angered him extremely. It dropped from her lips with
-so usual and homely a sound.
-
-“No doubt it was to save you. It would be!” he said, sardonically. “Some
-decent excuse would be needed even between you two when you sat together
-alone through the long dark evenings.”
-
-Gerard meant to hurt, but Marguerite wore an armour against him and his
-arrows were much too blunt to pierce it. She had a purpose of her own to
-serve, of which Gerard de Montignac knew nothing; she was clutching at a
-desperate chance—if, indeed, so frail a thing could be called a
-chance—not of merely saving her lover’s life, but of so much more that
-she hardly dared to think upon it. Her only weapon now and for a long
-heart-breaking time to come, was patience.
-
-“You are unjust,” she said, without any anger, and without any appeal
-that he should reconsider his words. Gerard suddenly remembered the last
-words that the black-bearded Basha had spoken as he climbed onto his
-mule.
-
-“We are all in God’s hand.”
-
-Marguerite had spoken just in his tone. Argument and prayer were of no
-value now. It was all written, all fated. What would be, would be.
-Either Gerard de Montignac would drop that revolver from his hand and
-her desperate chance become a little less frail than before, or he would
-not.
-
-“What was it that woman in the spangled skirt used to say of you?”
-Gerard asked, with a seeming irrelevance.
-
-“Henriette?”
-
-“Yes, Henriette. You had a look of fate. Yes! She was right, too. It was
-that look which set you apart, more than your beauty. Indeed, you
-weren’t beautiful then, Marguerite.”
-
-He was gazing at her moodily. The sharp anger had become a sullenness.
-Marguerite had grown into beauty since those days, but it was not the
-roseleaf beauty born of days without anxiety and nights without unrest.
-It was the beauty of one who is haunted by the ghosts of dead dreams and
-who wakes in the dark hours to weep very silently lest some one
-overhear. Destined for greater sorrows or perhaps greater joys than fall
-to the common lot! That was what Henriette had meant! And looking at
-Marguerite, Gerard, with a little ungenerous throb of pleasure,
-perceived that at all events the greater joys, if ever they had fallen
-to her, had faded away long since.
-
-“These have been unhappy years for you, Marguerite,” he said.
-
-“For both of us,” she answered. “How could they have been anything else?
-Paul had lost everything for which he had striven, whilst I knew that it
-was I who had caused his loss.”
-
-“But he didn’t lose you.”
-
-“He didn’t have to strive for me,” Marguerite returned, with just the
-hint of a smile and more than a hint of pride. “I was his from his first
-call—no, even before he called.”
-
-Gerard could not but remember the first meeting of this tragic couple in
-the Villa Iris. Paul Ravenel had stood behind Marguerite’s chair, and
-without a word, without even turning her head to see who it was that
-stood behind her, she had risen from the midst of the Dagoes and
-Levantines, as at an order given. She had fallen into step at his side,
-and no word had as yet passed between them. Gerard de Montignac
-recollected that, even then, a little pang of jealousy had stabbed him
-and sharply enough to send him straight out of the cabaret.
-
-“Yes . . . yes,” he said, slowly. “I had never spoken to you then, had
-I? It wasn’t until afterwards . . .” He was thinking and drawing some
-queer sort of balm from the thought, that Marguerite had not so much
-flatly refused him his two days as set her heart on Paul Ravenel before
-she had met him. If it had been he, for instance, who had stood behind
-Marguerite’s chair and silently called her! But, then, he hadn’t. He had
-gone away and left the field clear for Paul Ravenel. Other memories came
-back to him to assuage his wrath.
-
-“After all, it was I who brought you and Ravenel together,” he said.
-“For it was I who persuaded him to come with me on that first night to
-the Villa Iris.”
-
-“Yes!” Marguerite drew in her breath sharply. “He told me that he almost
-didn’t come.”
-
-It would have been better if he had not come, if he had stayed quietly
-in his house and gone on with his report. So her judgment told her. But
-she could never imagine those moments during which Paul had stood in
-doubt, without picturing them so vividly that she had a quiver of fear
-lest he should decide not to come.
-
-“It was I, too, who sent Paul Ravenel to you at the end,” Gerard de
-Montignac continued; and as Marguerite drew her brows together in a
-wrinkle of perplexity, “Yes,” he assured her. “The night after you
-didn’t want to speak to me any more, I went back to the Villa Iris to
-find you. Did you know that? Yes, I was leaving the next morning with
-the advance guard for Fez. I didn’t know what might happen on the march.
-I wanted to make friends with you again, so that if anything did happen
-to me, you wouldn’t have any bitter memories of me.”
-
-“That was a kind thought,” said Marguerite.
-
-“Kind to myself,” returned Gerard, with, for the first time in this
-interview, the ghost of a smile. Yet to Marguerite it was as the glimmer
-of dawn upon a black night of sickness and pain. There was a hope, then,
-that the revolver would be returned to its holster with its remaining
-five cartridges still undischarged. Gerard’s own memories were at work
-with him, memories of a kindlier self, with enthusiasms and generous
-thoughts; and they must be left to do their work. There was little that
-she could say or do—and that little not until his mood had changed.
-
-“I didn’t find you,” Gerard resumed. “You had gone. Henriette told me
-how you had gone and why. Yes, the whole horrible story of that old
-harridan and the Greek! And you had dropped your bundle and disappeared.
-And Henriette feared for you. I was leaving at six in the morning; I was
-helpless. I went on to Paul Ravenel and told him that he must find you
-before any harm came to you. And he did, of course. That’s clear. So I
-had my share in all this dreadful business. Yes . . . yes, I hadn’t
-realised it.”
-
-He sat down on a chair by the table and stared at its surface with his
-forehead puckered. But he still held the butt of his revolver in his
-hand. If only he would lay it down just for a moment! Marguerite had a
-queer conviction that he would never take it up again to use outside the
-window, once he let go of it. But he did not let go. His fingers,
-indeed, tightened upon the handle, and he cried: “I don’t know what to
-do.” Neither did Marguerite. She could let Gerard de Montignac remain in
-his error, or she could dispel it. She was greatly tempted not to
-interfere. It was a small matter, anyway. Only, small matters count so
-much in great issues. Let the scales tremble, the merest splinter will
-make one of them touch ground. Marguerite trusted to some instinct which
-she could not afterwards explain.
-
-“Perhaps I am unwise,” she said. The note of hesitation, for the first
-time audible, drew Gerard’s eyes to her troubled face. “But I don’t know
-. . . The truth is you had no real share in our”—she paused for a word
-which would neither blame nor excuse—“in our disaster. The night I was
-turned out, Paul was waiting for me in the garden. I didn’t expect him.
-I was in despair. I dropped my bundle; and he rose up out of the
-darkness in front of me. I loved him. It was the wonderful thing come
-true. He took me away to a house which he had got ready——”
-
-“A house near to his on the sea-wall?” suddenly exclaimed Gerard.
-
-“Yes.”
-
-“That’s true, then. I saw his agent and him coming out of it. I think
-that I told Henriette, never dreaming that the house was meant for you,
-that you were already in it when I told Henriette.” He looked at
-Marguerite suddenly with eyes of pity. “You two poor children!” he
-exclaimed, softly, and after a few moments he added with a whimsical
-smile, “I told Paul that he would break his leg when we, the less
-serious ones, only barked our shins. It is a bad thing not to walk in
-the crowd, Marguerite.”
-
-He watched her for a little while like a man in doubt. Then he reached
-his arm out and tapped with the muzzle of his revolver—for he still
-held it in his hand—on the part of the table opposite to him.
-
-“You must sit down and tell me exactly what happened.”
-
-Marguerite obeyed. She told Gerard of her journey up from the coast to
-Fez when Paul was sure that the road was safe, and how she came to the
-little palace with the door upon the roofed alley which Paul had got
-ready for her. Gerard, who had thought to listen to her story without
-question or comment, could not restrain an exclamation.
-
-“You were in Fez, then, all that year!” he said, wondering. “In the
-house of Si Ahmed Driss! I never dreamt of it. Even when I discovered it
-and searched it, that never occurred to me. When I saw you both here, I
-imagined that Paul had slipped away at a bad moment for France, without
-a thought of his duty, to join you at Mulai Idris in accordance with a
-plan.”
-
-Marguerite shook her head.
-
-“No. I was in the house at Fez. Later, on that night of the sixteenth,
-he knew that the massacres were certain. He went to headquarters with
-the information. If they had listened to him then, he would never have
-deserted at all. But they wouldn’t listen, and he had to choose.”
-
-She described how on the next day the fanatics had rushed in searching
-for a French officer who had been seen once or twice to visit there.
-
-“It was not before that night, then, the night he came to the
-headquarters, that he was sure?” Gerard interrupted, quickly.
-
-“No.”
-
-“They would have come to seek him in the house, even if he had ridden
-straight back from the Hospital Auvert to Dar-Debibagh.”
-
-“Yes.”
-
-“Then he did save your life by deserting,” said Gerard. And, on the
-other hand, he asked himself was there any duty not discharged because
-Paul did desert? Was there any mistake made because the little Praslin
-led Paul Ravenel’s company along the river bed instead of Paul himself?
-
-“My God, but it’s difficult!” cried Gerard. “Complexities upon
-complexities! How shall one judge—unless”—and he caught with relief at
-his good rules and standards—“yes, unless one walks in the crowd. It’s
-the only way to walk. Thou shalt do this! Thou shalt not do that! All
-clear and ordered and written in the book.”
-
-Gerard had gibed enough in his day at those innumerable soldiers who
-answered every problem of regulations and manœuvres immediately with a
-complacent “It’s so laid down,” or “It’s not so laid down in the book.”
-He was glad to get back in the windings of this case to the broad
-highway of “the book.” The book told him how to deal with Paul Ravenel.
-Well, then!— Yet—yet——!
-
-Marguerite watched his face cloud over, and hurriedly continued her
-story, or rather began to continue it. For at her first words as to how
-Paul had out-witted the invaders of the house in Fez Gerard interrupted
-her with a cry.
-
-“The uniform tunic, eh, Marguerite? The tunic all hacked and battered
-with blood?” He uttered a little wholesome laugh of appreciation. “And
-all prepared in readiness the night before. Yes, I recognise Paul
-there.”
-
-This was the third time that Gerard de Montignac had spoken of “Paul”
-without any “Ravenel” added to it to show that he and Paul were
-strangers. Marguerite, you may be sure, had counted each one of them
-with a little leap of the heart. “And the blood!” he went on. “I think I
-know whence that came. His arm, eh? Wasn’t it so?”
-
-Marguerite had determined to use no tricks with him, but she could not
-resist one now, the oldest and simplest and the never-failing. She
-looked at Gerard with awe and admiration—so sharp he was and
-penetrating.
-
-“Yes. Oh, but how did you know? It’s rather wonderful.”
-
-“When he was standing against the window there, the sleeve of his
-djellaba fell back. There was a scar like a white seam on his forearm.”
-
-“Yes.”
-
-Marguerite breathed her wonder at this prodigy of insight, and, like a
-good artist, having made her point, she did not labour it. She related
-with what reluctance Paul had afterwards told her the thing which he had
-done.
-
-“I knew nothing of it before. I thought that he was on leave. I should
-have killed myself whilst there was yet time for him to return to the
-camp if I had known. Even when I did know, I hoped that he could make
-some excuse, and I tried to kill myself. But he had, of course, foreseen
-that, and prepared against it.”
-
-Gerard nodded.
-
-“How?”
-
-“He had taken my little pistol secretly from the drawer where I kept it.
-He did not give it me back again until I promised that I would not use
-it unless the Moors were on the stair.”
-
-Gerard de Montignac started suddenly and pushed his chair sharply back.
-Some quite new consideration had flashed into his mind. He looked at
-Marguerite with a sentence upon his lips. But he did not speak it. He
-turned away and took a turn across the room towards the window and back
-again, whilst Marguerite waited with her heart in her mouth.
-
-“What am I to do?” he asked; and to Marguerite the fact of his actually
-addressing the question to her made the interview more of a nightmare
-than ever. He was standing close to her (breaking the breech of his
-revolver and snapping it to again, and almost unaware of who she was,
-and quite unaware that with each click and snap of the mechanism she
-could have screamed aloud). “What am I to do, Marguerite?”
-
-Marguerite mastered her failing nerves.
-
-“Those trenches outside Mulai Idris,” she said. “They were dug to resist
-the Zemmour. The people here might have used them against you but for
-Paul. He warned the Basha that he couldn’t win, that he would find you
-just and fair and careful of all his rights. Do you believe that?”
-
-Gerard reflected.
-
-“Yes, I do,” he said, slowly. “After all, he charged with Laguessière
-when Laguessière was put to it.”
-
-“Charged with Laguessière?” repeated Marguerite.
-
-“Yes—in Fez—one afternoon during the revolt. He had a great staff and
-used it—used it well. So much of the old creed remained with him, at
-all events.”
-
-Yes, thought Marguerite, there had been an afternoon when Paul had been
-on edge and she had sent him out. He had come back, appeased, and a new
-man. The riddle of that change was now explained to her. But she had no
-leisure to dwell upon the explanation. Gerard had swung away again from
-her, and was now standing close to the window looking out across the
-chasm to the dark blue of the hill in the shadow opposite. One little
-step would carry him on to the balcony, and the butt of his revolver was
-still in his hand.
-
-“Listen to me, Marguerite,” he said, in a low voice; and suddenly he
-became, to her thought, more dangerous in his calm than he had been in
-his anger. “Here’s a law broken by you and Paul, and see what misery has
-come of it! What loss! Shall I repair that law by breaking another?
-Hardly! Look at me, Marguerite!”
-
-But he did not look at her. He even advanced a foot beyond the
-window-ledge so that the boards of the balcony creaked and groaned
-beneath its pressure.
-
-“I could have lived in Paris with Deauville for the summer and Monte
-Carlo for the winter, and my own lands for the autumn—a pleasant, good
-life. I could have lived with women about me—the fine flower of them,
-the women who are exquisite and delicate. But I didn’t. I left the
-enjoyments to the others. I came out into these hot countries, the
-countries of squalor, to serve France. And I have served; yes, by God, I
-have served! That has been my creed. Shall I let another spit on it,
-even though he was my greatest friend? Not I!”
-
-Marguerite gave all up for lost. The one chance at the eleventh hour was
-not to be tried out by Paul and her. Well—she was very tired. She
-closed her eyes that she might not see anything of what happened at the
-window—anything more in the world. If ever she had worn the look of one
-set apart by fate, as so many had declared, she wore it now, stamped
-upon the submission of her face. Her hands went to her girdle and felt
-within its folds; and that action saved her lover and herself. For
-Gerard de Montignac saw it as he was stepping out onto the boards of the
-balcony.
-
-“Wait!” he cried, in a sharp, loud voice; and in a moment he was
-standing in front of her with a look of horror in his eyes. “The little
-pistol, which Paul took away from you and gave you back only on your
-promise—where is it?”
-
-Marguerite neither moved nor answered him.
-
-“It is there,” he cried, pointing to where her hand rested within her
-belt. It was that bedrabbled woman in the spangled skirt who had
-prophesied it. Henriette, yes, Henriette! It was strange over how many
-years that poor waif’s words had reached and with what effect. “No!” he
-cried. “You must go your ways. I’ll not have that upon my soul the day I
-die,” and he turned from her and rushed from the room, and in a few
-moments Marguerite heard the sound of a horse galloping away down the
-cobbled street as though its rider had no thought for his neck.
-
-Gerard de Montignac talked for many hours the next day with the Basha in
-the house at the city’s top. But neither he nor the Basha spoke once of
-Si Tayeb Reha. They came to a good understanding, and Gerard rode back
-to his camp, his work in Mulai Idris done. He sat in his camp chair
-outside his tent that night watching the few lights upon the hillside go
-out one after the other and Mulai Idris glimmer, unsubstantial, as the
-silver city of a dream.
-
-Gerard had carried off a small sort of triumph which would mean many
-good marks in the books of his great commander. But he was only thinking
-to-night of the two outcasts in the house on the city wall. Whither
-would they seek a refuge now that the gates of Mulai Idris were to stand
-open to the world? And was it worth their while? Marguerite’s haunted
-face and Paul Ravenel burrowing deeper and deeper into obscurity! Gerard
-turned to Laguessière, who was smoking at his side.
-
-“Walk in the crowd, my friend! It is always less dangerous to walk in
-the crowd. Well, let us turn in, for we start early to-morrow.”
-
-In the morning the tents were gone and Gerard’s column was continuing
-its march through the Zarhoun.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXII
-
-
- The Splendid Throw
-
-What had happened between the moment when Gerard de Montignac rode away
-from the door of Si Tayeb Reha’s house the first time and the moment
-when the pistol-shot rang out? It had all been Marguerite Lambert’s
-idea—a despairing clutch at some faint and far-off possibility, hardly
-a hope, yet worth putting to the proof. She had heard every word which
-Gerard had spoken. She had seen the revolver laid upon the table. She
-had seen even more than that. For when Gerard had gone from the room,
-Paul had taken the revolver at once in his hands. It would be a very
-little while before the sergeant noticed that Gerard’s revolver was
-missing from its pouch. He had not even time to write more than one
-“good-bye” to Marguerite. There were good friends who would look after
-her—the Basha himself, Selim his own servant.
-
-The road to the coast passed across the plain below the city, and there
-was a letter for her long since written with his instructions, on the
-top of his desk. He paused after he had written his one word to make
-sure that he had forgotten nothing. The addresses of his agents and his
-lawyers were written in the letter and all that he had, his property in
-the English funds, his houses in Fez and Casablanca, was bequeathed to
-her in a will of which Mr. Ferguson had charge. No, nothing had been
-forgotten—except that Marguerite herself was watching him from behind
-the curtains. She came into the room.
-
-Paul handed to her the paper with the one word “good-bye” written upon
-it.
-
-“Marguerite, Gerard de Montignac has been here.”
-
-“I know. I heard.”
-
-“Then you understand, my dear. This is the end for me.”
-
-“For both of us, then, Paul.”
-
-He began to argue and stopped. The futility of his words was too
-evident. She would follow him, whatever he might say. He began to thank
-her for the great love she had lavished on him and he stopped again. “I
-could never tell you what you have meant to me,” he said, helplessly.
-“But if it was all to do again, I should do as I did. For nothing in the
-world would I have left you alone through those days in the house of Si
-Ahmed Driss. Only, it is a pity that it must all end like this.”
-
-He took her in his arms and kissed her and put her from him. “Will you
-leave me now, my dear? At any moment the knock may come upon the door.”
-
-It was then that Marguerite’s inspiration came to her. She besought him
-to hold his hand. She fetched a rope and an axe. Often she had noticed
-from the window that ledge of rock breaking the precipice below. Paul
-was inclined to revolt against the trick which she was asking him to
-play. It was not likely to succeed with Gerard de Montignac. It would
-only add one more touch of indignity to their deaths. But Marguerite was
-urgent.
-
-“I’m not thinking of just saving our lives, Paul, so that we may fly and
-hide ourselves again in some still darker corner for a little while,”
-she said, eagerly. “I’ll tell you of my hope, my plan, afterwards. Now
-we must hurry.”
-
-Paul doubled the rope over one of the iron stanchions of the balcony
-close to the wall, whilst Marguerite locked the door. He climbed over
-the rail, and, taking a turn of the doubled rope round the upper part of
-his right arm and another turn round his right thigh, he let himself
-down until he hung below the balcony. He kept his arms squared and his
-hands below the level of his chin, and placing the flat of his feet
-against the wall of the house, he was able, by slackening the coils
-round arm and thigh, to descend without effort to the ledge of rock,
-where he lay huddled in a counterfeit of death.
-
-“Don’t move until you hear my voice calling to you,” she whispered. Then
-she drew up the rope and broke down the rail of the balcony with some
-blows of the axe, and, unlocking the door, hid away both axe and rope in
-another room. She came back swiftly, and then, taking up the heavy
-revolver, fired it out of the window and let it fall upon the boards of
-the balcony. She dropped to her knees, and thus Gerard de Montignac
-found her.
-
-All through that scene, whilst life and death were in the balance for
-these two, Paul Ravenel lay motionless upon the ledge of rock below the
-city wall. He dared not look up; he heard Gerard’s voice raised in anger
-and scorn; he expected the shock of the bullet tearing through his
-heart. But the voice diminished to a murmur. Gerard had gone back into
-the room. Some debate was in progress, and while it was in progress,
-from this and that far quarter of the sky the vultures gathered and
-wheeled above the precipice. . . .
-
-After a while he heard Marguerite’s voice, and, looking up, saw that she
-was letting down the rope to him. She had tied knots in it at intervals
-to help him in his ascent, and he clambered up to her side.
-
-“Gerard has gone?” he asked.
-
-“Yes. He will not come here again.”
-
-“Then he believed you?”
-
-“No. He left us in pity to live our lives out as best we could,” said
-Marguerite.
-
-Paul nodded his head.
-
-“Others will be coming and going now,” he said. “This city will become a
-show-place, very likely. We can’t remain in Mulai Idris because of those
-others.”
-
-“And we can’t remain anywhere else because of ourselves,” said
-Marguerite, quietly.
-
-Paul was not startled by the words. They were no more than the echo of
-words which he had been trying during this last half hour not to speak
-to himself. They had built up with elaborate care a great pretence of
-contentment, watching themselves so that there might be no betrayal of
-the truth, watching each other so that if the truth did at some
-unendurable moment flash out, no heed should be taken of it; and hoping
-even without any conviction that one day the contentment would grow
-real. But all that patient edifice of pretence was a crumble of dust
-now. The outer world in the person of Gerard de Montignac in his uniform
-had rushed in, with his hard logic, its scorn for duty abandoned, its
-emblems of duty fulfilled; and there was no more any peace for Paul
-Ravenel and Marguerite Lambert. To live for thirty or forty years more
-as they had been living! It was in both their thoughts that it would
-have been better for Gerard de Montignac to have done straightway what
-he threatened, and for Marguerite to have followed her lover as she had
-determined.
-
-Paul sat down at the table with his eyes upon Marguerite. She had some
-hope, some plan. So much she had said. Was it, he wondered, the plan of
-which he from time to time had dreamed, but for her sake had never dared
-to speak? He waited.
-
-“You are a man, Paul,” she began, “oh, generous as men should not be,
-but a man. And you sit here idle. A great personage in Mulai Idris, no
-doubt. The power behind the throne—the Basha’s throne!” The hard words
-were spoken with a loving gentleness which drew their sting. “A man must
-have endeavour—I don’t say success—but endeavour of a kind, if only in
-games. Otherwise what? He becomes a thing in carpet slippers, old before
-his youth is spent, and this you would dwindle, too, for me! No, my
-dear!”
-
-Paul made no gesture and uttered no word. She was to speak her thought
-out.
-
-“You laugh and joke with these people here. For five minutes at a time
-no doubt you can forget,” she continued. “But you can never exchange
-thoughts with your equals, you can never talk over old dreams you have
-had in common, old, hard, and tough experiences which you have shared.
-And these things, Paul, are all necessary for a man.”
-
-Again Paul Ravenel neither denied nor agreed. He left to her the right
-of way.
-
-“And in spite of all you still love me!” she cried, in a sudden fervour,
-clasping her hands together upon her breast. “Me whom you should hate. I
-clutch the wonder of that to my heart. I must keep your love.”
-
-Paul Ravenel smiled.
-
-“There’s no danger of your losing it, Marguerite.”
-
-Marguerite shook her head.
-
-“But there is—oh, not at once! But I am warned, Paul. There’s the light
-showing on the reef. I keep my course at more than my peril.”
-
-Paul went back upon his words and his looks. What could he have said, he
-who so watched himself?
-
-“And this warning?” he asked, with a smile, making light of it.
-
-“We dare not quarrel,” she answered, slowly. “That human natural thing
-is barred from us. The sharp words flashing out, the shrug of
-impatience, the few tears perhaps from me, the silent hour of sulkiness
-in you, the making-up, the tenderness and remorse—these things are for
-other lovers, Paul, never, my dear, for you and me. We daren’t quarrel.
-We must watch ourselves night and day lest we do! For if we did, the
-unforgivable word might be spoken. I might fling my debt to you in your
-face. I might be reminded of it, anyway. No, we must live in a
-constraint. Other lovers can quarrel and love no less. Not you and I—a
-man who has given his honour and career, and a woman who has taken
-them!”
-
-The argument silenced Paul Ravenel, for there was no disputing it. How
-daintily the pair of them had minced amongst words! With what terror of
-a catastrophe if the tongue slipped!
-
-“So . . . ?” he asked.
-
-“Yes,” said Marguerite, with a nod. “So! So, Paul, let us stake all on
-one splendid throw! Go down if we must, but if we do, in a fine
-endeavour, and perhaps, after all, win out to the open street!”
-
-She spoke with a ring in her voice which Paul had not heard for a long
-while.
-
-“How?” he asked, and the light leaped in his eyes. So much hung upon the
-answer.
-
-“The French are recruiting Moorish soldiers——” and she got no further,
-for Paul sprang up from his chair, his face one flame of hope.
-
-“Marguerite!” he cried, in a thrilling voice, and then sank down again
-with his face buried in his arms. “Marguerite!” he whispered, and the
-tenderness and gratitude with which the utterance of her name was
-winged, she caught into her memories and treasured there against the
-solitude which was to come.
-
-She moved round the table and laid her hand upon his bowed head and let
-it slip and rest upon his heaving shoulder.
-
-“So the thought has been in your mind too, Paul?” she said, with a
-smile.
-
-“Yes.”
-
-“And for a long time?”
-
-“Yes.”
-
-“And you would not speak it. No! I must find that way out for myself,”
-she said, gently chiding him, “lest you should seem to wish at all costs
-to be rid of me.” She walked away from his side and drew a chair up to
-the table opposite to him.
-
-“Let us be practical,” she said, very wisely, though her eyes danced.
-“It would be possible for you to enlist without being recognised?”
-
-Paul lifted his head and nodded:
-
-“Over in the south by Marrakesch.”
-
-“And you could continue to escape recognition.”
-
-“I think so. Even if I were recognised, very likely those who recognised
-me would say nothing. I remember a case once . . .”
-
-“Here?” cried Marguerite. “There was a case, then—an example to
-follow—and even so you would not tell me.”
-
-“I didn’t mean I know of a case here. I was thinking of another country.
-India. If that man could, I could, for I am even better equipped than he
-was.”
-
-Paul Ravenel could say that with confidence. He knew more of the Moors,
-had more constantly lived their life and spoken their dialects than
-Colonel Vanderfelt had known of the Pathans upon the frontier of India.
-The example of Colonel Vanderfelt had been long in Paul Ravenel’s
-thoughts. How often had he watched with an envy not to be described,
-both when he waked and when he slept, that limping figure, with the
-medals shining upon his breast, walk down the dark city street from the
-brilliant lights of the Guildhall!
-
-How often had this room in the remote hill town of Mulai Idris been
-suddenly filled with the fragrance of a Sussex garden, whilst he himself
-looked out not upon the hillside of Zahoun but upon a dim and dewy lawn
-where roses clustered! He had done the bad thing which his father did,
-and, like his father, lost his place in the world. Could he now win back
-that place by the expiation of his father’s friend? Was it not of
-excellent omen that the solution which he had remembered, Marguerite had
-herself devised? But she must weigh everything.
-
-“It may be long before opportunity comes,” he warned her. “Such
-opportunity as will restore to me my name. It may never come at all. Or
-death may come with it.”
-
-Marguerite looked round the room and out of the window to the barren
-hill.
-
-“Is not this death, Paul?” she answered, simply, and he was answered.
-
-“You must make me a promise, too, before I go, Marguerite,” he
-continued. “More than once you’ve said you couldn’t go on living if
-. . .”
-
-Marguerite interrupted him.
-
-“I promise.”
-
-“Then I’ll go.”
-
-A great load was lifted from both of them. They set straightway about
-their preparations. Marguerite was to set out first with Selim and her
-women. The road over the Red Hill to Tangier was no longer safe at all,
-since it passed through a portion of the Spanish zone. But five days of
-easy travel would take her to Casablanca, through a country now peaceful
-as a road in France. She would go to Marseilles, she said, and wait
-there for news of Paul. They passed that evening with a lightness of
-spirit which neither of them had known since they had laughed and loved
-in the house of Si Ahmed Driss before the massacres of Fez.
-
-“There is one thing which troubles me,” said Paul, catching her in his
-arms and speaking with a great tenderness. “Long ago in Fez you once
-told me of a girl who, when her husband died, dressed herself in her
-wedding gown——”
-
-“Hush!” said Marguerite, and laid her hand upon his lips.
-
-“You remember, then?” said Paul. He took her hand gently away, and
-Marguerite bent her head down and nodded. “‘I couldn’t do that, my
-dear,’ you said. I have never forgotten it, Marguerite. I should have
-dearly loved, if before we parted—that had been possible.”
-
-Marguerite raised her face. There were tears in her eyes, but her lips
-were smiling, and there was a smile, too, in her eyes behind the tears.
-
- “_I know! the World proscribes not love;_
- _Allows my finger to caress_
- _Your lips’ contour and downiness_
- _Provided I supply a glove._
-
- “_The World’s good word!—the Institute!_
- _Guizot receives Montalembert!_
- _Eh? Down the court three lampions flare;_
- _Put forward your best foot!_”
-
-She quoted with a laugh from the poet whose brown books had been the
-backbone of their library, and then drew his head down to hers and
-whispered:
-
-“Thank you, Paul. The world shall supply its glove—afterwards, when you
-come back to me.”
-
-“But if I don’t come back . . . ?”
-
-“Well, then, my dear, since you have been the only man for me, and I
-have been the only woman for you, we must hope that the good God will
-make the best of it.” She laughed again and her arms tightened about his
-neck. “But come back to me, my dear!” she whispered. “I am young, you
-know, Paul—twenty-three. I shall have such a long time to wait if you
-don’t, now that I have promised.”
-
-They were ready within the twenty-four hours. The tail of Gerard de
-Montignac’s column had hardly disappeared before Marguerite, with her
-little escort, her tents and camp outfit, rode out of the gate of Mulai
-Idris and turned northwards past the columns of Volubilis. Paul rode
-with her to the top of the breach in the hills, whence the track
-zigzagged down to the plain of the Sebou. There they took their leave of
-one another. At each turn of the road Marguerite looked upwards and saw
-her lover upon his horse, his blue cape and white robes fluttering about
-him, outlined against the sky. The tears were raining down her face now
-which she had withheld so long as they were together, and in her heart
-was one deep call to him: “Oh, come back to me!” She looked up again and
-the breach in the hills was empty. Her lover had gone.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXIII
-
-
- The Necessary Man
-
-In the summer of that same year, the thundercloud burst over Europe, and
-France, at her moment of need, reaped the fine harvest of her colonial
-policy. Black men and brown mustered to the call of her bugle as men
-having their share of France. Gerard de Montignac scrambled like his
-brother officers to get to the zone of battles. He was seconded in the
-autumn, was promoted colonel a year later, and was then summoned to
-Paris.
-
-In a little room upon the first floor in a building adjacent to the War
-Office Gerard discovered Baumann, of the Affaires Indigènes, but an
-uplifted Baumann, a Baumann who had grown a little supercilious towards
-colonels.
-
-“Ah, De Montignac!” he said, with a wave of the hand. “I have been
-expecting you. Yes. Will you sit down for a moment?”
-
-Gerard smiled and obeyed contentedly. There were so many Baumanns about
-nowadays, and he never tired of them. Baumann frowned portentously over
-some papers on his desk for a few moments, and then, pushing them aside,
-smoothed out his forehead with the palm of his hand.
-
-“Yours is a simpler affair, De Montignac. I am happy to say,” he said,
-with a happy air of relief. “The Governor-General is in Paris. You will
-see him after this interview. He wants you again in Morocco.”
-
-“It is necessary?” Gerard asked, unwillingly.
-
-“Not a doubt of it, my dear fellow. You can take that from me. The
-Governor-General is holding the country with the merest handful of
-soldiers, and there are—annoyances.”
-
-“Serious ones?”
-
-“Very. Bartels, for instance.”
-
-“Bartels?” Gerard repeated. “I never heard of him.”
-
-Far away from the main shock of the battles, many curious and romantic
-episodes were occurring, many strange epics of prowess and adventure
-which will never find a historian. Bartels was the hero of one, and here
-in Baumann’s clipped phrases are the bare bones of his exploit.
-
-“He was a non-commissioned officer in the German army . . . enlisted on
-his discharge in our Foreign Legion—was interned in August, 1914, and
-got away to Melilla.”
-
-“In the Spanish zone, on the coast. Yes,” said Gerard.
-
-“He was safe there and on the edge of the Riff country. He got into
-touch with a more than usually turbulent chieftain of those parts,
-Abd-el-Malek, and also with a German official in Spain. From the German
-officials Bartels received by obscure routes fifteen thousand pounds a
-month in solid cash, minus, of course, a certain attrition which the sum
-suffers on the way.”
-
-“Of course,” said Gerard.
-
-“With the fifteen thousand—call it twelve—with the twelve thousand
-pounds a month actually received, and Abd-el-Malek’s help, Bartels has
-built himself a walled camp up in the hills close to the edge of the
-French zone, where he maintains two thousand riflemen well paid and well
-armed.”
-
-Gerard leaned forward quickly.
-
-“But surely a protest has been made to Spain?”
-
-Baumann smiled indulgently.
-
-“How you rush at things, my dear De Montignac!”
-
-“It will be ‘Gerard’ in a moment,” De Montignac thought.
-
-“Of course a protest has been lodged. But Spain renounces
-responsibility. The camp is in a part of the country which she has
-officially declared to be not yet subdued. On the other hand, it is in
-the Spanish zone—and we have enough troubles upon our hands as it is,
-eh?”
-
-Gerard leaned back in his chair.
-
-“That has always been our trouble, hasn’t it? The unsubdued Spanish
-zone,” he said, moodily. “What does Bartels do with his two thousand
-riflemen?”
-
-“He wages war. He comes across into French Morocco, and raids and loots
-and burns and generally plays the devil. And, mark you, he gets
-information; he chooses his time cleverly. When we are just about to
-embark fresh troops to France, that’s his favourite moment. The troops
-have to be retained, rushed quickly up country—and he, Bartels, is
-snugly back on the Spanish side of the line and we can’t touch him.
-Bartels, my dear De Montignac”—and here Baumann, of the Affaires
-Indigènes, tapped the table impressively with the butt of his
-pencil—“Bartels has got to be dealt with.”
-
-“Yes,” Gerard replied. “But how, doesn’t seem quite so obvious, does
-it?”
-
-Baumann gently flourished his hand.
-
-“We leave that with every confidence to you, my dear Colonel.”
-
-Gerard pushed his chair back.
-
-“Oh, you do, do you! I don’t know that I’ve the type of brain for that
-job,” he said, and thought disconsolately how often he had jeered at the
-officers who simply passed everything that wasn’t in “the book.” He
-would very much have liked to take the same line now. “How does this
-fellow Bartels get his twelve thousand pounds?”
-
-“Through Tetuan probably. We don’t quite know,” said Baumann.
-
-“And where exactly is his camp on the map?” Gerard asked next.
-
-“We are not sure. We can give you, of course, a general idea.”
-
-“We have nobody amongst his two thousand men, then?”
-
-“Not a soul. So, you see, you have a clear field.”
-
-“Yes, I see that, and I need hardly say that I am very grateful,” said
-De Montignac.
-
-Baumann was not quick to appreciate irony even in its crudest form. He
-smiled as one accepting compliments.
-
-“We do our best, my dear Gerard,” and Gerard beamed with satisfaction.
-He had heard what he had wanted to hear, and he would not spoil its
-flavour. He rose at once and took up his cap.
-
-“I will go and see the Governor-General.”
-
-“You will find him next door,” said Baumann. “We keep him next door to
-us whilst he is in Paris, so far as we can.”
-
-“You are very wise,” said Gerard, gravely, and he went next door, which
-was the War Office. There he met his chief, who said:
-
-“You have seen Baumann? Good! Take a little leave, but go as soon as you
-can. Ten days, eh? I will see you in a fortnight at Rabat,” and the
-Governor-General passed on to the Elysée.
-
-Gerard de Montignac did not, however, take his ten days. He knew his
-chief, a tall, preëminent man, both in war and administration, who, with
-the utmost good-fellowship, expected much of his officers. Gerard spent
-one day in Paris and then travelled to Marseilles. At Marseilles he had
-to wait two days, and visited in consequence a hospital where a number
-of Moorish soldiers lay wounded, men of all shades from the fair Fasi to
-the coal-black negro from the south. Their faces broke into smiles as
-Gerard exchanged a word or a joke with them in their own dialects.
-
-He stopped a little abruptly at the foot of one bed in which the
-occupant lay asleep with—a not uncommon sight in the ward—a brand-new
-_medaille militaire_ pinned upon the pillow.
-
-“He is badly hurt?” Gerard asked.
-
-“He is recovering very well,” said the nurse who accompanied him. “We
-expect to have him out of the hospital in a fortnight.”
-
-Gerard remained for a moment or two looking at the sleeper, and the
-nurse watched him curiously.
-
-“It will do him no harm if I wake him up,” she suggested.
-
-Gerard roused himself from an abstraction into which he had fallen.
-
-“No,” he answered, with a laugh. “If I was a general, I would say, yes.
-But sleep is a better medicine than a crack with a mere colonel. What is
-his name?”
-
-“Ahmed Ben Larti,” said the nurse, and with a careless “So?” Gerard de
-Montignac moved along to the next bed. But before he passed out of the
-ward he jerked his head towards the sleeper and asked:
-
-“Will he be fit for service again?”
-
-“Certainly,” she answered. “In a month, I should think.”
-
-Gerard left the hospital, and the next morning was back in Baumann’s
-office in Paris.
-
-“I have found the man I want,” he said.
-
-“Who is he?”
-
-“Ahmed Ben Larti. He is in hospital at Marseilles. He has the _medaille
-militaire_.”
-
-Baumann shrugged his shoulders. “Who has it not?” he seemed to say.
-
-“I had better see the Governor-General,” said Gerard.
-
-Baumann became mysterious, as befitted a high officer of Intelligence.
-
-“Difficult, my young friend,” he began.
-
-“Excellent, Baumann, excellent,” interrupted Gerard, with a chuckle.
-
-Baumann pouted.
-
-“I don’t quite understand,” he said.
-
-“And there’s no reason that you should,” Gerard answered, politely.
-
-Baumann was not very pleased. It was his business to do the mystifying.
-
-“It’s practically impossible that you should see the Governor-General
-again. He is so occupied,” he said, firmly.
-
-Gerard got up from his chair.
-
-“Where is he?”
-
-“Ah!” said Baumann, wisely. “That is another matter.”
-
-“Then you don’t know,” exclaimed Gerard, standing over him.
-
-“No,” answered Baumann, and it took Gerard the rest of that day before
-he ran his chief to earth. Like other busy men, the Governor-General had
-the necessary time to give to necessary things, and in a spare corner of
-the Colonial Office, he listened with some astonishment, asked a few
-questions, and wrote a note to the War Office.
-
-“This will get you what you want, De Montignac. For the rest, I agree.”
-
-Forty-eight hours later Gerard had a long interview with Ahmed Ben Larti
-in a private ward to which the Moor had been removed: and towards the
-end of the interview, Ahmed Ben Larti made a suggestion.
-
-“That’s it!” said Gerard enthusiastically. Then his spirits dropped.
-“But we haven’t got any. No, we haven’t got one.”
-
-“The Governor-General,” the Moor suggested.
-
-“I’ll send him a telegram,” said Gerard de Montignac.
-
-Now this was in the spring of autumn, 1916, when Bartels was in the full
-bloom of power. His camp was full, for the danger was small, the pay
-high, and the discipline easy. The Moor brought his horse and his rifle,
-was paid so many dollars a day, and could go home if the pay failed or
-his harvest called him. But in the autumn Bartels in his turn began to
-suffer annoyance. Thus, on one occasion a strange humming filled the
-air, and a most alarming thing swooped out of the sky with a roar and
-dropped a bomb in the middle of the camp.
-
-Bartels ran out of his hut with an oath. “They’ve located us at last,”
-he growled. Not one of his soldiers had ever seen an aeroplane before,
-except perhaps the man who was cowering down on the ground close to him
-with every expression of terror. Bartels jerked him up to his feet.
-
-“What’s your name?”
-
-“Ahmed Ben Larti.”
-
-“They make a great noise, but they hurt no one,” Bartels declared. “Tell
-the others!”
-
-The others were running for their lives to any sort of shelter. For,
-indeed, this sort of thing was worse than cannon. And unfortunately for
-Bartel’s encouragements, the aeroplane was coming back. It dropped its
-whole load of bombs in and around that camp, breaching the walls and
-destroying the huts and causing not a few casualties into the bargain.
-There was an exodus of some size from that camp under cover of the
-night, and Bartels the next morning thought it prudent to move.
-
-He moved westwards into the country of the Braue’s, and there his second
-misfortune befell him. His month’s instalment of money did not come to
-hand. It should have travelled upon mules from Tetuan, and a rumour
-spread that the English had got hold of it. Nothing, of course, could be
-said; Bartels had just to put up with the loss and see a still further
-diminution of his army. Within a month the new camp was raided by
-aeroplanes, and Bartels had to move again. From a harrier of others he
-had sadly fallen to being harried himself.
-
-“There is a traitor in the camp,” he said, and he consulted Abd-el-Malek
-and stray German visitors from Tetuan and Melilla. They suspected
-everybody who went away before the raids and came back afterwards. They
-never suspected men like Ahmed Ben Larti, who was always present in the
-camp on these occasions of danger, not overconspicuously present, but
-just noticeably present, running for shelter, for instance, or
-discharging his rifle at the aeroplane in a panic of terror. Bartels,
-however, carried on with constantly diminishing forces until the crops
-were ripening in the following year. Then the aeroplanes dealt with him
-finally.
-
-Wherever he pitched his camp, there very quickly they found him out and
-burnt the crops for a mile around. The villages would no longer supply
-him with food; his army melted to a useless handful of men; he became
-negligible, a bandit on the move. Ahmed Ben Larti called off the little
-train of runners which had passed in his messages to French agents in
-Tetuan, and one dark evening slipped away himself. His work was done,
-and almost immediately his luck gave out.
-
-A telegram reached Gerard de Montignac at Rabat a week later from the
-French consul in Tetuan, which, being decoded, read: “Larti brought in
-here this morning. He was attacked two miles from here and left for
-dead. Recovery doubtful.”
-
-The last of Ahmed’s messengers had been lured into a house in Tetuan,
-and upon him Larti’s final message announcing the date of his own
-arrival had been discovered. Further telegrams came to Rabat from
-Tetuan. Larti had lost his left arm just below the shoulder, and his
-condition was precarious. He began to mend, however, in a week, but
-three months passed before a French steamer brought to Casablanca a
-haggard thin man in mufti with a sleeve pinned to his breast, who had
-once been Captain Paul Ravenel of the Tirailleurs.
-
-Gerard de Montignac met him on the quay and walked up with him to the
-cantonment at Ain-Bourdja.
-
-“We have got quarters for you here,” said Gerard. “There’s nobody you
-know any longer here.”
-
-“Yes!” said Paul.
-
-“We can rig you out with a uniform. The General will want to see you.”
-
-“Yes?” said Paul.
-
-“You know that you have been on secret service the whole time. The
-troubles at Fez were the opportunity needed to make your disappearance
-natural.”
-
-Paul sat down on the camp bed.
-
-“That was arranged in Paris before you went to Bartels,” said Gerard.
-“Oh, by the way, I have something of yours.”
-
-He opened a drawer of the one table in the tiny matchboard room and,
-unfolding a cloth, handed to Paul the row of medals which he had taken
-from Paul’s tunic when he had searched the house of Si Ahmed Driss in
-Fez.
-
-Paul sat gazing at the medals for a long while with his head bowed.
-
-“I have got another to add to these, you know—the _medaille
-militaire_,” he said, with a laugh, and his voice broke. “I shall turn
-woman if I hold them any longer,” he cried, and, rising, he put them
-back in the drawer. Gerard de Montignac turned to a window which looked
-out across the plain of the Chaiouïa. He pointed towards the northwest
-and said:
-
-“Years ago, Paul, you saved me from mutilation and death over there. I
-forgot that in Mulai Idris, and you didn’t remind me.”
-
-“I, too, had forgotten it,” said Paul. He looked about the cabin, he
-drew a long breath as though he could hardly believe the fact that he
-was there. Then he said abruptly:
-
-“I must send a telegram to Marseilles!”
-
-Gerard de Montignac stared at him.
-
-“Marseilles?”
-
-“Yes, Marguerite has been living there all this time.”
-
-“But you were in hospital there, and no one visited you, I know. The
-nurse told me.”
-
-Paul Ravenel smiled.
-
-“Marguerite never knew I was there. I was always afraid that she would
-come there by chance. Fortunately, she was driving a car. I was just
-Ahmed Ben Larti. The time had not come.” He looked at Gerard and nodded
-his head. “But I can tell you it was difficult not to send for her.
-There she was, just a few streets and just a few house-walls between us.
-There were sleepless nights, with the light shining down on all those
-beds of wounded men when I could have screamed for Marguerite aloud.”
-
-He sent off his telegram from the Cantonment Post Office and then
-strolled into the town with Gerard de Montignac. The Villa Iris was
-closed; Madame Delagrange had vanished. Petras Tetarnis was no doubt
-driving his Delaunay-Belleville through the streets of Paris. Paul
-looked at his watch and put it back into his pocket with impatience. It
-was out in the palm of his hand again. He was counting the minutes until
-a telegram could be delivered in Marseilles. He was wondering whether
-she was already aware—as she had been aware when he had stood behind
-her on the first night that they met.
-
- * * * * *
-
-A fortnight later Mr. Ferguson, the lawyer, received a telegram which
-put him into a fluster. He was an old gentleman nowadays and liable to
-excitement. He sent for his head clerk, not that pertinacious servant,
-Mr. Gregory—he had long since gone into retirement—but another, from
-whom Mr. Ferguson was not inclined to stand any nonsense.
-
-“I shall want to-morrow all the necessary forms for securing English
-nationality,” he said, “and please get me Colonel Vanderfelt on the
-trunk line.”
-
-The clerk went out of the office. The old man sat in a muse, looking out
-of the window upon the plane trees in the Square. So here was Virginia
-Ravenel’s son coming home, invalided, with a wife. How the years did
-fly, to be sure! Yet though the plane trees were a little dim to his
-eyes, he heard a voice, fresh as the morning, through that dusty room,
-and saw the Opera House at Covent Garden with people wearing the strange
-dress of thirty years ago.
-
- THE END
-
-
-
-
- TRANSCRIBER NOTES
-
-Misspelled words and printer errors have been corrected. Where multiple
-spellings occur, majority use has been employed.
-
-Punctuation has been maintained except where obvious printer errors
-occur.
-
-Some illustrations were moved to facilitate page layout.
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of The Winding Stair, by A. E. W. Mason
-
-*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE WINDING STAIR ***
-
-***** This file should be named 60125-0.txt or 60125-0.zip *****
-This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
- http://www.gutenberg.org/6/0/1/2/60125/
-
-Produced by Al Haines, Cindy Beyer & the online Distributed
-Proofreaders Canada team at https://www.pgdpcanada.net
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you receive
-specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of this
-eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this eBook
-for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports,
-performances and research. They may be modified and printed and given
-away--you may do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks
-not protected by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the
-trademark license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country outside the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you'll have to check the laws of the country where you
- are located before using this ebook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and The
-Project Gutenberg Trademark LLC, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org
-
-
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's principal office is in Fairbanks, Alaska, with the
-mailing address: PO Box 750175, Fairbanks, AK 99775, but its
-volunteers and employees are scattered throughout numerous
-locations. Its business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt
-Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up to
-date contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site and
-official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-For additional contact information:
-
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works.
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-
diff --git a/old/60125-0.zip b/old/60125-0.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 5ab2dca..0000000
--- a/old/60125-0.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/60125-h.zip b/old/60125-h.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index c113ca3..0000000
--- a/old/60125-h.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/60125-h/60125-h.htm b/old/60125-h/60125-h.htm
deleted file mode 100644
index 834af33..0000000
--- a/old/60125-h/60125-h.htm
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,11575 +0,0 @@
-<!DOCTYPE html PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD XHTML 1.0 Strict//EN"
- "http://www.w3.org/TR/xhtml1/DTD/xhtml1-strict.dtd">
-<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml" xml:lang="en" lang="en">
- <head>
- <meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html;charset=utf-8" />
- <title>The Project Gutenberg eBook of The Winding Stair by A. E. W. (Alfred Edward Woodley) Mason</title>
- <link rel="coverpage" href="images/cover.jpg"/>
- <meta name="cover" content="images/cover.jpg" />
- <meta name="DC.Title" content="The Winding Stair"/>
- <meta name="DC.Creator" content="A. E. W. (Alfred Edward Woodley) Mason"/>
- <meta name="DC.Language" content="en"/>
- <meta name="DC.Created" content="1923"/>
- <meta name="DC.Subject" content="Adventure"/>
- <meta name="DC.date.issued" content="1923"/>
- <meta name="Tags" content="fiction, film adaptation, Foreign Legion"/>
- <meta name="DC.Publisher" content="Project Gutenberg"/>
- <meta name="generator" content="fpgen 4.61k"/>
- <style type="text/css">
- body { margin-left:8%;margin-right:10%; }
- .it { font-style:italic; }
- .bold { font-weight:bold; }
- .sc { font-variant:small-caps; }
- .gesp { letter-spacing:0.2em; }
- p { text-indent:0; margin-top:0.5em; margin-bottom:0.5em;
- text-align: justify; }
- div.lgc { }
- div.lgl { }
- div.lgc p { text-align:center; text-indent:0; margin-top:0; margin-bottom:0; }
- div.lgl p { text-indent: -17px; margin-left:17px; margin-top:0; margin-bottom:0; }
- div.lgp {
- display:inline-block;
- text-align: left;
- }
-
- div.lgp p {
- text-align:left;
- margin-top:0;
- margin-bottom:0;
- }
-
- .poetry-container {
- text-align:center;
- }
-
- h1 {
- text-align:center;
- font-weight:normal;
- page-break-before: always;
- font-size:1.2em; margin:2em auto 1em auto
- }
-
- h2 {
- text-align:center;
- font-weight:normal;
- font-size:1.1em;
- margin:1em auto 0.5em auto;
- }
-
- h3 {
- text-align:center;
- font-weight:normal;
- font-size:1.0em;
- margin:1em auto 0.5em auto;
- page-break-after:avoid;
- }
-
-
- .dropcap {
- float:left;
- clear: left;
- margin:0 0.1em 0 0;
- padding:0;
- line-height: 1.0em;
- font-size: 200%;
- }
-
-
- .lead-in {
- font-variant: small-caps;
- }
-
- hr.tbk { border:none; border-bottom:1px solid black; width:30%; margin-left:35%; margin-right:35%; }
- hr.pbk { border:none; border-bottom:1px solid silver; width:100%; margin-top:2em; margin-bottom:2em }
- .figcenter {
- text-align:center;
- margin:1em auto;
- page-break-inside: avoid;
- }
-
- p.caption { text-align:center; margin:0 auto; width:100%; }
- p.credit { text-align:right; margin:0 auto; width: 100%; }
-
- .nobreak { page-break-before: avoid; }
- p.line { text-indent:0; margin-top:0; margin-bottom:0; }
- div.lgp p.line0 { text-indent:-3em; margin:0 auto 0 3em; }
- table { page-break-inside: avoid; }
- table.center { margin:0.5em auto; border-collapse: collapse; padding:3px; }
- table.flushleft { margin:0.5em 0em; border-collapse: collapse; padding:3px; }
- table.left { margin:0.5em 1.2em; border-collapse: collapse; padding:3px; }
- td.leader-dots {
- max-width:40em;
- overflow-x:hidden;
- display:block;
- }
- td.leader-dots:after {
- float:left;
- width:0;
- white-space:nowrap;
- content: ".\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0.\00A0\00A0\00A0";
- text-indent:0;
- }
- td.leader-dots span {
- background:white;
- }
-
- .tab1c1 { }
- .tab1c2 { }
- .tab1c3 { }
- .tab1c1-col2 { border-right: 0px solid black; }
- .tab1c1-col3 { border-right: 0px solid black; }
- .tdStyle0 {
- padding: 1px 5px; text-align:center; vertical-align:top;
- }
- .tdStyle1 {
- padding: 1px 5px; text-align:right; vertical-align:top;
- }
- .tdStyle2 {
- padding: 1px 5px; text-align:left; vertical-align:top;padding-left:29px; text-indent:-24px;
- }
- .tdStyle3 {
- padding: 1px 5px; text-align:right; vertical-align:bottom;
- }
- .tdStyle4 {
- padding: 1px 5px; text-align:left; vertical-align:top;
- }
- .pindent { margin-top:0; margin-bottom:0; text-indent:1.5em; }
- .noindent { margin-top:0; margin-bottom:0; text-indent:0; }
- .hang { padding-left:1.5em; text-indent:-1.5em; }
- </style>
- <style type="text/css">
- h1 { font-size:1em; font-weight:bold; text-align:center;
- page-break-before: always; word-spacing:.2em; }
- h3 { font-size:1.2em; font-weight:bold; text-align:center;
- word-spacing:.2em; }
- .poetry-container { font-size:1em;
- margin-top:.5em; margin-bottom:.5em;
- margin-left: 1em; margin-right: 1em; }
- div.blockquote { margin-top:.5em; margin-bottom:.5em; }
- .pindent {margin-top: 0.2em; margin-bottom: 0em;}
- .literal-container { margin-top:.5em; margin-bottom:.5em }
- div.lgc { margin-top:.5em; margin-bottom:.5em }
- .dropcap { font-size: 250%; margin:.1em 0.0em 0 0;
- line-height:.8em; }
- .sc { font-variant:small-caps; font-size:100%; }
- .lead-in { font-size: 150%; }
- p.credit {font-size: .7em; margin-bottom:.4em; max-width:100%; }
- .caption {font-size: smaller; margin-bottom:.2em; max-width:90%; }
- hr.tbk { border:none; border-bottom:1px solid white;
- width:30%; margin-left:35%; margin-right:35%;
- margin-top: 1em; margin-bottom: 1em; }
- .figcenter {margin:0 0 0 0; }
- .bbox { border-style:double; border-width:8px; width:21em;
- margin-right:auto; margin-left:auto; padding:.1em;
- border-color:black; }
- </style>
- </head>
- <body>
-
-
-<pre>
-
-The Project Gutenberg EBook of The Winding Stair, by A. E. W. Mason
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
-other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms of
-the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you'll have
-to check the laws of the country where you are located before using this ebook.
-
-Title: The Winding Stair
-
-Author: A. E. W. Mason
-
-Release Date: August 26, 2019 [EBook #60125]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: UTF-8
-
-*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE WINDING STAIR ***
-
-
-
-
-Produced by Al Haines, Cindy Beyer &amp; the online Distributed
-Proofreaders Canada team at https://www.pgdpcanada.net
-
-
-
-
-
-
-</pre>
-
-
-<hr class='pbk'/>
-
-<div class='figcenter'>
-<img src='images/cover.jpg' alt='' id='iid-0000' style='width:350px;height:auto;'/>
-</div>
-
-<hr class='pbk'/>
-
-<div class='figcenter'>
-<img src='images/illofront.png' alt='' id='iid-0001' style='width:100%;height:auto;'/>
-<p class='credit'><span class='it'>A William Fox Production.</span>&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;<span class='it'>The Winding Stair.</span></p> <p class='caption'>“NO MATTER WHAT HAPPENS, I’LL ALWAYS LOVE YOU.”</p>
-</div>
-
-<hr class='pbk'/>
-
-<p class='line'>&#160;</p>
-
-<div class='bbox'>
-
-<div class='lgc' style=''> <!-- rend=';bold;' -->
-<p class='line0' style='font-size:2.4em;font-weight:bold;'>THE</p>
-<p class='line0' style='font-size:2.4em;font-weight:bold;'>WINDING &nbsp;STAIR</p>
-<p class='line'>&#160;</p>
-<p class='line'>&#160;</p>
-<p class='line0' style='font-weight:bold;'><span style='font-size:smaller'>BY</span></p>
-<p class='line0' style='font-weight:bold;'><span style='font-size:larger'>A. &nbsp;E. &nbsp;W. &nbsp;MASON</span></p>
-<p class='line'>&#160;</p>
-<p class='line0' style='font-weight:bold;'><span style='font-size:smaller'>AUTHOR OF</span></p>
-<p class='line0' style='font-weight:bold;'>THE FOUR FEATHERS, <span class='sc'>Etc.</span></p>
-<p class='line'>&#160;</p>
-<p class='line'>&#160;</p>
-<p class='line'>&#160;</p>
-<p class='line0' style='font-weight:bold;'><span style='font-size:smaller'>“<span class='it'>All rising to great place is by</span></span></p>
-<p class='line0' style='font-weight:bold;'><span style='font-size:smaller'><span class='it'>a winding stair.</span>”—<span class='sc'>Bacon.</span></span></p>
-<p class='line'>&#160;</p>
-<p class='line'>&#160;</p>
-<p class='line'>&#160;</p>
-<p class='line0' style='margin-top:4em;font-size:.8em;font-weight:bold;'><span class='gesp'>NEW YORK</span></p>
-<p class='line0' style='font-weight:bold;'><span style='font-size:larger'><span class='gesp'>GROSSET &amp; DUNLAP</span></span></p>
-<p class='line0' style='font-size:.8em;font-weight:bold;'><span class='gesp'>PUBLISHERS</span></p>
-</div> <!-- end rend -->
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='line0' style='text-align:center;margin-top:.5em;font-weight:bold;'><span style='font-size:x-small'>Made in the United States of America</span></p>
-
-<hr class='pbk'/>
-
-<div class='lgc' style=''> <!-- rend=';bold;fs:.8em;' -->
-<p class='line0' style='font-size:.8em;font-weight:bold;'>COPYRIGHT, 1923,</p>
-<p class='line0' style='font-size:.8em;font-weight:bold;'>BY GEORGE H. DORAN COMPANY</p>
-<p class='line'>&#160;</p>
-<p class='line'>&#160;</p>
-<p class='line0' style='font-size:.8em;font-weight:bold;'>THE WINDING STAIR.</p>
-<p class='line0' style='font-size:.8em;font-weight:bold;'>———</p>
-<p class='line0' style='font-size:.8em;font-weight:bold;'>PRINTED IN THE UNITED STATES OF AMERICA</p>
-</div> <!-- end rend -->
-
-<hr class='pbk'/>
-
-<table id='tab1' summary='' class='center'>
-<colgroup>
-<col span='1' style='width: 2.5em;'/>
-<col span='1' style='width: 17.5em;'/>
-<col span='1' style='width: 2em;'/>
-</colgroup>
-<tr><td class='tab1c1 tab1c1-col3 tdStyle0' colspan='3'><span style='font-size:larger'>CONTENTS</span></td></tr>
-<tr><td class='tab1c1 tdStyle1'></td><td class='tab1c2 tdStyle2'></td><td class='tab1c3 tdStyle3'>&nbsp;</td></tr>
-<tr><td class='tab1c1 tab1c1-col2 tdStyle4' colspan='2'><span style='font-size:x-small'>CHAPTER</span></td><td class='tab1c3 tdStyle3'><span style='font-size:x-small'>PAGE</span></td></tr>
-<tr><td class='tab1c1 tdStyle1'>I</td><td class='tab1c2 leader-dots tdStyle2'><span>Flags and Pedigree</span></td><td class='tab1c3 tdStyle3'><a href='#ch1'>9</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class='tab1c1 tdStyle1'>II</td><td class='tab1c2 leader-dots tdStyle2'><span>The Man with the Medals</span></td><td class='tab1c3 tdStyle3'><a href='#ch2'>23</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class='tab1c1 tdStyle1'>III</td><td class='tab1c2 leader-dots tdStyle2'><span>At King’s Corner</span></td><td class='tab1c3 tdStyle3'><a href='#ch3'>31</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class='tab1c1 tdStyle1'>IV</td><td class='tab1c2 leader-dots tdStyle2'><span>Betwixt and Between</span></td><td class='tab1c3 tdStyle3'><a href='#ch4'>44</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class='tab1c1 tdStyle1'>V</td><td class='tab1c2 leader-dots tdStyle2'><span>The Villa Iris</span></td><td class='tab1c3 tdStyle3'><a href='#ch5'>49</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class='tab1c1 tdStyle1'>VI</td><td class='tab1c2 leader-dots tdStyle2'><span>The Order</span></td><td class='tab1c3 tdStyle3'><a href='#ch6'>62</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class='tab1c1 tdStyle1'>VII</td><td class='tab1c2 leader-dots tdStyle2'><span>The Pilgrimage</span></td><td class='tab1c3 tdStyle3'><a href='#ch7'>74</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class='tab1c1 tdStyle1'>VIII</td><td class='tab1c2 leader-dots tdStyle2'><span>Henriette Explains</span></td><td class='tab1c3 tdStyle3'><a href='#ch8'>85</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class='tab1c1 tdStyle1'>IX</td><td class='tab1c2 leader-dots tdStyle2'><span>Marguerite Lambert</span></td><td class='tab1c3 tdStyle3'><a href='#ch9'>98</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class='tab1c1 tdStyle1'>X</td><td class='tab1c2 leader-dots tdStyle2'><span>Colonel Vanderfelt’s Letter</span></td><td class='tab1c3 tdStyle3'><a href='#ch10'>114</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class='tab1c1 tdStyle1'>XI</td><td class='tab1c2 leader-dots tdStyle2'><span>A Dilemma</span></td><td class='tab1c3 tdStyle3'><a href='#ch11'>119</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class='tab1c1 tdStyle1'>XII</td><td class='tab1c2 leader-dots tdStyle2'><span>The Little Door in the Angle</span></td><td class='tab1c3 tdStyle3'><a href='#ch12'>136</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class='tab1c1 tdStyle1'>XIII</td><td class='tab1c2 leader-dots tdStyle2'><span>The Companions of the Night</span></td><td class='tab1c3 tdStyle3'><a href='#ch13'>143</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class='tab1c1 tdStyle1'>XIV</td><td class='tab1c2 leader-dots tdStyle2'><span>The Tunic</span></td><td class='tab1c3 tdStyle3'><a href='#ch14'>160</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class='tab1c1 tdStyle1'>XV</td><td class='tab1c2 leader-dots tdStyle2'><span>On the Roof Top</span></td><td class='tab1c3 tdStyle3'><a href='#ch15'>173</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class='tab1c1 tdStyle1'>XVI</td><td class='tab1c2 leader-dots tdStyle2'><span>Marguerite’s Way Out</span></td><td class='tab1c3 tdStyle3'><a href='#ch16'>185</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class='tab1c1 tdStyle1'>XVII</td><td class='tab1c2 leader-dots tdStyle2'><span>The Outcasts</span></td><td class='tab1c3 tdStyle3'><a href='#ch17'>196</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class='tab1c1 tdStyle1'>XVIII</td><td class='tab1c2 leader-dots tdStyle2'><span>Captain Laguessière’s Report</span></td><td class='tab1c3 tdStyle3'><a href='#ch18'>212</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class='tab1c1 tdStyle1'>XIX</td><td class='tab1c2 leader-dots tdStyle2'><span>In the Sacred City</span></td><td class='tab1c3 tdStyle3'><a href='#ch19'>227</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class='tab1c1 tdStyle1'>XX</td><td class='tab1c2 leader-dots tdStyle2'><span>The Coup de Grâce</span></td><td class='tab1c3 tdStyle3'><a href='#ch20'>239</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class='tab1c1 tdStyle1'>XXI</td><td class='tab1c2 leader-dots tdStyle2'><span>Two Outcasts</span></td><td class='tab1c3 tdStyle3'><a href='#ch21'>248</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class='tab1c1 tdStyle1'>XXII</td><td class='tab1c2 leader-dots tdStyle2'><span>The Splendid Throw</span></td><td class='tab1c3 tdStyle3'><a href='#ch22'>261</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class='tab1c1 tdStyle1'>XXIII</td><td class='tab1c2 leader-dots tdStyle2'><span>The Necessary Man</span></td><td class='tab1c3 tdStyle3'><a href='#ch23'>272</a></td></tr>
-</table>
-
-<hr class='pbk'/>
-
-<p class='line0' style='text-align:center;margin-top:1em;margin-bottom:1em;font-size:2em;font-weight:bold;'>THE &nbsp;WINDING &nbsp;STAIR</p>
-
-<div><h1 class='nobreak' id='ch1'>CHAPTER I</h1></div>
-
-<h3>Flags and Pedigree</h3>
-
-<p class='noindent'><span class='lead-in'><span class='dropcap'>“I</span> have</span> finished work for the week. I’ll see no
-one else were he as terse as Tacitus,” cried Mr.
-Ferguson, the lawyer.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>It was six o’clock on a Friday afternoon
-and a pleasant rustle of the plane trees in the square
-came through the open window of the office. Mr. Ferguson
-thought of his cool garden at Goring, with the
-river running past, and of the fine long day he would
-have upon the links to-morrow. Gregory, the head clerk,
-however, held his ground.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Perhaps if you would look at this card, Mr. Ferguson.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Mr. Ferguson looked at the size of it.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“By the Lord, no! It’s a woman. She’ll be as
-prolix as the devil.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“It’s not a woman,” the stubborn Gregory insisted.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Then it’s a foreigner, and that’s worse.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“It’s not even a real foreigner,” said Gregory. He
-had been a servant of the firm for thirty years, and
-knew the ins and outs of its affairs as thoroughly as
-the principals.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You are very annoying, Gregory,” said Mr. Ferguson,
-with a sigh. He took the card regretfully, but
-when he had read the name printed upon it, he dropped
-it upon his table as if it had stung his hand.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Paul Ravenel!” he said in a low voice, with a glance
-towards the door. “The son.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Is he like the father?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Not in the least.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Mr. Ferguson was distressed. It was nine years
-since he had finished with that affair, settled it up,
-locked it away and turned his back on it for good—as
-he thought. And here was the son knocking on his
-door.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I must see him, I suppose. I can do no less,” he
-said, but as Gregory turned towards the door he stopped
-him. “Why should Paul Ravenel come to see me?”
-he asked himself. “And how much does he know?
-Wait a moment, Gregory. I have got to go warily
-here.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>He sat down at his desk. Mr. Ferguson was a man,
-of middle age, with a round, genial face and a thick
-covering of silver-white hair. He looked like a prosperous
-country gentleman, which he was, and he had
-the reputation of the astutest criminal lawyer of his
-day. He was that, too. His kindly manner concealed
-him, yet he was not false. For he was at once the best
-of friends, with his vast experience of the law as a sort
-of zareeba for their refuge, and the most patient and relentless
-of antagonists; and he had a special kindliness
-which showed itself conspicuously in his accounts, for
-all connected with the arts. It was an old friendship
-which was troubling him now as he sat at his desk.
-Paul Ravenel, according to his knowledge, would take
-this or that line in the interview, Mr. Ferguson must
-be clear as to how in each case he should answer.
-Problems were his daily food—at least until six o’clock
-on Friday evening. Yet this problem he met with discomfort.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You can show him in now,” he said to Gregory,
-and a few seconds later the visitor stood within the
-room, a tall slim youth, brown of face and with hair
-so golden that the sun seemed to have taken from it
-the colour which it had tanned upon his cheeks.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You wish to see me, Mr. Ravenel?” he asked, and
-a smile suddenly broke upon the boy’s face and made
-him winning. Mr. Ferguson made a note in his mind
-of the smile, for he had not as yet its explanation.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes,” answered Paul. “I should have been more
-correct in approaching so prominent a firm, had I
-written asking for an appointment. But I only landed
-in England this morning, and I couldn’t really wait.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>His formal little prepared apology broke down in a
-laugh and an eager rush of words.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“That’s all right,” said Mr. Ferguson pleasantly.
-“Take a chair and tell me what I can do for you.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You knew my father,” said Paul, when he had laid
-down his hat and stick and taken his seat. Mr. Ferguson
-allowed himself a sharp glance at the lad. For his
-tone was without any embarrassment at all, any shame
-or embarrassment. He was at his ease.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I knew Mr. Ravenel—yes,” Mr. Ferguson answered
-cautiously.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“He died a fortnight ago.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I was sorry to notice that you were wearing black.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“He died in a house which he had built upon an
-island off the coast of Spain at Aguilas. I lived with
-him there, during the last eight months, after I left my
-school at Tours,” Paul continued.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes?” said Mr. Ferguson.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“My father and I were always—how shall I put it?—in
-a relationship which precluded any confidences and
-even any cordiality. It wasn’t that we ever quarrelled.
-We hardly were well enough acquainted for that. But
-we were uncomfortable in each other’s company and
-the end of a meal at which we had sat together was to
-both of us an invariable relief. He had what I think
-is a special quality of soldiers—he was in the Army,
-of course, wasn’t he?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul broke off to ask his question in the most casual
-manner. But Mr. Ferguson did not answer it. It was
-a neat little trap prepared with more skill than the
-lawyer had expected. For up till the question was unconcernedly
-dropped in, Paul had been framing his
-sentences with a sort of pedantry natural to a man
-who from the nature of his life must get his English
-words from books rather than from conversation.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You say Monsieur Ravenel had some special quality
-of soldiers,” Mr. Ferguson observed.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes,” Paul explained. “I approached a subject, or
-I used a phrase, and suddenly it seemed as if an iron
-door was banged in my face, and he was now behind
-the door, and not the loudest knocking in the world
-would ever get it open. So I have come to you.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“For information your father did not see fit to give
-you?” said Mr. Ferguson.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“But Monsieur Ravenel had no doubt a lawyer in
-Paris and an agent in Casablanca, where he lived for
-many years, both of whom will be familiar with his
-affairs. Why come to me?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Because it is not about his affairs that I am seeking
-information,” said Paul, and he took a letter from his
-pocket-case and handed it to Mr. Ferguson. “This
-was written by your firm, Mr. Ferguson. It is one of
-the two clues to my father’s history which he left behind
-him. It slipped out of a book upon his shelf.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Certainly the letter was written by our firm to your
-father, Mr. Ravenel. But it was the last letter we
-wrote to him. It closed our connection with him. We
-never heard from him again; and the letter is as you
-have seen, nine years old.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Exactly,” said Paul. “Just about that time my father
-and I were in London together for a couple of months,
-and when I found that letter it seemed to me to explain
-why. My father was in London to arrange for
-the transfer of his property to France, for the final
-annihilation of all his interests and associations with
-this country.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>It was an assertion rather than a question, but Mr.
-Ferguson answered it.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes. I suppose that you may put it that way.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Before that time, then, you were his advisers.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“That’s why I came to you, Mr. Ferguson,” cried
-the youth eagerly. “I want to know what happened to
-my father in the days when you were his advisers. I
-want to know why he renounced his own country,
-why he buried himself first in a little distant town on
-the sea coast of Morocco like Casablanca, why he took
-refuge afterwards in a still closer seclusion at Aguilas
-in Spain. You know! You must know!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Mr. Ferguson rose from his desk and walked to the
-fireplace which was between his desk and the chair on
-which Paul was seated. He was puzzled by the manner
-of the appeal. There was more eagerness than
-anxiety in it. There was certainly no fear. There
-was even confidence. Mr. Ferguson wondered whether
-young Ravenel had some explanation of his own, an
-explanation which quite satisfied him and which he
-only needed to have confirmed. Paul’s voice broke in
-upon his wondering.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Of course I can always find out. It’s only a question
-of knowing the ropes. I have no doubt a good
-enquiry agent could get me the truth in a very few days
-if I went to one.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Mr. Ferguson lifted himself on his toes and looked
-up to the ceiling.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I don’t think I should do that,” he answered.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Whether I do or not depends upon you, Mr. Ferguson,”
-said Paul, very quietly. “It’s not curiosity
-that’s driving me, but I have my life in front of me,
-and a plan for it.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>He rose and stood at the open window for a moment
-or two, and then turned abruptly back and stood before
-Mr. Ferguson.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You see, I was nine years old when I was with
-my father in London, old enough to notice, and old
-enough to remember. And one or two very curious
-things happened. We were in lodgings in a little quiet
-street, and except on occasions when, I suppose, he
-had appointments with you, my father never went out
-by daylight.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Here it comes,” thought Mr. Ferguson, but his
-face was quite without expression, and the youth resumed:</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“But as soon as darkness fell we took long tramps
-through the city, where the streets were empty of
-everything but the lamp-posts, and the only sounds
-were the hollow sounds of our own footsteps upon the
-pavement.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes,” Mr. Ferguson interrupted. “One couldn’t
-choose a better place for exercise than the city of
-London after dark.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul laughed pleasantly and Mr. Ferguson reflected,
-“I have never been called a liar in a prettier fashion.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“On one of these nightly rambles,” Paul resumed,
-“we turned into a street closed at one end by a stately
-building of pinnacles and a sloping roof, and windows
-of richly stained glass. This building was a blaze of
-light, and in the courtyard in front of it motor-cars
-and carriages were taking up ladies in bright evening
-frocks and coats and men with orders upon their
-breasts.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Mr. Ferguson nodded his head.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“A dinner at the Guildhall, yes.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“It was curious to come suddenly out of darkness
-and silence and emptiness,” Paul Ravenel resumed,
-“into this gay scene of colour and enjoyment and light.
-You can imagine how it impressed a child. This was
-what I wanted. I hated long, empty, echoing streets
-with chains of lamps stretching ahead. Here I heard
-to me a sound unknown and divine—I heard women
-laughing. ‘Oh, father, do let us stay for a moment
-and look!’ I cried, but my father gripped me by the
-arm, and strode across the road so swiftly that I had
-to run to keep up with him. There was the mouth of
-another street nearly opposite, and it was that street
-which my father wanted to reach.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes?” said Mr. Ferguson.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“But a man was walking with a limp from the building
-along the pavement on the far side of our road.
-It was a hot night, and he carried his overcoat upon
-his arm, and I saw that a conspicuous row of miniature
-medals with their coloured ribbons stretched
-across his left breast. We reached the kerb when he
-was only a few yards from us. I felt my father’s
-hand tremble suddenly upon my arm. I thought that
-he was on the point of turning away in flight. But
-since that would have been more noticeable, he just
-dropped his head so that the brim of his hat shadowed
-his face and strode swiftly past the man with the
-medals. That man only gave us a careless glance, and
-I heard my father draw a sigh of relief. But a few
-paces on the man with the medals stopped and looked
-back. Then he called out: ‘Ned! Ned!’ in a startled
-voice, and began to retrace, as fast as his limp would
-allow him, his steps towards us.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“My father whispered to me: ‘Take no notice, boy!
-Walk straight on,’ and in a moment dived into the
-silence of the street opposite. I turned my head after
-we had travelled a few yards in our new direction and
-I saw the man with the medals at the angle of the
-street peering after us as if he were undecided
-whether to follow us or not. There the incident ended,
-but it was—well—significant, wasn’t it?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Mr. Ferguson was distinctly uncomfortable. A pair
-of very steady and watchful grey eyes were fixed upon
-his. He was being cross-examined and not clumsily,
-and by a boy; and all of this he fretfully resented. To
-do the cross-examining was his function in life, not
-the other fellow’s. Besides, how was he to answer
-that word significant? Such a good word! For it
-opened no glimpses of the questioner’s point of view
-and was a trap for the questioned.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Was it significant?” he asked.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul suddenly smiled, and Mr. Ferguson was more
-perplexed than ever. The boy was not obtuse—that
-was clear. It was no less clear, then, that he attached
-some quite special significance of his own invention to
-the incident he had related. Monsieur Ravenel was in
-hiding—that’s what the incident signified. How had
-Paul missed it? What strange amulet was he wearing
-that saved him from the desolating truth?</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Did you ever read ‘Balaustion’s Adventure’?” Paul
-inquired, and Mr. Ferguson jumped.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I wish you wouldn’t spring from one subject to
-another like that,” he answered, testily.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I am on the same subject,” said Paul.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Well, then, I did. I used it as a crib for the Alcestis
-when I was at school.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“A pretty good crib, too.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Very.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“But the translation of the Alcestis isn’t the whole
-of the poem, is it? The Alcestis makes things pretty
-black for Admetus, doesn’t it? You’d call him a bit
-of a rotter, wouldn’t you? That is, if you take the
-first surface meaning of the play. But Balaustion
-found another meaning underneath which transfigures
-Admetus, turns the black to white. Well, humbly, but
-just as confidently, I look underneath the first obvious
-meaning of what I told you. That’s disgrace, isn’t it?
-Let’s be frank about it! A man in disgrace shunning
-his friends! There’s the surface reading. And there’s
-no other—except mine.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Let me hear it,” said Mr. Ferguson quickly. He
-returned to the chair at his table. Here might be, after
-all, a pleasant way out of this disconcerting interview.
-“Will you smoke?” he asked, and he held out a tin of
-cigarettes to his visitor.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Now fire away!” he said. Mr. Ferguson was in a
-much more cheerful mood.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Discomfort, however, had not vanished from the
-room. It had passed from Mr. Ferguson. But it had
-entered into Paul. He stammered and was shy. Finally
-he blurted out:</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I find the explanation of everything in my father’s
-passionate love for my mother.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Mr. Ferguson’s eyes turned slowly from the plane
-trees to Paul’s face.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Will you go on, please?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“My mother was French.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes. Virginia Ravenel. She sang for one season
-at Covent Garden. She was the most beautiful girl I
-ever saw in my life.” He laughed, tenderly caressing
-his recollections. “There was a time when I fancied
-myself your father’s rival. You have a look of her,
-Mr. Ravenel. She was fair like you,” and he was still
-musing with pleasure and just a touch of regret upon
-the pangs and ardours of that long-vanished season
-of summer and magic, when Paul Ravenel thoroughly
-startled him.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I think that my mother died in giving me birth,”
-he said. “That’s how I explain to myself my father’s
-distance and uneasiness with me. I was the enemy,
-and worse than that, the enemy who had won. No
-wonder he couldn’t endure me, if with her death his
-whole world went dark. And everything else follows,
-doesn’t it? His friends came to mean—not nothing
-at all, but an actual annoyance, an encroachment on
-his grief. He shut himself up far away in a little town
-where no one knew him, and brooded over his loss.
-And men who do that become extravagant, don’t they,
-and lose their perspective, and do far-fetched, unreasonable
-things. Thus, my mother was French. So in
-a sort of distorted tribute to her memory, he changed
-his own nationality and took hers, and with it her
-name, and cut himself completely off from all his old
-world—a sort of monk of Love!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Mr. Ferguson listened to the boy’s speech, which
-was delivered with a good deal of hesitation, without
-changing a muscle of his face. So this was why Paul
-could elate with a laugh the flight from the man with
-the medals and the lighted courtyard of the Guildhall.
-This was what he believed! Well, it was the explanation
-which a boy ignorant of life, nursed by dreams
-and poetry and loneliness and eager to believe the world
-a place of sunlight and high thoughts, might easily
-have conceived.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Isn’t that the explanation, Mr. Ferguson?” Paul
-asked; and Mr. Ferguson replied without the twitch
-of a muscle:</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Absolutely! I did not think that you could have
-understood your father’s reticence so thoroughly.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>If one must do a thing, to do it with an air is
-the best way to carry conviction, thought Mr. Ferguson,
-and he rose from his chair with a deep relief.
-The interview was over, his visitor obviously satisfied,
-he could shake him by the hand and after all catch his
-train to Goring.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Mr. Ferguson’s relief, however, was premature.
-For the younger man cried:</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Good! For now the way is clear for me, and I can
-ask you for your professional help.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Oh!” said the lawyer doubtfully. “I didn’t understand
-that you came as a client. I am not very sure
-that we can undertake much more than we have upon
-our hands.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“It’s not so much more, Mr. Ferguson.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I must be the judge of that. Let me hear what it
-is that you wish.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I wish to resume my own real nationality,” said
-Paul. “I am of my race. I want the name of it, too.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul was of his race. It was not merely the long-legged
-build of him, nor the cut of his clothes, nor the
-make of his shoes, but a whole combination of small,
-indefinable qualities and movements and repressions
-which proved it.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I should never have mistaken him for anything
-else,” thought Mr. Ferguson. There was that little
-speech, for instance, about his father’s love for his
-mother, halting, shy, stammered, as if he were more
-than half ashamed of admitting the emotions to another
-man, and tongue-tied in consequence. The
-words would have run glibly enough had a French lad
-spoken them.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“And with my race, I mean of course also to resume
-my father’s name,” Paul continued.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>There had suddenly grown up an antagonism between
-these two people; and both were aware of it.
-Paul’s questions became a little implacable; Mr. Ferguson’s
-silence a little obstinate. “You know it, of
-course, Mr. Ferguson,” Paul insisted.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Of course,” replied Mr. Ferguson.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Will you tell it to me, please?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I will not.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Why not?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Your father never told you it. Your father was
-my client for years, my friend for many more. I respect
-his wishes.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul Ravenel bowed and accepted the refusal.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I have only one more question to ask of you, Mr.
-Ferguson.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I will answer it if I can.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Thank you! Who is John Edward Revel?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I really don’t know.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul bowed again. He took up his hat and his stick.
-He was not smiling any more, and in his eyes there
-was a look of apprehension. He did not hold out his
-hand to Mr. Ferguson.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“It will have to be the enquiry agent after all, then,”
-he said. “Good evening.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>The lawyer allowed him to reach the door, and then
-spoke in an altered voice. There was a warm kindliness
-in it now, and to the youth’s anxious and attentive
-ears a very audible note of commiseration.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Mr. Ravenel, I want you to give me four days before
-you set on foot any inquiry. There are others
-concerned in the matter. I assure you that you will be
-wise.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul shook his head. “Four days. What shall I do
-with myself during those four days?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You have been very lonely for years,” said the
-lawyer gently. “Four days more, what do they
-mean?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“During those years,” answered Paul, “I have had
-the future for my companion. Have I got that companion
-now?” and Mr. Ferguson was silent.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I came to your office full of expectation. I have
-not even now revealed to you the plan I had formed,”
-Paul resumed. “I leave it a prey to a very deep anxiety.
-That name I mentioned to you, I found written
-on the flyleaf of an old manual on infantry drill in
-my father’s bedroom. It was the only old book on his
-shelf from which the flyleaf had not been torn out. I
-am only now beginning to grasp what that may mean.”
-But since Mr. Ferguson had ceased to dispute or pretend,
-and showed openly a face where distress was
-joined with good will, the young man cried:</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Still, I’ll give you the four days, Mr. Ferguson.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>He wrote down the name of his hotel upon a slip of
-paper and left it on the desk, and shook the lawyer by
-the hand.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Left alone, Mr. Ferguson sat for a little while in a
-muse, living again the sweet and bitter scenes of vanished
-years. To what unhappy ends of death and disgrace
-had those anxieties and endeavours led? To
-what futilities the buoyant aspiration? He rang the
-bell upon his desk, and when his head clerk appeared
-he said:</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I want a message telephoned to Goring that I shall
-not get home until eight. Then every one can go. I
-have a letter to write which will take a little time.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Very well, sir,” said Gregory, and Mr. Ferguson
-suddenly slapped his hand down on the table in exasperation.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Isn’t it a curious thing, Gregory?” he exclaimed.
-“Here’s a man takes a world of pains to destroy all
-traces and records and then keeps by him one book
-with a name written upon the flyleaf which brings in a
-second all his trouble to nothing! But it’s always the
-way. Something’s forgotten which you’d think no
-man in his senses would overlook! Half the miseries
-in the world I do believe come from such omissions.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“And more than half our business,” Gregory replied
-drily.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Mr. Ferguson broke into a laugh.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Why, that’s true, Gregory,” he cried. “And now
-leave me to my letter!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>He worded his letter with infinite care, for it was as
-delicate a piece of work as he had ever been called
-upon to do, and it took him a full hour. He posted it
-himself in a pillar-box on his way to Paddington.</p>
-
-<div><h1 id='ch2'>CHAPTER II</h1></div>
-
-<h3>The Man with the Medals</h3>
-
-<p class='noindent'><span class='lead-in'><span class='dropcap'>T</span>hough Paul</span> left Mr. Ferguson’s office with
-a calm enough face, his mind was bewildered
-and fear clutched at his heart. Things were
-happening to him which he had never imagined at all.
-He had been confident with all the perfect confidence
-of eighteen years and his confidence in a second was
-gone. He was in real distress, which made him ache
-like some physical hurt and tortured him at night so
-that he could not sleep till long after daybreak. He
-could not adjust himself to the new conditions of his
-life. He looked with surprise upon other people, in
-the streets or in the public rooms of his hotel, who were
-unaware of the troubles which had hold of him.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>He had planned his visit to London full with many
-a pilgrimage. The London of Dickens and De Quincey—its
-inns, its gardens and churches! That old mansion
-at the northwest corner of Greek Street, where
-Mr. Brunell had given a lodging and a bundle of law
-papers for a pillow, to his youthful client—all were
-to be visited with a thrill of excitement and a hope that
-they would not fall short of the images he had made
-of them in his thoughts. But the glamour had faded
-from all these designs. He paced the streets, and indeed
-all day, but it was to get through the long dismal
-hours and he walked like one in a maze.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>He knew no one and throughout the four days no
-one spoke to him at all. He moved through the
-crowded thoroughfares unnoticed as a wraith; he sat
-apart in restaurants; and as his father had done, he
-tramped by night the hollow-sounding streets of the
-city where the lamp-posts kept their sentry guard. On
-the fifth day, however, the expected letter did come by
-the first post from Mr. Ferguson.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“If you will travel to Pulburo’ in Sussex by the 3.55
-<span class='sc'>P. M.</span> train from Victoria on the day you receive this,
-Colonel Vanderfelt will send a car to meet you at the
-station and will put you up for the night. Will you
-please send a telegram to him”; and the Colonel’s address
-followed.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul sent off his telegram at once and followed it in
-the afternoon. Outside Pulboro’ station a small grey
-car was waiting and a girl of his own age, with brown
-eyes and a fresh pretty face and a small bright blue
-hat sitting tightly on her curls, was at the wheel.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I am Phyllis Vanderfelt,” she explained. “My
-father asked me to drive in and fetch you. He has
-had to be away to-day and won’t get home much before
-dinner time, I’m afraid.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>She turned the car and drove westwards under the
-railway arch talking rather quickly as people who are
-uneasy and dread an awkward silence will do. They
-passed through a little town of narrow winding streets
-and high walls clustered under a great church with
-a leaping spire, like a piece of old France, and swung
-out onto a high wide road which dipped and rose, with
-the great ridge of the South Downs sweeping from
-Chanctonbury Ring to Hampshire on their left, forests
-and bush-strewn slopes of emerald and cliffs of chalk
-silver-white in the sun, and from end to end of the
-high rolling barrier the swift shadows of the clouds
-flitting like great birds.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>They had ceased to talk now and there was no awkwardness
-in the silence. Paul was leaning forward
-gazing about him with a queer look of eagerness upon
-his face.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“To come home to country like this!” he said in a
-low voice. “You can’t think what it means after
-months of brown earth and hot skies.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Upon their right a low wall bordered the road, and
-on the other side of the wall fallow-deer grazed in a
-Park. Beyond, a line of tall oaks freshly green was
-the home of innumerable rooks who strewed the air
-about the topmost branches, wheeling and cawing. The
-square tower of a church stood upon a little hill.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“It’s friendly, isn’t it?” he cried, and a look of commiseration
-made the eyes of the girl at his side tender.
-Would he think this countryside so friendly when the
-evening was over and he had got to his room?</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Do you know our Downs?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Phyllis spoke at random and hastily as he turned
-towards her.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I wonder,” he answered. “Could I have forgotten
-them if I had once known them? I seem to have been
-within a finger’s breadth of recognising something.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“When you have seen my mother we will walk
-through the village. We shall have time before dinner,”
-said Phyllis, and she turned the car into the
-carriage-way of a square old house with big windows
-level with the wall, which stood close to the road.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Mrs. Vanderfelt, a middle-aged woman with shrewd
-and kindly eyes received him with a touch of nervousness
-in her manner and, as her daughter had done,
-talked volubly and a little at random whilst she was
-giving him some tea.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I don’t know what you would like to do until dinner
-time,” she said, and Phyllis said:</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I am going to show Mr. Ravenel the village.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>A glance of comprehension was swiftly exchanged
-between the mother and the daughter, but not so
-swiftly but that Paul intercepted it.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You can get the key at Rapley’s,” said Mrs. Vanderfelt.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>The two young people came to four cross-roads, and
-Paul exclaimed:</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Up the hill to the right, isn’t it?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>They mounted the hill and Paul stopped. He pointed
-with his stick towards the signboard of an inn built on
-the high bank above the road.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Now I know. I lived here once as a child. I always
-wondered why the Horse Guards had an inn
-here, and what sort of people they were. I used to
-imagine that they were half-horse, like the Centaurs,
-and I always hoped to see them.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Phyllis Vanderfelt laughed.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Isn’t that like a man? I show you a place as beautiful
-as any in England and the only thing which you
-have remembered of it from the time when you were
-four is the place where you could get a drink.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes, the Horseguards’ Inn,” repeated Paul cheerfully.
-“Let us go on!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>But it was now Phyllis who stopped with a face
-from which the merriment had gone.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I don’t know,” she said indecisively. “It shall be
-as you wish. But I wonder. We talked it all over at
-home. We couldn’t tell whether it would be helpful
-to you, whether you would care to remember everything
-to-morrow—whether you already remembered.
-My father was quite clear that you should see everything.
-But I am not sure—”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul felt the clutch of fear catching his breath once
-more as he looked into the girl’s compassionate eyes.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I am with your father,” he said. “My recollections
-are too faint. I can only remember what I see. Let
-us go on!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Very well!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Phyllis Vanderfelt went into one of the cottages and
-came out again with a big key in her hand. Beyond
-the cottages a thick high hedge led on to an old rose-red
-house with an oriel window looking down the
-road from beneath a gable and a tiled roof golden
-with lichen. Wisteria draped the walls in front with
-purple.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“It is empty,” said Phyllis, as she put the key into
-the lock and opened the door. The rooms were all
-dismantled, the floors uncarpeted. Paul Ravenel shook
-his head.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I remember nothing here.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Phyllis led him through a window into a garden.
-A group of beech trees sheltered the house from the
-southwest wind and beyond the beech trees from a
-raised lawn their eyes swept over meadows and a low
-ridge of black firs and once more commanded the
-shining Downs. Paul stood for a little while in silence,
-whilst Phyllis watched his face. There came upon it
-a look of perplexity and doubt. He turned back towards
-the house. On its south side, a window had
-been thrown out; on its tiled roof a wide band of
-white clematis streamed down like a great scarf. On
-the wall beside the window a great magnolia climbed.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Wait a moment,” cried Paul; and as he gazed his
-vision cleared. He saw, as the gifted see in a crystal,
-a scene small and distant and very bright.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>There was a table raised up on some sort of stand
-upon the gravel paths outside this window. A man
-was sitting at the table and a small crowd of people,
-laughing and jeering a little—an unkindly crowd—was
-gathered about him. And furniture and ornaments
-were brought out. He turned to Phyllis.
-“There was a sale here, ever so long ago—and I was
-present outside the crowd, looking on. I lived here,
-then?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes,” said Phyllis.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“And it was our furniture which was being sold?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>So far there was no surprise for Paul Ravenel,
-nothing which conflicted with his conception and estimate
-of his father. Monsieur Ravenel had sold off
-his furniture, just as he had changed his name and
-abode. It was part of the process of destroying all
-his associations with the country and people of his
-birth. Only—his recollections had revealed something
-new to him—and disquietingly significant.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Why were those who came to buy unfriendly and
-contemptuous?” he asked slowly.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Are you sure that they were?” Phyllis returned.
-But she did not look at Paul’s face and her voice was
-a little unsteady.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I am very sure about that,” said Paul. “A woman
-was with me, holding my hand. She led me away—yes—I
-was frightened by those noisy, jeering people,
-and she led me away. It was my nurse, I suppose.
-For my mother was dead.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes,” replied Phyllis, and then, not knowing how
-hard she struck, she added, “Your mother had died a
-couple of months before the sale.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul Ravenel, during the last days, had been schooling
-himself to a reserve of manner, but this statement,
-as of a thing well known which he too must be supposed
-to know, loosened all his armour. A startled
-cry burst from his lips.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“What’s that?” he exclaimed, and with a frightened
-glance at his white face Phyllis repeated her words.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I thought you knew,” she added.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“No.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul walked a little apart. One of the garden paths
-was bordered by some arches of roses. He stood by
-them, plucking at one or two of the flowers and seeing
-none of them at all. The keystone of the explanation
-which he had built in order to account for and
-uphold his father was down now and with it the
-whole edifice. It had all depended upon the idea of
-a passionate, enduring love in his father’s heart for
-the wife who had died in giving birth to her son, the
-enemy. And in that idea there was no truth at all!</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul reflected now in bitterness that there never had
-been any reason why he should have held his belief—any
-wild outburst from Monsieur Ravenel, any word
-of tender remembrance. He had got his illusion—yes,
-he reached the truth now in this old garden—from an
-instinct to preserve himself from hating that stranger
-with whom he lived and on whom he depended for his
-food and the necessities of his life. He turned suddenly
-back to Phyllis Vanderfelt.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“What I don’t understand, Miss Phyllis, is how it is
-that remembering so much of other things here, I can
-remember nothing of my mother.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“She only came home here to die,” Phyllis replied
-gently.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul pressed his hands over his eyes for a moment
-or two in a gesture of pain which made the young
-girl’s heart ache for him. But he looked at her calmly
-afterwards and said: “I am afraid that Colonel Vanderfelt
-has very bad news to tell me to-night.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Phyllis Vanderfelt laid her hand gently upon his
-arm.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You will remember that you have made very real
-friends here in a very short time, won’t you?” she
-pleaded. “My mother and myself.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Thank you,” said Paul.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Yet another shock was waiting for him in Colonel
-Vanderfelt’s house. For as he entered the drawing
-room three-quarters of an hour later, a tall man lifted
-himself with an effort from an easy chair and with
-the help of a stick limped across the room towards
-him.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“This is my husband,” said Mrs. Vanderfelt, and
-before Paul could check his tongue, the cry had sprung
-from his lips:</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“The man with the medals!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>The older man’s eyes flashed with a sudden anger.
-Mrs. Vanderfelt gasped and flushed red. Phyllis took
-a step forward. All had a look as if they had suffered
-some bitter and intolerable insult.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul quickly explained. “My father and I crossed
-you one night a long time ago when you were coming
-from a banquet at the Guildhall. You called to my
-father. I was a child, and I always remembered you
-as the man with the medals. The phrase jumped out
-when I saw you again.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>The fire died out of Colonel Vanderfelt’s eyes. A
-look of pity sheathed them.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“We will talk of all these things after dinner,” he
-said gently, and his hand clasped the youth’s arm.
-“Let us go in now.”</p>
-
-<div><h1 id='ch3'>CHAPTER III</h1></div>
-
-<h3>At King’s Corner</h3>
-
-<p class='noindent'><span class='lead-in'><span class='dropcap'>“F</span>erguson</span> wrote to me that you mean to return
-to your own race,” said Colonel Vanderfelt,
-when the ladies had withdrawn from
-the dining room. He was a small, wiry man, dark of
-complexion, with a sleek black head of hair in which
-there was not one visible thread of grey. His face
-too was hardly lined, so that it was not until one looked
-at his eyes that one got any impression of age. The
-eyes, however, betrayed him. Deeply sunken and with
-a queer set appearance, they were the eyes of an old,
-old man; and they provoked a guess that they had at
-one time gazed so desperately upon horrors that they
-could never again quite get free of what they had
-seen.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes,” replied Paul. “Mr. Ferguson was not very
-sympathetic.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Then I think he was wrong,” said Colonel Vanderfelt
-heartily. “Philosophers and Labour leaders talk
-very placidly about throwing down the walls between
-nation and nation, as if it was an easy morning’s work.
-But the walls aren’t of our building. They are mother
-earth and climate and were there from the beginning
-of time. Some people can pass over them, of course—American
-women, especially. But very few men aren’t
-weaklings, I believe. To the men worth anything,
-their soil cries out louder and louder with each year
-that passes. A glass of port? Help yourself! A
-cigar? No? The cigarettes are in that Battersea box
-in front of you. It’s a fiction that tobacco spoils the
-flavour of port. Claret, yes! Port, not a bit.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Colonel Vanderfelt took a cigar from a box upon
-a side table, lit it and resumed his seat. Paul brought
-him back to the subject of their talk.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I am glad to hear you agree with me, Colonel
-Vanderfelt. I have been more and more convinced
-since I have sat in this room.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul Ravenel looked about the dining room with
-its fastidious and sober elegance. Cream walls, upon
-which a few good prints were hung; a bright red
-screen drawn in front of the door; shapely old furniture
-with red upholstery, and heavy curtains of red
-brocaded silk at the one big bow window; a long,
-slender Sheraton sideboard against the wall; a fine
-Chippendale cabinet in a recess; and this round gleaming
-table of mahogany, with its candlesticks and salt-cellars
-of Battersea enamel, its silver equipment and
-its short tubby decanters with the blue tinge of old
-Waterford in the glass; in every aspect of the room
-grace was so wedded to homeliness, comfort to distinction
-that Paul could not but envy its possessors.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I resume my race and with it of course my name,”
-he said, keenly watching Colonel Vanderfelt.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>But Colonel Vanderfelt took his cigar from his lips
-only to ask a question.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“And then?” he enquired.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Then I propose to try for a commission in the
-army,” Paul replied.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Oh, yes,” said Colonel Vanderfelt, “but the Bar
-offers more opportunities to a young fellow nowadays,
-doesn’t it? Why the Army? There are other
-professions.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Not for me, sir.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Colonel Vanderfelt shrugged his shoulders and
-stared at the shining table in front of him. It was a
-devil of a world—everything cross-wise and upside
-down and unaccommodating. Why must this youth
-with money and the world to choose from, choose just
-the one bunch of grapes quite out of his reach? And
-set his very heart on it too. There had been a ring
-in that “Not for me, sir!” which could not be stilled
-by argument. It was youth’s challenge to the elders,
-its “I know better” which there was no use in debating.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Let me hear,” said Colonel Vanderfelt; and the
-lad’s ambitions were shyly revealed to him. Histories
-of campaigns, the lives of great soldiers, books of
-strategy too technical for him to follow—these had
-been his favourite reading. It was the actual work of
-the soldier which had fascinated Paul, not the glitter
-of the great days of parades and manœuvres, but his
-daily responsibilities and the command of men and the
-glory of service. Colonel Vanderfelt listened and
-nodded and remembered a phrase in Mr. Ferguson’s
-letter: “The boy’s of the right temper.” Surely he
-was, and the whole business was perverse and pitiful!
-He heard Paul closing his little apologia.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“So you see, sir, from the time when I began to
-think at all of what I should do in the world, this has
-always been my wish.” The lad was seeking to challenge
-and defy, but the anxiety which had tortured him
-during the last four days turned the challenge into a
-prayer. He searched Colonel Vanderfelt’s face for a
-sign of agreement. “I know of nothing,” he asserted,
-“of nothing at all which should hinder me from trying
-to fulfil my wish.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“But I do,” replied the other. “I think, Paul, that
-it would be very difficult for you to take your father’s
-name and seek a commission in the Army here.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul’s cigarette had gone out whilst he was speaking.
-He lit it now at one of the candles with trembling
-fingers. The gentleness of Colonel Vanderfelt’s voice
-made him think of some compassionate judge passing
-sentence.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You will, I trust, make that clear to me,” he said.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Of course,” returned the Colonel. “I admit to you
-that up to the last few minutes I had hoped to escape,
-and leave most of the story untold. And had you
-chosen another profession, why, very likely I should
-have spared you and myself, too.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>But though he had promised to be frank, he was
-reluctant to begin and he had ended on so evident a
-note of discomfort and pain that Paul Ravenel dared
-not interpose a word. The windows stood open upon
-the garden and let into the room the perfume of flowers
-and the freshness of the dew. Outside was the
-glamorous twilight of a summer night. It was very
-still. Occasionally a bird rustled the leaves of a
-branch; and across a field a cuckoo whose voice was
-breaking called incessantly. Paul was never to forget
-that background to these moments of suspense. All
-the bitterness was not with him on this night. Colonel
-Vanderfelt was back in the dark places of his life
-amongst old shames and miseries.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Your father’s name was John Edward Revel,”
-he began, and the boy drew a long breath. “Yes, the
-infantry manual was his, some relic of the old days
-that he must keep, I suppose—some one small valueless
-thing—yes, I think that’s natural. He and I were
-friends. We passed out of Sandhurst together and
-met again in India. Years afterwards—Service
-brought us together.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>He named an outlying post in the hills to the northwest
-of Quetta where John Edward Revel and he lay
-beleaguered during one of the frontier wars. They
-were ordered to hold on to their position at all costs
-and help would come to them.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“We were neither of us youngsters, you must understand,
-pitchforked into commands we weren’t fit
-for. We had seen a lot of service and done well—both
-of us. That makes the matter worse perhaps.
-All the less excuse! That’s what they did say! We
-were losing men all the time, and we hadn’t many to
-begin with. Ammunition was running low, water still
-lower, we were attacked day and night, we two had
-no sleep, and the promised relief didn’t come. The
-Baluchis got into our outer court one evening and we
-had the greatest trouble to get them out. The same
-night one of our spies came in with the news that a
-fresh big force was hurrying to reinforce the Baluchis.
-We were pretty well at the end of our tether—Ravel
-and I—. Something snapped in both of us .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. we
-slipped out under cover of darkness, the whole force,
-and fell back in spite of our instructions, leaving this
-key-post unguarded. And the new enemy we fell back
-from was our own relief expedition which had marched
-night and day and turned the Baluchis’ flank. They
-found the fort empty, which we had been ordered at
-all costs to hold. You can guess what happened. We
-were arrested, court-martialled—cashiered! So you
-can understand perhaps now our queer reception of
-you in the drawing room this evening. When you
-startled us by calling me, ‘The man with the medals,’
-it sounded like some bitter jibe from those bad days.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“But I don’t understand,” Paul Ravenel stammered.
-“You were cashiered both of you, you and my father?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Both of us.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yet I saw you coming from a dinner at the Guildhall,
-with your medals upon your breast. You are here
-in your own home, wearing your rank! How can that
-be, sir?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Colonel Vanderfelt replied with a curious accent of
-apology to his young guest.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I was lucky. I had served in India longer than
-your father. I had been more interested; and dialects
-came to me easily. More than once I had spent my
-leave living in the Bazaars, and as far north as Leh.
-Therefore it wasn’t so difficult for me. I disappeared.
-I’m a dark man naturally. I grew a beard. I joined
-a battalion of irregular levies. I served for three years
-in it on the frontier.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Did no one guess who you were?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I think one or two suspected and—winked. They
-were busy years you see. A good deal was going on
-all this time and men who knew anything about soldiering
-were valuable. Of course they were pretty
-rough, hard years for any one with delicate tastes, but
-there was so much to be perhaps regained,” and Colonel
-Vanderfelt pulled himself up quickly. “Well, after
-three years I was wounded rather badly. As you see
-I limp to this day. It looked then as if the game was
-up altogether and I was going out. So I sent a message
-in my own name to an officer on the border whom
-I had known. The Governor of Quetta came up himself
-to see me in hospital and the end of it was that
-my sentence was annulled. There, my boy, that’s the
-whole story.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Colonel Vanderfelt rose from his chair and limping
-over to the window looked out upon that quiet garden,
-which he had lost, and after such unlovely years won
-back again. They were years of which he could never
-think even now without a shiver of disgust and a cold
-fear lest by some impossibility they should come again.
-None indeed had ever known the full measure of their
-abasement and squalor and degradation. Even with
-the great prize continually held in view, they had been
-hardly endurable. The chance of winning it had been
-the chance of a raft to a man drowning in the Pacific.
-The voice of Paul Ravenel who was still seated at the
-table broke in upon him.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“And that’s the whole story, sir?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes, Paul.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul shook his head.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“The whole story, sir, except that what you did—my
-father didn’t. Therefore he lived and died an outcast,”
-and the young man’s voice died away in a whisper.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Colonel Vanderfelt turned back to him and laid his
-hand upon Paul’s shoulder and shook it in a gentle
-sympathy.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“There’s another question I would like to have answered,”
-said Paul. He was very pale, but his voice
-was firm again.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“The disgrace, I suppose, killed my mother?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I have no right to say that.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“The truth, sir, please!” and the appeal came so
-clearly from a man in the extremity of torture, that
-Colonel Vanderfelt could not but answer it.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“It did. She was in India when this shameful business
-happened. She came home and died.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>In a few moments Paul began to laugh. The laughter
-was pitched in a low key and horrible to hear; and
-there was such a flame of agony burning in the boy’s
-eyes and so dreadful a grin upon his white face that
-Colonel Vanderfelt feared for his reason.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Steady, Paul, steady!” he said gently.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I was thinking of the fine myth by which I explained
-everything to the honour of the family,” Paul
-cried in a bitter voice. “Our seclusion, the antagonism
-between my father and me, the change of name—it
-was all due to a morbid grief at the loss of a wife too
-deeply loved. That’s what I believed, sir,” he said
-wildly, but Colonel Vanderfelt had already learned
-of these delusions from Mr. Ferguson. “And shame’s
-the explanation. Disgrace is the explanation. He
-killed my mother with it and now the son too must
-hide!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“No,” said Colonel Vanderfelt with decision.
-“There’s a good way out of this tangle for you, a way
-by which you may still reach all you have set your
-heart on—your career, your name and an honoured
-place amongst your own people.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul lifted incredulous eyes to the other man’s face.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes,” insisted the older man. “You don’t believe
-me. You young fellows see only the worst and the
-best, and if the best doesn’t tumble into your hands,
-you are sure at once that there’s nothing for you but
-the worst. Just listen to me!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul took hold upon himself. He was ashamed already
-of his outburst.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You are very kind, sir,” he said, and some appreciation
-of the goodwill which the older man had
-shown to him, in baring his own wounds, and drawing
-out into the light again old humiliations and guilt
-long since atoned, pierced even through the youth’s
-sharp consciousness of his own miseries. He rose up
-from his chair. He was in command of his emotions
-now, his voice was steady.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I have been thinking too much of myself and the
-distress into which this revelation has plunged me,”
-he said, “and too little of your great consideration
-and kindness. What you have told me, you cannot
-have said without pain and a good deal of reluctance.
-I am very grateful. Indeed I wonder why you ever
-received me here at all.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You would have found out the truth without my
-help.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“That’s what I mean,” said Paul. “I should have
-found it out through an enquiry agent, and the news
-would have been ten times more hideous coming in
-that way rather than broken gently here. Whilst on
-the other hand you would have spared yourself.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“That’s all right,” Colonel Vanderfelt answered
-uncomfortably, and to himself he added: “Yes, old
-Ferguson wrote the truth. That boy’s clean and a
-gentleman.” He pressed Paul down into his chair
-again.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Come! Take a glass of this old brandy first—it’s
-not so bad—and then we’ll talk your prospects over
-like the men of the world we both are—eh? Neither
-making light of serious things nor exaggerating them
-until we make endeavour useless.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>He fetched to the table a couple of big goblets
-mounted on thin stems within which delicate spirals
-had been blown, and poured a liqueur of his best
-brandy into each.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I have an idea, Paul. It has been growing all the
-time we have been talking together. Let’s see if it
-means anything to you.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>He held his goblet to his nose and smelt the brandy.
-“Pretty good, this! Try it, Paul. There’s not a
-cough nor a splutter in it. Well, now,” he went on
-when Paul had taken his advice, “in the first place, you
-are eighteen.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes,” said Paul.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“And a man of means?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Pretty well.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You have property in Casablanca, in Morocco?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes, sir,” said Paul, wondering whither all these
-questions were to lead.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“And you lived there for some years?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes. Before I went to school in France and my
-father built his house in Aguilas.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You know Arabic, then?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“The Moorish dialect, yes.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“And by nationality you are French?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes,” answered Paul reluctantly.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Good,” said the Colonel, warming to his theme.
-“Now listen to me. The French must move in Morocco,
-as we moved in India, as we moved in Egypt.
-It isn’t a question of policies or persons. It’s the
-question of the destiny of a great nation. The instinct
-of life and self-preservation in a great nation
-which sooner or later breaks all policies and persons
-that stand in the way. There’ll be the timid ones
-who’ll say no! And there’ll be the intriguers who’ll
-treat the question as a pawn to be moved in their own
-interest. But in the end they won’t matter.” Colonel
-Vanderfelt had a complete and not very knowledgeable
-contempt for politics and politicians like most of his
-calling until they have joined the ranks of the politicians
-themselves.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Morocco can’t remain as it is—a vast country with
-a miserable population, misgoverned if governed at all,
-with a virgin soil the richest in the world, and within
-a few miles of Europe. Somebody’s got to go in and
-sort it up. And that some one’s got to be France,
-for she can’t afford a possible enemy on her Algerian
-frontier. Yes, but there’ll be trouble before she succeeds
-in her destiny, trouble and—opportunity.” The
-Colonel paused to let that word sink into Paul’s mind.
-“Why not be one of those who’ll seize it? They are
-great soldiers, the French. Join them, since that’s
-your way of life. Go through the schools, get your
-commission in France and then strive heart and soul
-to get service in the country whose language you know,
-the country of opportunity. Then, in God’s good
-time, if you still so wish it, come back here, resume
-your own name, rejoin your own race!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul Ravenel, from his solitary dreaming life and
-his age, was inclined to be impressed by thoughts of
-sacrifice and expiation and atonement. He was therefore
-already half persuaded by Colonel Vanderfelt’s advice.
-It would be exile, as he had come to think, but it
-would also be a cleansing of his name, an expiation of
-his father’s crime. And after all, when he looked at
-the man who gave him this advice, and remembered
-what he had endured with a hope so much more infinitesimal,
-the course proposed to him seemed fortunate
-and light.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Thank you,” he said. “I should like to think over
-your idea.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Colonel Vanderfelt was pleased that there had been
-no flighty hysterical acceptance, no assumption that
-the goal was as good as reached.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes, take your time!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Colonel Vanderfelt rose and, removing the shades,
-blew out the candles upon the dining-table.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I don’t know what you would like to do?” he said,
-turning to the lad. “You will follow your own wish,
-of course. And if you would rather go straight now
-to your room, why, we shall all understand.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Thank you, but I should prefer to join the ladies
-with you.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Colonel Vanderfelt smiled very pleasantly. The
-anticipation of Paul’s visit had caused him a sleepless
-night or two and not a little pain. How much should
-he tell? The question had been troubling him, so that
-he had more than once sat down to write to Mr.
-Ferguson that he would not receive the boy at all.
-He was very glad now that he had, and that he had
-kept nothing back.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Come, then,” he said.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>In the drawing room Phyllis Vanderfelt sang to that
-little company some songs of old Herrick in a small,
-very sweet, clear voice. Paul sat near the long, open
-window. The music, the homely friendliness within
-the room, and the quiet garden over which slept so
-restful a peace were all new to him and wrought upon
-him till he felt the tears rising to his eyes. Phyllis’
-hands were taken from the keys and lay idle in her
-lap. In the high trees of the Park upon the far side
-of the road the owls were calling and the cuckoo still
-repeated his two notes from the tree beyond the field.
-Paul rose suddenly to his feet.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“That throaty old cuckoo means to make a night of
-it,” he said with a laugh which was meant to hide the
-break in his voice and did not succeed. He stepped
-over the threshold and was out of sight.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Let him be!” said Colonel Vanderfelt. And a
-little later, when Phyllis had taken herself off to bed:
-“I liked him very much. The right temper—that’s
-the phrase old Ferguson used. He’ll do well, Milly—you’ll
-see. We shall see him home here one day carrying
-his sheaves,” and as his wife remained silent he
-looked at her anxiously. “Don’t you agree with me?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I don’t know,” Mrs. Vanderfelt answered slowly.
-“I hope so with all my heart. But—didn’t you notice
-his looks and a sort of grace he has?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Well?” asked the Colonel.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Well, we have left out one consideration altogether.
-What part are women going to play in his life? A
-large one. Tom, I have been watching Phyllis to-night.
-A day or so more, and we should have an
-aching heart in this house.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes, I see,” returned Colonel Vanderfelt. “Women
-do upset things, don’t they?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Or get upset,” said Mrs. Vanderfelt. “And sometimes
-both.”</p>
-
-<div><h1 id='ch4'>CHAPTER IV</h1></div>
-
-<h3>Betwixt and Between</h3>
-
-<p class='noindent'><span class='lead-in'><span class='dropcap'>P</span>aul Ravenel</span> left Colonel Vanderfelt’s
-house of King’s Corner on the next morning in
-time to catch an early train to London. His
-friends gathered in the drive to wave him a good-bye
-as he drove away.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You’ll write to us, won’t you?” said Mrs. Vanderfelt.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“And there’s a room here whenever you have an
-evening to spare,” added the Colonel.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul had quite captured the hearts of the small
-household and they were hardly less concerned for his
-future and his success than they would have been had
-he been their own son.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul had given no hint at the breakfast table of his
-plans, if indeed he had yet formed any, nor did his
-friends press him with any question. But they waited
-anxiously for letters and in time one came with the
-postmark of St. Germain. Paul had passed into St.
-Cyr. Others followed with lively enough accounts of
-his surroundings and companions. Here and there
-the name of a friend was mentioned, Gerard de
-Montignac, Paul’s senior by a year, for instance, who
-cropped up more often than any one else.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>They heard later that he had passed out with honours
-and was now a sub-lieutenant in the 174th Regiment,
-stationed at Marseilles; then a couple of years
-later, just at the time when Phyllis was married, that
-he had been seconded to the 2nd Tirailleurs and was
-on active service amongst the Beni-Snassen in Algeria.
-He escaped from that campaign without any
-hurt and wrote a little account of it to his friends at
-King’s Corner, with some shrewd pictures of his commanders
-and brother officers. But the same reticence
-overspread the pages. Mrs. Vanderfelt was at a loss to
-recapture out of them a picture of the lad who had
-stayed one night with them and borne so gallantly the
-destruction of his boyish illusions. The letters, to her
-thinking, might have been written by an automaton
-with a brain.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>A few months afterwards Colonel Vanderfelt
-slammed down his newspaper on the breakfast table.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“That’s where Paul ought to be. I told him! You
-can’t blame me! I told him!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>The long-expected trouble in Morocco was coming
-to a head. The extravagance and incapacity of the
-Sultan Abd-el-Aziz; the concession of the Customs to
-the French; the jealousies of powerful kaids; and the
-queer admixture of contempt and fear with which the
-tribes watched the encroachments of Europeans; all
-these elements were setting the country on fire. Already
-there were rumours of disorder in the wealthy
-coast town of Casablanca.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“That’s where Paul ought to be,” cried Colonel
-Vanderfelt angrily. But his anger was appeased in a
-couple of days. For he received a letter from Paul
-with the postmark of Oran, written on shipboard. He
-and his battalion were on their way to Casablanca.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>They arrived after the bombardment and massacres,
-and served under General D’Amade throughout the
-campaigns of the Chaiouïa. Paul was wounded in the
-thigh during the attack upon Settat but was able to
-rejoin his battalion in a month. He was now a senior
-Lieutenant and his captain being killed in the fight at
-McKoun, he commanded his company until the district
-was finally pacified by the victory over the great kaid
-and Marabout, Bou Nuallah. Paul had done well; he
-was given the medaille and at the age of twenty-six
-was sure that his temporary rank would be confirmed.
-He wrote warmly of those days to his friends. There
-was a note of confidence and elation which Mrs. Vanderfelt
-had not remarked before, and the letter ended
-with a short but earnest expression of gratitude to his
-friends for the help they had given him eight years
-before.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>For the next two years, then, the household at
-King’s Corner read only of the routine of a great camp,
-described with a lively spirit and an interest in the
-little trifles of his profession, which was a clear proof
-to them all that Paul had seen straight and clearly
-when he had declared: “There’s no other profession
-for me.” Thereafter came news which thrilled his
-audience.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I am transferred to the General Staff,” Paul wrote,
-“and am leaving here on special service. You must
-not expect to hear from me for a long while.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Neither Colonel Vanderfelt nor his wife had quite
-realised how they had counted on Paul’s letters, or
-what a fresh, lively interest they brought into their
-quiet lives, until this warning reached them.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Of course we can’t expect to hear,” said Colonel
-Vanderfelt irritably, “Paul’s probably on very important
-service. Very often a postmark’s enough to give
-a clue. But you women don’t understand these things.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Phyllis, the married daughter, and Mrs. Vanderfelt
-were the women to whom this rebuke was addressed,
-and neither of them had said a word to provoke it.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“No doubt, dear,” Mrs. Vanderfelt replied meekly,
-with a private smile for the daughter. “We shall hear
-in due time.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>But the weeks ran into months, the months into a
-year, and still no letter came. At one moment they
-wondered whether new associations had not obliterated
-from Paul’s mind his former aspirations: at another,
-whether he still lived. Colonel Vanderfelt ran across
-Mr. Ferguson towards the end of the year outside his
-club in Piccadilly and made enquiries.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Did you ever hear of that boy, Paul Ravenel,
-again?” he asked.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Oh, yes, he’s a rich man now and I have acted for
-him,” returned Mr. Ferguson. “Since the French occupation,
-land in and around Casablanca has gone up
-to fifty times its former value. Ravenel has realised
-some of it. I have bought the freehold of his father’s
-house close to you and let it for seven years and invested
-a comfortable sum for him in British securities.
-So I gather that he means to come back in a little
-while.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Colonel Vanderfelt was relieved upon one score, but
-it was only to have his anxiety increased upon the
-other.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“When did you hear from Paul last?” he asked,
-and Mr. Ferguson answered:</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Some while ago. Let me think. Yes, it must be
-a year at the least.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Colonel Vanderfelt repeated the conversation to his
-wife on his return to King’s Corner, and both of them
-shirked the question which was heavy at their hearts.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“It will be pleasant to have him as a neighbour,”
-said Mrs. Vanderfelt.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes,” replied the Colonel. “And it might be quite
-soon! Seven years he has let the house for. And we
-are getting no younger, are we! The sooner the better,
-I say!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Some look upon his wife’s face, a droop of her
-shoulders, made him stop; and it was in a quiet and
-strangely altered voice that he began again:</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“We are both pretending, Milly, and that’s the truth.
-We are afraid. It would be hard lines if he died
-before he did what he aimed to do. Yet we have got
-to face that possibility.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Mrs. Vanderfelt was turning over a plan in her
-mind.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I think that it’s time we had news of him,” she
-said. “There’s a friend he has mentioned several
-times in his letters. He was with him at St. Cyr and
-met him again at Casablanca—Gerard de Montignac.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Colonel Vanderfelt went in search of Paul Ravenel’s
-letters. They were kept in a drawer of the writing-table
-in his bedroom and made a big bundle by now.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“De Montignac. That was the fellow’s name. Let’s
-look at the last ones for his rank. He’s a captain of
-the Chasseurs d’Afrique. I’ll write to Casablanca to-night,
-my dear, on the chance of his still being there.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Colonel Vanderfelt was easier in his mind after he
-had posted the letter.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“That was a good idea of mine, Millie,” he said to
-his wife. “We shall get some news now.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Gerard de Montignac was still in Casablanca, but
-at the time when Colonel Vanderfelt was writing to
-him, he was himself just as anxious as the Colonel
-about the safety of Paul Ravenel.</p>
-
-<div><h1 id='ch5'>CHAPTER V</h1></div>
-
-<h3>The Villa Iris</h3>
-
-<p class='noindent'><span class='lead-in'><span class='dropcap'>“T</span>here’s</span> not the slightest reason for alarm,”
-Gerard de Montignac declared testily in
-much the same tone which Colonel Vanderfelt
-was using to his wife nearly two thousand miles
-away. De Montignac was dining at the “popote” of
-his battalion in the permanent camp of Ain-Bourdja
-outside the walls of Casablanca, and more than once
-of late Ravenel’s long absence had cropped up in the
-conversation with a good deal of shaking of heads.
-“Paul is a serious one,” continued Gerard. “Too serious.
-That is his fault. He will not pack up and
-return until the last possible observation is taken, the
-last notes of value written down in his little book.
-But then he will. I am not afraid for him, no, not
-the least bit in the world. And who should be, I ask
-you, if I am not?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>He glanced round the mess but not one of his companions
-accepted his challenge. It was not, however,
-because they shared his confidence. Indeed every one
-was well aware that more than half of it was assumed.
-They respected a great friendship sealed nearly three
-years before on the bloody slopes of R’Fakha. De
-Montignac, with his squadron of Chasseurs, had ridden
-in that desperate charge by means of which alone
-the crest of the plateau had been held until the infantry
-arrived. The charge had been made down a
-hillside seamed with tiny gullies invisible until they
-gaped beneath the horses’ feet; and the difficulties of
-the ground had so split the small force of cavalry that
-the attack became a series of scattered tourneys in
-which each overmatched trooper drove at a group of
-Moors armed with rifles and many of them mounted.
-There had been but ten minutes of the unequal fight,
-but those minutes were long enough for each man who
-fell wounded to pray with all his soul that the wound
-might be swift and mortal and do its work before the
-mutilating knife flashed across his face. Gerard de
-Montignac lay half way down the slope with a bullet
-in his shoulder and his thigh pinned to the ground
-beneath the weight of his grey charger. The Moors
-were already approaching him when Paul’s company
-of Tirailleurs doubled up to the crest and Paul recognised
-the horse. His rescue of his friend was one of
-twenty such acts done upon that day, but the memory
-of them all lived and stopped many an argument as it
-did to-night. If Gerard de Montignac chose to cry
-obstinately: “Some day Paul Ravenel will walk in
-upon us. He is my friend. I know,” it was the part of
-friendliness to acquiesce. There were other topics for
-dispute, enough in all conscience; such as the new
-dancing girl who had come that week to Madame Delagrange’s
-Bar, the Villa Iris, and about whom young
-Ollivier Praslin was raving at the other end of the
-table.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul Ravenel had slipped quietly away now more
-than a year ago in the black gabardine and skull cap
-of a Jew pedlar with a few surveying instruments
-packed in cheap, dirty boxes of white wood hidden
-amongst his wares on the back of a mule, and a few
-penny account books in which to jot his notes. He
-set out to explore the countries of the Beni-M’Tir and
-the Gerouan tribes, to blacken the white spaces of the
-map by means of long and perilous journeys. There
-were no tribes more implacable and fanatical than
-these; none whose territories at that time were so little
-known; and since they held the mountain passes and
-the great forests which border the trade routes from
-the south and the west to Fez, none whose strongholds
-and numbers and resources it was more important
-that the Administration should know.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“A Jew travelling alone, carrying on a mule such
-valuable things as needles and reels of thread, matches
-and safety pins, and some bales of cloth will be able
-to go where even a Moor of another tribe would lose
-his life,” he had declared, and for a long time in vain.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“And what about your notes? How will you make
-them?” asked the officer of the Affaires Indigènes, to
-whom after much persistence he was referred.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I have a shorthand. They will take little space.
-I have a small tent, too. I shall make them at night.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“And if you are caught making them at night?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I shall be making up my accounts—that is all.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>The Native Department, however, still shook its
-head. “A Jew will be robbed, no doubt, and probably
-kicked and cuffed from tent village to tent village,”
-pleaded Ravenel. “But he will not be killed. He carries
-useful things.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>In the end his persistence had won the day. He had
-been given a list of a few sure friends, a kaid here and
-there, on whose good will he could rely; and once or
-twice some news of him from one or other of these
-friends had come in a roundabout fashion to the headquarters
-of the Administration at Rabat. But the last
-of these messages were more than six months old, and
-Paul Ravenel himself was two months’ overdue.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Gerard de Montignac was gloomily weighing up his
-friend’s chances when a louder burst of laughter came
-from young Lieutenant Praslin’s corner.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I tell you she is young and she is pretty, and she
-can dance,” Praslin was protesting, quite red in the face
-with the fervour of his defence.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“And she is at old Delagrange’s Bar in Casablanca!”
-cried an officer, laughing.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Here at all events was a statement which could be
-received with incredulity.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“But I am not the only one to say so,” exclaimed
-Praslin.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Then we must admit that the case is serious,” said
-Commandant Marnier very gravely. “Come, let us
-consider the case of the young lady. Who is this
-other who agrees with you, my friend?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Praslin began to stammer. Commandant Marnier
-of the Zouaves was the heavy gun of the mess, a disillusioned
-man of forty-five with a satirical and at
-times a bitter tongue.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Who is this other?” he asked, leaning forward.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Little Boutreau of the Legion,” Praslin answered
-miserably.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Name of a name, here is an authority!” cried the
-Commandant. “And how old is the little Boutreau?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Twenty-four.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes? And where has the little Boutreau been stationed?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Young Praslin’s voice got smaller and smaller as he
-replied: “For the last two years on an advanced post
-upon the Algerian frontier.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Where no doubt he has had full opportunity to
-compute the beauty of women,” said the Commandant
-sagely. “I think we can now construct a picture of
-this houri. She will be fifty if she is a day. In the
-colour and texture of her skin she will be very like
-a fig. Not all the kohl in the East will lend a sparkle
-to her eyes, nor all the red salve freshness to her faded
-lips. She will wear a red dress with a swaying whale-boned
-skirt glittering with spangles and she will tell
-you that she dined at the Ritz in Paris a fortnight
-ago.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>The description was not inept, but his voice changed
-now into a snarl. Commandant Marnier had the ill
-humour of men who sit all their lives in the company
-of their juniors and see themselves overpassed by each
-in turn.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“The ladies of the Villa Iris! Have we not all
-sought our good fortune at their hands? The poor
-pilgrims! Here they have reached the last stage but
-one in their doleful Pilgrimage. Paris, Madrid, Barcelona,
-Oran, Tangiers, Casablanca and then up on the
-supply wagons to the advanced Posts of the Legion
-from which there is no return! Francine, Florette,
-Hortense—oh, the pretty names! Yes, that’s about
-all they have left when they reach this fine metropolis
-of Casablanca—their pretty names!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>He rose with a contemptuous movement from his
-chair, and Gerard de Montignac asked carelessly, with
-a mind far away from the subject.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“And what is the name of this girl?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Marguerite Lambert, an American,” replied Praslin,
-and close by Gerard, a young lieutenant of spahis
-who had disembarked that morning from Oran raised
-himself half out of his chair and sank back again.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Do you know her, too?” Gerard asked.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“No,” replied the lieutenant. “Yet I have danced
-with her”; and he sat wondering not so much that
-Marguerite Lambert had come to Casablanca as that
-he should not have guessed after that short stay of
-hers at Oran that it was to Casablanca she must and
-would come.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Gerard de Montignac moved round the table to
-Henri Ratenay, an officer of his own regiment who had
-made the campaign of Chaiouïa with him and
-Ravenel.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Shall we go to the Villa Iris?” he said.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Ratenay laughed and lifted his cap down from a
-peg.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“What! Has Praslin fired you? Let us go.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>But outside the long wooden building with its
-verandah of boards, Gerard de Montignac stopped.
-Marguerite Lambert roused no curiosity in him at this
-moment.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“A man from the Native Department called Baumann
-came from Rabat to-day to see the General. I
-hear that he has some news of Paul. He returns to
-Rabat to-morrow, but I was told that I might find him
-to-night at the Villa Iris. Let us go, then! For
-though I laugh, I am very anxious.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Gerard de Montignac was an officer of a type not
-rare in the French Army. An aristocrat to his finger
-tips, a youth with one foot in the drawing rooms of
-the Faubourg and the other in the cafés of Montmartre,
-and contemptuous of politics, he had turned
-his back on Paris like so many of his kind and sought
-a career in the colonial army of France. He kept up
-a plentiful correspondence with the beautiful ladies of
-his acquaintance, which did him no good with his
-masters at the War Office. For the ladies would quote
-his letters at their dinner parties. “What do you
-think? I had a letter from Gerard to-day. He says
-that such a mistake was made, etc., etc.” But he was
-not a gossip. He was a student, a soldier with a note
-book and more than one little brochure giving a limpid
-account of a campaign, bore witness to his ambition
-and his zeal. He was twenty-nine at this date, a year
-and a half older than Paul; gay and unexacting in his
-pleasures. “One soon gets used to the second best,”
-was a phrase of his, capable of much endurance and
-under a gay demeanour rather hard; a good comrade
-but a stern enemy; with no liking for games and not
-a sportsman at all in the English sense, but a brilliant
-horseman, a skilled fencer and hard, throughout his
-long lean body, as flesh can be. Women had not
-touched him deeply but he loved to be spoken of
-amongst them; he was flattered that one woman should
-envy another because that other received letters from
-him; if he had a passion at all it was for this country
-in which he served and to which he gave gladly his
-years of youth and his years of manhood. It was a
-new thing to him, half problem, half toy, at once a
-new rib to the frame of France and a jewel to be
-worthily set. On the one hand a country which wide
-motor roads and schools of intensive farming and the
-conversion of migratory tribes into permanent householders
-would develop, on the other a place of beautiful
-shrines and exquisite archways and grim old
-kasbahs with crenelated walls which must be preserved
-against the encroaching waves of commerce. In appearance
-he was thin and long and without pretension
-to good looks. His hair was receding a little from his
-forehead; and his nose was sharp and gave to his face
-the suggestion of a sabre; and he was as careful of his
-hands and his finger nails as if he were still living
-amongst the Duchesses. Moreover, he had a great
-love of Paul Ravenel, and as he looked about him on
-that hot night of early April, his anxiety increased.
-For the town was thronged with new troops, new companies
-of sappers, new artillery men. The information
-from the interior of the country was alarming. The
-fires of hatred were blazing up against Mulai Hafid,
-the new Sultan, as they had three years before against
-Abd-el-Aziz. And for the same reason. He had sold
-himself and his country to the Christians. Throughout
-the town there was excitement and unrest. A
-movement must be made forward and this time to Fez.
-Rumour had it that the Sultan was actually beleaguered
-there. And somewhere out in the wild, fierce country
-Paul Ravenel was wandering.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Let us hurry!” said Gerard de Montignac.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>The Villa Iris stood in one of the meanest of the
-alleys to the left of the great landward gate—a dingy,
-long, green house with all its windows on the street
-carefully shuttered and something sinister in its aspect,
-as though it was the house of dark stories. When
-De Montignac and Ratenay stopped in front of it not
-a light was showing, but from somewhere far within
-there came the tinkle of a piano.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>De Montignac pushed open the door and took a step
-down into a long, dark passage. They advanced for
-a few feet and then the door at the other end was
-thrown open, letting in a glare of lights and a great
-noise. Some one with the light behind him came towards
-them. Beyond that he was an officer in uniform
-they knew nothing of him until they heard his
-voice.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“So you have come to see for yourself, eh?” he
-cried gaily. “But you will do more than see to-night.
-Such a crowd in there!” and Praslin went past them.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“What in the world was he talking about?” asked
-Gerard.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Marguerite Lambert, I suppose,” replied Ratenay
-with a laugh. Gerard, for his part, had forgotten all
-about her. Nor did she dwell at all in his thoughts
-now. He went vaguely forward and found himself
-in a grotesque imitation of a Moorish room, cheap
-tiles of the bathroom kind, pillars carved and painted
-to mimic the delicate handicraft of Moorish workmen,
-a blaze of light from unshaded globes, and a long,
-glittering bar behind which Madame Delagrange presided,
-a red-faced woman cast in so opulent a mould
-that he who looked at her perspired almost as freely as
-she did herself. The bar stood against a wall opposite
-to the door, and between there were rows of little three-legged
-iron tables, at which Levantines, clerks, shopkeepers
-of every nationality and a few French officers
-were seated. In front of the tables a few couples
-gyrated in a melancholy fashion to a fox-trot thumped
-out upon an old and tortured piano by a complacent
-Greek. If there could be anything worse on this hot
-night than the glare of light and tawdry decorations,
-it was the heart-rending racket of the piano. But
-dancers, decorations, piano and glare were all lost upon
-Gerard de Montignac.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>At the side of the Bar, wide double doors stood open
-upon a platform roofed over with a vine; and in that
-doorway stood the officer of the Native Department,
-of which he was in search.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Baumann!” he cried, and crossed the room.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Baumann, a middle-aged, stockish Alsatian, long
-since settled in Algeria, to whom this Bar seemed the
-very epitome of devil-may-care luxury and pleasure,
-surveyed the Captain of Chasseurs with deference.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“It is gay here,” he said with a smile. “Life, my
-Captain, the life of Paris and the Boulevards. You
-want to speak to me? Yes? We shall be quieter here.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>He turned back with almost a sigh of regret to the
-boarded verandah under the vines. To Gerard the
-verandah was a relief. Here at all events it was cool
-and dark, and the piano did not thump upon the brain
-with so exasperating a poignancy. There was a table
-empty at the end where a couple of steps led down
-into a dark garden.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Let us sit here!” said Gerard, and when the three
-were seated and the drinks ordered from a person of
-indefinable nationality dressed up as a Turk, he leaned
-forward.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You have news of Paul Ravenel?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“News? I couldn’t say as much as that,” replied
-Baumann. “I was at Meknes when the thing occurred,
-before Meknes had declared for its new patent Pretender.
-It’s five months ago.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Baumann checked his speech and looked over
-Gerard’s shoulder intently into the dark garden.
-Gerard was sitting by the edge of the verandah, with
-his face turned eagerly towards Baumann.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“What’s the matter?” Gerard asked impatiently.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Nothing, I think. Nothing really.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>But nevertheless Baumann appeared a little uneasy
-and his eyes still held their gaze in the same direction.
-Ratenay turned. At the first he could see nothing to
-account for the alertness which had come so swiftly
-into Baumann’s face. Then he made out a black
-figure sitting or crouching upon the low edge of the
-verandah some way behind Gerard de Montignac, just
-in the edge of the lights, and more in shadow than in
-light. Gerard had not moved by so much as the
-twitch of a limb. He rapped, however, now upon the
-iron table with his knuckles.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Come, Baumann!” he said sharply. “You were at
-Meknes five months ago. Well!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I had finished my business,” Baumann replied hurriedly,
-but speaking in a lower voice than he had used
-before. “I was on my way back to Rabat by the plain
-of the Sebou. You know how the track runs from
-Meknes, due north over rolling country, then along
-the flank of the Zarhoun mountain to a pass.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Half way to the pass stand the Roman ruins of
-Volubilis.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“But they lie off the track to the right and close
-under the mountain, and worse than that, close under
-the sacred City of Mulai Idris, which is forbidden
-ground.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Both Ratenay and Gerard de Montignac knew well
-enough the evil reputation of that inviolate city where
-the Founder of the Moorish Empire had his tomb.
-A hive of bandits and fanatics who lived upon the
-fame of the tomb, and when the offerings were insufficient
-made good the balance by murder and highway
-robbery. No European could pass within the walls
-of that town, and even to approach them was venturesome.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I turned off with my small escort,” continued Baumann,
-“to visit those ruins, but even before we reached
-them we heard a clamour from the walls of the City,
-far away as it was. And the leader of the escort was
-very anxious that I should not delay amongst those tall,
-broken pillars and huge, fallen blocks of stone. So
-I hurried over my visit, but even then, half way between
-us and the track a line of men armed and some
-of them mounted sprang up from the bushes of
-asphodel and barred our return.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“We shall have to unlock and scour that City one
-of these months,” said Gerard de Montignac, little
-thinking that it was he upon whom, in after years, the
-duty would fall, or what strange and tragic revelations
-would be made to him upon that day.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“When they saw that we were soldiers they let us
-pass with a few curses, that is, all of them except one,
-a young fellow in a ragged djellaba, armed with a great
-pole. ‘What are you doing in our country, you dog
-of a Christian?’ he screamed at me in a fury, and he
-twirled his staff suddenly about his head. He was so
-near to me that he could have broken my back with it
-before I could have raised a hand to defend myself.
-I had just time to understand my danger and then he
-grounded his staff and laughed at me. His friends
-grinned, too. I expect that I did look rather a fool.
-I was thoroughly frightened, I can tell you. The
-whole thing had happened so suddenly. I almost felt
-my spine snapping,” and Baumann wiped his face with
-his handkerchief at the recollection of that great staff
-whirling in the air and him helpless upon his horse
-with his holsters strapped. “So that until we had
-passed them and were back upon the track again, I
-didn’t understand.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Understand what?” asked Gerard de Montignac.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Understand who had played this joke upon me,”
-returned Baumann. “It was Captain Ravenel.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Gerard de Montignac was startled.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You are sure?” he cried. “He was there in Mulai
-Idris, one of them!” and Baumann suddenly exclaimed:</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Hush! Don’t turn round. There’s a man behind
-you. He has been creeping along the edge of the
-verandah. This town is full of spies.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Gerard did not turn, but Ratenay, from where he sat,
-could see. The black figure crouching well away behind
-them on the edge of the raised floor had slipped
-quietly towards them, whilst Baumann had been telling
-his story. He was now close behind Gerard, squatting
-low upon the plank, with his feet in the garden,
-a ragged and dusty Jew with a mass of greasy ringlets
-struggling from beneath his skull cap.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Gerard de Montignac turned swiftly round upon
-him.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“What do you want here?” he cried angrily.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“A whiskey and soda!” replied Paul Ravenel. For
-that once insular drink had become lately known with
-favour to the officers of France.</p>
-
-<div class='figcenter'>
-<img src='images/illo60.png' alt='' id='iid-0002' style='width:100%;height:auto;'/>
-<p class='credit'><span class='it'>A William Fox Production.</span>&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;<span class='it'>The Winding Stair.</span></p> <p class='caption'>A CHANCE MEETING IN THE ARABIAN MARKET PLACE.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div><h1 id='ch6'>CHAPTER VI</h1></div>
-
-<h3>The Order</h3>
-
-<p class='noindent'><span class='lead-in'><span class='dropcap'>P</span>aul Ravenel</span> reported to the General and
-then betook himself to the house by the sea-wall
-in which he had spent so much of his boyhood.
-He had a month’s furlough and an account of his
-wanderings to write. At the end of a week he had
-got the stain from his skin and the dye out of his hair,
-but he had not got far with his report, not liking the
-look of the words as he wrote them down, and composing
-the page again to find it no better done than it
-had been before. He was sitting despondently at his
-writing-table at ten o’clock on one of these evenings,
-his hair all rumpled and a chaos of notes spread about
-him, when Gerard de Montignac burst into the room.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Paul, I am worn to a shadow with sheer idleness,”
-he cried. “Always something is going to happen, never
-anything does happen; except ships and ships and
-ships and batteries landing and soldiers marching to
-God knows where. I can bear no more of it. We
-will break out to-night, Paul. We will drink Casablanca
-in one draught. We will do something wild
-and utterly original.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul looked up and laughed.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“For instance?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes, it is rather difficult. To begin with, we might
-go to the Villa Iris.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“That <span class='it'>bouge</span>?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“And we might dance with Marguerite Lambert, the
-American?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul stared.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“And who the devil is Marguerite Lambert?” he
-asked. Could any good thing come out of the Villa
-Iris?</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“It is high time you knew her,” said Gerard de
-Montignac decidedly.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“What is she like?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I haven’t seen her, either. But the little Praslin
-says she’s a dream, and the little Boutreau, the little
-Boutreau of the Legion cannot sleep at night for
-thinking of her. It is high time, Paul, that we both
-made her acquaintance.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul laughed and shook his head.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I daren’t risk catching the little Boutreau’s malady
-until I have finished this report.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You have a month.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I know. But I want to go back to my battalion
-and command my company. Some day we are going
-to march to Fez. Don’t forget it!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Gerard de Montignac sat down, took off his cap, lit
-a cigarette and drew up his chair to the table.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You are a serious one,” he said very sagely, “a
-fastidious, serious one. When you look at me I feel
-that you are very sorry for me—that poor Gerard—and
-that you know I can’t help it. And when there
-are Generals about, I point to you and say loudly: ‘Ah,
-there is a serious one who will go far!’ But here
-privately I am afraid for you, Paul. I say to myself,
-‘He is not of stone. Some day things will happen
-with that serious one, and where we common people
-scrape our shins, he will break his neck. When we
-amuse ourselves for a month, he will marry the Sergeant-Major’s
-daughter.’ ”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul had heard this homily a good many times before.
-He just went on writing as if his friend were
-not in the room.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“But I am not sure that something has not already
-happened to you—oh, a long time ago.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul’s pen stopped abruptly, but he did not look up
-from the page.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Why are you not sure?” he asked.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Because you have compassions and sympathies and
-little delicacies of thought which the rest of us have
-not. The garrisons of the Colonial army and the
-coast towns of North Africa are not the natural soil
-for such harvests. Some long time ago, a thing has
-happened, eh?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“No,” said Paul. He gathered his papers together
-and got up. Gerard was beginning to guess a little
-too shrewdly. “But I will tell you what is going to
-happen. I am going with you to the Villa Iris.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>The nine years which had passed since Paul had
-listened through an evening to Colonel Vanderfelt had
-written less upon his face than on his character. He
-hardly looked older, nor had he lost the elusive grace
-which made others warm to him from the outset of
-acquaintanceship. But he had now the ease, the restful
-quality of a man who has found himself. Youth
-which is solitary is given to luxuriate in woe, but the
-years of companionship, of friendly rivalry, of strenuous
-effort, and a little trifle of achievement had enabled
-Paul Ravenel to contemplate the blot upon his name
-with a much less tragic eye than when it had first
-been revealed to him. He had hurried from Colonel
-Vanderfelt’s house to France and for a week had
-roamed the woods of Fontainebleau sunk in such an
-exaggeration of shame that he shunned all speech and
-company and felt himself a leper. Paul remembered
-that week now with amazement and scorn. He had
-served throughout the Chaiouïa Campaign, from the
-capture of Settat, right on to the wonderful three
-weeks in March when with the speed and the mobility
-of Stonewall Jackson’s “foot-cavalry” they had
-marched and fought and straightway marched again
-until the swift pounce upon the great camp of Bou
-Nuallah had put the seal upon their victories. Settat,
-M’Kown, Sidi el Mekhi, the R’Fakha, the M’Karto—those
-had been royal days of friendship and battle,
-and endurance, and the memory of the week at Fontainebleau
-could only live in shame beside them.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Gerard de Montignac’s careless words had suddenly
-set Paul upon this train of thought, so that he forgot
-for a moment his friend’s presence in the room. He
-had not changed his plans—he found himself putting
-that question silently. No, he still meant to go back
-to his own home and race and name. He was not of
-those to whom Eastern lands and Eastern climes make
-so searching an appeal that they can never afterwards
-be happy anywhere else. He was a true child of the
-grey skies, and he meant in due time to live under
-them. But the actual date for that migration had
-been pushed off to a misty day. He put his cap on his
-head.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Come, let us sample your Villa Iris,” he said; and
-the two friends walked across Casablanca to the green,
-dark-shuttered house.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>The Bar was full and the piano doing its worst.
-Above the babel of voices, every harsh note of it hurt
-like a tap upon a live brain. Paul and Gerard de
-Montignac were the only two in uniform there that
-night. A few small officials of the French business
-companies, Greeks, Italians, nondescripts from the
-Levant, and Jews, who three years before, paddling
-barefoot in the filth of their Mellah, were the only
-people to shout “Vive la France,” as the troops
-marched through Casablanca—these made up the company
-of the Villa Iris.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Gerard de Montignac looked about the room. At a
-big table at the end, a little crowd of these revellers,
-dandies in broadcloth and yellow, buttoned boots, were
-raising a din as they drank, some standing and gesticulating,
-others perched on high stools, and all talking
-at the top of their high, shrill voices. Half-a-dozen
-women in bedraggled costumes covered with spangles
-which had once done duty in the outlying Music Halls
-of Paris were dancing with their partners in front of
-the tables. But Gerard could not believe that any one
-of them could have cost even little Boutreau of the
-Legion five minutes of his ordinary ration of sleep.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“She may be outside,” said Gerard. “Let us see!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>He made his way between the tables, crossed the
-open space of floor and went out through the wide
-doorway on the big verandah. Paul followed him.
-The verandah was almost empty. They sat down at
-one of the small iron tables near to the garden, and
-Gerard de Montignac broke into a laugh as he noticed
-his friend’s troubled face.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You cannot bear it, eh? It is all too vulgar and
-noisy and crude. You are sorry for us who are
-amused by it.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul laughed and his face cleared.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Don’t be an idiot, Gerard. It isn’t that.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“What’s the matter, then?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>The look of perplexity returned to Ravenel’s eyes.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I have seen her,” he said.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Seen whom?” asked Gerard.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Your Marguerite Lambert. At least, I think so.
-It must have been she.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>There was a real note of distress in Paul’s voice
-which Gerard de Montignac was quite at a loss to
-understand. He turned in his chair and looked into
-the saloon. Between the doorway and the tables a few
-couples were revolving, but the women were of the
-type native to such places, their countenances plastered
-with paint, a fixed smile upon their lips, and a deliberate
-archness in their expression, and in their features
-the haggard remains of what even at its bloom
-so many years ago could have been no more than a
-vulgar comeliness.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“She is sitting at the big table with those half-drunken
-Levantines,” said Paul. “What is she doing
-amongst them?” He asked the question in a voice of
-bewilderment and pity. “Why is she here at all—a
-child!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Suddenly the hard uproar of the piano ceased, the
-dancers stopped their gyrations, with the abruptness of
-mechanical figures whose works have run down, and
-sauntered to their chairs. Gerard could now see the
-big table but there was such a cluster of men about it,
-gesticulating and shouting, that Gerard de Montignac
-was moved to disgust.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“It is for those men we fight and get killed,” he
-cried, turning towards Paul. “Look at them! Three
-years ago they were cringing in their Mellahs or shivering
-in their little shops and offices for fear of an
-attack upon the city. Now they are the bloods of the
-town, picking up the money all day, and living the
-Life at night. Another three years and half of them
-will have their automobiles and take supper at the
-Café de Paris, whilst you and I, Paul, if we are lucky,
-will be shaking with fever in some garrison in the
-desert. I should like to bang their noisy heads together.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul laughed at his friend’s indignation.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“All wars fatten the carrion birds, but it isn’t for
-the carrion birds that they are fought,” he said, and
-in the saloon all the voices ceased.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Gerard de Montignac swung round again in his
-chair. The men who had been standing about the big
-table had taken their seats and on the far side of it,
-almost facing the doorway and the two officers beyond
-in the dark of the verandah, a girl was standing.
-Gerard uttered a little cry, so startled was he by her
-aspect, by the sharp contrast between her delicacy and
-the squalor of her company. He heard Paul Ravenel
-move behind him, but he did not turn. His eyes were
-drawn to that slight figure and held by it.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Marguerite Lambert,” he whispered to himself.
-There she stood, looking straight out through the
-doorway towards them. Could she see them, he wondered.
-Why was she standing there in view before
-that crowd, in this dustbin of Casablanca? It was
-wrong.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>The piano sounded a note and Marguerite Lambert
-began to sing. But she could not sing—that was
-evident from the first bar. A tiny voice, which even
-in that silence hardly reached to the two men on the
-verandah, clear and gentle but with no range of music
-in it. It was like a child singing and an untrained
-child without any gift for singing. As singing it was
-ridiculous. Yet Gerard de Montignac neither laughed,
-nor could withdraw his eyes. He even held his breath,
-and of her singing he was altogether unaware.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>She was pretty—yes, but too thin, and with eyes
-unnaturally large for her face. She was fresh: yes,
-strangely fresh for that place of squalor and withered
-flowers. And she was young, so that she stood apart
-from the other women like a jewel amongst pebbles.
-But it was not her beauty which arrested him, nor some
-indefinable air of good breeding which she had, but—and
-when she was halfway through her little song
-Gerard reached the explanation in his analysis—a
-queer look of fatality. Yes, a fatal look as though
-she was predestined to something out of the common,
-greater joys perhaps or greater sufferings, a bigger
-destiny than falls to the ordinary lot.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Gerard de Montignac had all the Frenchman’s passion
-for classing people in their proper categories, and
-his knack, as soon as that was done, of losing all interest
-in them. He was unable to place the girl in hers.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>What was she singing about in that absurd little
-tinkling voice? Moonlight, and lovers, and lilies on
-the water? To a lot of degenerate money-grubbing
-Levantines? Through Gerard’s memory, to the tune
-which she sang was running a chain of names—names
-of places—names which Commandant Marnier had
-savagely strung together one night in the Mess; the
-names of the stages in that melancholy pilgrimage
-from which women do not return. Paris, Madrid,
-Barcelona, Toulon, Marseilles, Oran, Tangiers, Casablanca,
-and the Advanced Posts of the Legion. Yes,
-but the pilgrimage occupied a lifetime. What was this
-girl’s age? Was she nineteen or twenty? Not more,
-assuredly! How then had she come to the penultimate
-stage so soon? By what desperate circumstance of
-crime or ill-fortune? .&nbsp;.&nbsp;.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>The song ceased and at once the clatter of voices
-broke out again. Madame Delagrange behind her bar
-poured out the drinks for three or four dark-skinned
-waiters dressed like Turks and a painted woman with
-worn eyes and wrinkles which no paint could hide
-minced out in her shabby, high-heeled dancing slippers
-to the officers on the verandah.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Give me something to drink, dearie—I am dying
-of thirst,” she said, and she drew a chair to their table.
-Gerard de Montignac laughed brutally and would
-have driven her away, but Paul was quick to anticipate
-him. He had seen the woman flush under her paint
-when Gerard laughed.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Of course,” he said at once. “What shall we all
-drink, Mademoiselle?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>She turned to him gratefully.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“If you will take my advice, the whiskey. The
-champagne—oh, never.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I can imagine it,” said Paul. “Chiefly sugar and
-sulphuric acid and mixed in the back yard,” and he
-laughed pleasantly to put the woman at her ease.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>The one sure gain which had come to Paul from the
-destruction of his illusions was a hesitation in passing
-judgment upon people and estimating their values
-and characters. He had been so utterly mistaken once.
-He meant to go gently thereafter. And partly for that
-reason, partly because of an imagination which made
-him always want to stand behind the eyes of others and
-see what different things they looked out upon, from
-the things which he saw himself, there had grown up
-within that compassion and sympathy which Gerard
-de Montignac had noticed as dangerous qualities.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>So although in truth he was more impatient than
-Gerard that this woman should be gone, he betrayed
-no sign of it. She had surely humiliations enough
-each day without his adding yet another. Accordingly
-they sat about the table, and the woman began with
-the usual gambit of her class in the only game which
-she knew how to play.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I have not seen you here before. You have just
-arrived in Casablanca, too—a few days ago? My
-name is Henriette. Only to think that a fortnight ago
-I was dining in the Café de Paris! But I wanted a
-change—so fatiguing, Paris!—and to pay my expenses
-meanwhile. So I dance here for a few weeks
-and return.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul accepted the outrageous lie with a fine courtesy
-which was lost upon his friend, who for his part
-grinned openly, remembering the Commandant Marnier’s
-descriptions.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“And what is that little one, Marguerite Lambert,
-at her age and with her looks, doing here at the Villa
-Iris?” he asked bluntly.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Henriette flushed and her eyes grew as hard as buttons.
-“And why shouldn’t she be here?” she asked
-with a resentful challenge. “Just like the rest of us!
-Or do you think her so different as those idiots do
-over at the table there? But I will tell you one thing,”
-and she nodded her head emphatically. “She will not
-be here long—no, nor anywhere else, the little fool!
-But, there!—” Henriette’s anger died away as quickly
-as it had flared up. “She is not a bad sort and quite
-friendly with us girls.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“And why will she not stay here long?” asked
-Gerard.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Oh, ask her yourself, if you are so curious,” she
-cried impatiently. “But you are dull, you two! No,
-you are not amusing me at all,” and, emptying her
-glass, Henriette flung off into the saloon as the accompanist
-began once more to belabour the keys of the
-piano.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Gerard watched her go with a shrug of the shoulders
-and a laugh. He turned then towards Paul and Paul’s
-chair was empty. Paul had risen the moment Henriette
-had flung away and was walking at the back of
-the tables towards the doorway into the Bar. Gerard
-watched him curiously and with a certain malicious
-amusement. Was he, too—that serious one—to go at
-last the way of all flesh? To seek the conventional
-compensation for a long period of strenuous service in
-the facile amours of the coast towns?</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>The beginning of the affair, at all events, was not
-conventional. Gerard noticed, with a curious envy
-which he had not thought to feel, that Paul Ravenel
-went quietly to the back of that noisy table in the Bar,
-and stood just behind Marguerite Lambert. No one at
-the table noticed him nor did Marguerite turn. But she
-rose slowly to her feet, like a person in a dream. Only
-then did the men drinking at the table look toward
-Paul Ravenel. A strange silence fell upon them, as
-Marguerite turned about and went towards Paul. For
-a moment they stood facing one another. Then Marguerite
-fell in at his side, as though an order had
-been given and they moved away from the group at
-the table, slowly, like people alone, quite alone in an
-empty world. And no word had been spoken by either
-of them to the other, nor did either of them smile;
-and their hands did not touch. But as they reached
-the open floor where a few were dancing, Marguerite
-glanced quickly, and to Gerard’s fancy, with fear, at
-the fat woman behind the Bar; and then she spoke.
-There was no doubt what she was saying.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“We had better dance for a few moments.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul took her in his arms, and they danced. Gerard
-de Montignac rose and went out of the Villa Iris. The
-picture of the meeting between those two was still
-vivid before his eyes. It was as though an order had
-been given and both without haste or question had
-perfectly obeyed it.</p>
-
-<div><h1 id='ch7'>CHAPTER VII</h1></div>
-
-<h3>The Pilgrimage</h3>
-
-<p class='noindent'><span class='lead-in'><span class='dropcap'>W</span>hen</span> they reached the wide doorway they
-slipped out onto the balcony. It was cool
-here and quiet and there was no light except
-that which came from the Bar. They sat down at a
-table apart from the others and close to the garden.
-A waiter followed them out quickly and looked at
-Marguerite for an order.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“May I have a citronade?” she asked of Paul, and
-he replied:</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Let me order for you, will you? A little supper
-and some red wine. You are hungry.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Marguerite looked at him swiftly and dropped her
-eyes.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes, I am hungry,” she said, and a smile slowly
-trembled about her lips and then lit up her whole face.
-“I have never admitted it before.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>The hollows of her shoulders, the unnaturally bright,
-large eyes burning in her thin face, and an air of lassitude
-she had, told a story of starvation clearly enough.
-But the visitors at the Villa Iris had not the compassion
-nor the interest to read it, and Marguerite, for her
-own reasons, had always been at pains that it should
-not be read at all. Now, however, she smiled, glad of
-Paul’s care, glad that he had seen at once with such
-keen, sure eyes one of the things which were amiss
-with her. Paul ordered some chicken and a salad.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“But the waiter will be quick, won’t he?” she urged.
-“Madame is not very content if we are idle.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul laughed.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I’ll speak to her,” he said lightly. “I’ll tell her that
-she is not to worry you to-night.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>He rose half out of his chair, meaning to buy an
-evening of rest for Marguerite Lambert from the old
-harridan behind the Bar. A bottle of champagne
-would no doubt be the price and there was no compulsion
-upon them to drink it. But he was not yet
-upon his feet when the girl reached out her hand and
-caught his sleeve.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“No! Please!” she cried with a vehemence which
-quite startled him. “If she sends for me, I have got
-to go and you mustn’t say a word! Promise me!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>She was in terror. Even now her eyes glanced affrightedly
-towards the open doorway, already expecting
-the appearance of her mistress. To the enigma
-which the girl’s presence at all in the Villa Iris proposed
-to Paul Ravenel, here was another added. Why
-should she be so terrified of that red-faced, bustling
-woman behind the Bar? After all, Marguerite Lambert—the
-only delicate and fresh and young girl who
-had danced there for a living—must mean custom to
-Madame Delagrange; must be therefore a personage
-to be considered, not a mere slave to be terrified and
-driven! Why, then—? How, then—? And his
-blood was hot at the mere thought of Marguerite’s
-terror and subjection.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>But he showed nothing of his anger, nothing of his
-perplexity in his face. He was at pains to reassure her.
-Let him not add to her fears and troubles.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I promise, Marguerite,” he said. “But let’s hope
-she doesn’t notice your absence.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Once more she smiled, her face a flame of tenderness.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You called me by my name.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>He repeated it, dwelling upon its syllables.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“It’s a beautiful name,” he said.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Perhaps, as you speak it,” she answered with a
-laugh. “But wait till you hear how harsh a word
-Madame can make of it.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>The waiter brought the supper and laid it on the
-table between them.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Eat and drink first,” said Paul Ravenel, as he
-poured the red wine into her glass. “Then we will
-talk.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You shall tell me your name before I begin.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Paul—Paul Ravenel,” said he, and she repeated
-the name once with her big, serious eyes fixed upon
-him and a second time with a little grimace which
-wrinkled up her nose and gave to her whole face a
-flash of gaiety. She drew her chair to the table with
-an anticipation and relish which filled Paul with pity
-and tugged sharply at the strings of his heart. She ate
-her supper with enjoyment and daintiness.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“A cigarette?” said Paul, offering her his case as
-soon as she had finished.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Thank you! Oh, but I was hungry!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>She lit it and leaning back in her chair smoked
-whilst the waiter cleared the supper away and set the
-bottle and the glasses between them on the table.
-Then Marguerite leaned forward, her face between her
-hands, her elbows on the table.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Paul!” she said with a smile, as if the name was a
-fruit and delightful to taste.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I saw you,” she continued in a low voice, “when
-you first came into the room, you and your friend. I
-thought at once that you would come for me as you
-did. I called to you—yes, even then—oh, with all
-my strength—quietly—to myself. But I called so earnestly
-that I was afraid that I had cried my little
-prayer out loud. And then when I lost sight of you
-out here in the dark I was afraid. I didn’t see you
-come in again. I only knew suddenly that you were
-standing behind me.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul Ravenel watched her as she spoke, her great
-eyes shining, her face delicately white in that dim
-light. He had no doubt that she spoke in all frankness
-and simplicity the truth. Were they not once
-more alone, shut off by a wall of dreams from all the
-world? Paul leaned forward and took her hand.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I did not need to hear you call, Marguerite. I
-saw you, too, at once. My friend had heard of you,
-was looking for you. I saw you. I told him where
-you were”; and for a moment the girl’s face clouded
-over and the spell was broken.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>So far Paul Ravenel had spoken in French. Now
-he asked in English:</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Why do they call you the American?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Marguerite Lambert stared at him with her eyes
-opened wide.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You, too?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes. We are of the same race.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>She looked at his uniform.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“My mother was French, my father English. He
-took my mother’s nationality,” he said.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Marguerite suddenly stretched both her hands across
-the table to him in a swift abandonment.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I am glad,” she said. “I come from Devonshire.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I from Sussex.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I from the county of broad moors and little valleys.
-You from—”; and some look upon his face
-checked her suddenly. “I have said something that
-hurts?” she asked remorsefully.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“No,” answered Paul, and for a few moments they
-were silent. To both of them this revelation that they
-were of the same race was no longer so much of a
-surprise as a portent. They were like travellers not
-quite sure that their feet were on their due appointed
-road, who come upon a sign post and know that they
-have made no mistake. These two had no doubt that
-they were upon their road of destiny, that this swift,
-unexpected friendship would lead them together into
-new countries where their lives would be fulfilled.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Just to imagine if I had never come to the Villa
-Iris!” Paul exclaimed with a gasp of fear; so near
-he had been to not coming. But Marguerite’s eyelids
-drooped over her eyes and a look of doubt and sadness
-shadowed her face. Exaltations and hopes—here
-were bright things she dared hardly look upon, for if
-she once looked and took them to her heart, and
-found them false, what was merely grievous would no
-longer be endurable.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“It is a long way from Devonshire to Casablanca,”
-cried Paul, and Marguerite smiled.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“There’s a question very prettily put,” said she.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Her story was ordinary enough in its essentials.
-“Some families go up,” she said simply. “Others
-seem doomed to go right down and bring every member
-of them down too. Most English villages have an
-example, I think. Once and not so long ago they
-were well off and lived in their farm house. Now
-every descendant is a labourer in a cottage, except one
-or two perhaps who have emigrated and fared no
-better abroad. The Lamberts were like that.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Marguerite had been born when the family were
-more than half way down the hill, although outwardly
-it still showed prosperous. Her father, a widower,
-spent more of his time upon race-courses than upon
-his farm and made it a point of pride to educate his
-children in the fashionable and expensive schools.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“He was the most happy-go-lucky man that ever
-lived,” said Marguerite. “We knew nothing of the
-debts or the mortgages. He was all for being a gentleman
-and to be a gentleman in his definition was to
-spend money. He came down to breakfast one morning—there
-were the four of us at home, my brother,
-my two sisters and myself, and said cheerily, ‘Well,
-girls, all the money’s gone and the farm, too.’ Then
-he ate his breakfast cheerily, went upstairs and blew
-out his brains with his shot-gun, I suppose quite cheerily,
-too.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>The catastrophe had happened a little more than two
-years before, when Marguerite was between seventeen
-and eighteen. Misfortune scatters a family as a wind
-autumn leaves. The brother, a small replica of his
-father, departed for the Argentine, cheerily confident
-of rebuilding by an opportune speculation the Lambert
-fortune; the eldest of the sisters married an unsuccessful
-farmer in the neighbourhood with whom
-she was in love; the second became a private secretary,
-lost her job within the week, and discovered her
-proper sphere of work, as a pretty waitress in a tea-shop.
-Marguerite herself secured an engagement in
-the chorus of a Musical Comedy company which was
-touring the provinces.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“We were just ordinary girls,” Marguerite continued,
-“rather fecklessly brought up, fairly good-looking,
-decent manners, but nothing outstanding. There
-wasn’t any Edna May amongst us. We just did what
-we could, not very well.” Marguerite suddenly broke
-into a delicious laugh. “You heard me sing, didn’t
-you? Pathetic, wasn’t it? At least it would have
-been if I hadn’t felt the humour of it all the while.
-Well, we got stranded in Wigan—I am speaking of
-my Musical Comedy company. I pawned a few things
-and travelled to London. Three of the chorus girls
-and I clubbed together and got lodgings in Bloomsbury.
-But it was October when the most of the touring
-companies had already gone out and fresh engagements
-were only probable for the Christmas pantomime.
-One after another of my companions dropped
-away. Finally I was offered an opening in a concert
-party which was to tour the music halls in France. I
-was to dance between the songs.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“A concert party!” said Paul. “That sounds doubtful.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Marguerite nodded.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I was warned against it. The White Slave traffic!
-But I had to take my risk. And as it happened there
-wasn’t any roguery of that kind. Our concert party
-was genuine. Only it didn’t attract and at Avignon
-it came to an end. There seems to me to be a curse
-on families going down hill. Misfortunes centre upon
-them. It is as though a decent world wanted to hurry
-them right down and comfortably out of sight as soon
-as possible, so that it might no longer feel the shame of
-them.” Marguerite laughed, not so much in bitterness
-as in submission to a law. “Perhaps it is simply
-that we who belong to those families don’t will hard
-enough that things should go right.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul Ravenel looked sharply at his companion. He
-had instances within his own knowledge to bear out the
-shrewdness of her remark. His father and Colonel
-Vanderfelt! What difference was there between them,
-except that one willed hard enough to atone for a
-crime and the other did not?</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes. I expect that’s the truth, if you are started
-down hill,” he said slowly. “And then what did you
-do?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>There was a great fear in his heart as to what her
-answer might be. He was already making excuses—already
-arguing why should there be one law for the
-man and another for the woman—and rebelling against
-the argument. Marguerite did not resolve his fears in
-her account of her miserable little Odyssey; nor, on
-the other hand, did she increase them.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I had enough money to take me to Marseilles.&nbsp;.&nbsp;.&nbsp;.
-I danced at a café there for a little while. I was told
-that if I crossed the Mediterranean to Oran .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. I
-managed to do that and I danced at Oran for a little
-while. Then I came on to Casablanca,” and she caught
-her breath and clasped her hands convulsively under
-the sting of some ever-present terror. “And I am
-afraid,” she whispered.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Of what?” asked Paul.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“That I shall not stay here long, either,” she cried
-in a dreadful note of despair, with her great eyes suddenly
-full of tears. “Then what shall I do?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Even as she spoke that question her face changed.
-Some one was coming out from the Bar through the
-doorway. A smile of convention upon her lips masked
-her misery.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I shall have to go now, Paul,” she said in a low
-voice, caressing his name. “I am sorry. And you will
-let me go, as you promised?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes,” said Paul regretfully.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“And you will come here again, some evening, soon,
-Paul!” she whispered with a wistful little smile upon
-her lips.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I shall wait now.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>The smile disappeared at once.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“No. I must dance now. I told you Madame did
-not like to see me idle. I shall not be able to sit with
-you again this evening, and we do not close until two
-or three in the morning, if there is any one to stay.
-So to-morrow, perhaps, Paul?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“To-morrow, Marguerite.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>She stood up as a man approached the table. He
-was a thick-set, stoutish man with a heavy black moustache
-and a yellowish, shiny face. He was one of
-those who had been seated at the table in the saloon
-with Marguerite when Ravenel and Gerard de Montignac
-had entered the room. He came up with a
-frown upon his face and spoke surlily in French, with
-a harsh, metallic accent.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“We wait a long time for you.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Marguerite Lambert made no rejoinder. “You wish
-me to dance with you,” she said. “I am very happy,”
-and with a smile of convention upon her lips she said
-good-night carelessly to Paul Ravenel. But the appeal
-and softness of her eyes took the convention out
-of her smile and the carelessness from her farewell.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul, left alone at the table, watched her through
-the doorway as she danced. Her little plain pink
-frock was as neat as attention could make it, her shoes
-and stockings were spotless, her hair, brown with a
-flicker of copper, parted at the side and with a curiously
-attractive little peak in the centre of her forehead,
-was waved smoothly about her small head. His
-hands had been tingling to stroke it, to feel its silk and
-warmth rippling beneath his fingers, whilst they had
-been sitting together on the balcony. There was a
-slovenliness in the aspect of the other women. Marguerite
-was orderly as though even amidst the squalor
-of her environment she kept on respecting herself.
-She wore no ornaments at all. She was fairly tall,
-with slim legs and beautiful hands and feet. As he
-watched her Paul fell into a cold and bitter rage against
-the oily-mustachioed creature with whom she danced.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Gerard was right,” he said to himself. “We go
-out and fight, we get ourselves killed and mutilated,
-so that such fellows may make money and keep it up
-all night in the Bars. The Profiteers! We who are
-about to die salute you!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Thus he apostrophised the man who had taken Marguerite
-Lambert away from him, raging furiously.
-The old prudent Paul Ravenel counting his steps and
-avoiding emotions, had for the moment quite disappeared.
-He was a boy of nineteen, ardent and unreasonable,
-and a little ridiculous in the magniloquence
-of his thoughts. The only comfort he drew was from
-an aloofness in Marguerite of which she had shown
-nothing whilst she sat with him, but which was now
-very evident. She did not speak whilst she danced,
-her eyelids were lowered, her face had lost all its expression.
-Paul had a fancy that she had just left her
-body to revolve and glide delicately in the dance, whilst
-her spirit had withdrawn itself into some untarnished
-home of its own. The piano suddenly was dumb; the
-dancers stopped: Marguerite and her partner were
-standing face to face in front of the doorway. Paul
-had promised not to interfere. Very well then, he
-would go. He rose abruptly to his feet, his eyes fixed
-upon the couple; and at once, though Marguerite never
-looked his way, she moved sharply. It was a quick
-little start, hardly perceptible. Paul felt a wave of
-joy sweep over him. She was conscious of him, as he
-was conscious of her, so that if he moved abruptly she
-at a distance was startled. He turned with a smile
-upon his lips, but after all he did not go, as he had
-intended to do. For Henriette came out of the Bar
-towards him.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Won’t you stay for a minute,” she said, “and give
-me something to drink! I am dying of thirst!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Of course,” he said, and he called to the waiter.
-He had a great goodwill towards all women that
-night, but above all to the women of the Villa Iris.</p>
-
-<div><h1 id='ch8'>CHAPTER VIII</h1></div>
-
-<h3>Henriette Explains</h3>
-
-<p class='noindent'><span class='lead-in'><span class='dropcap'>P</span>aul</span> was rewarded out of all measure for his
-courtesy. For as Henriette sat and drank her
-whiskey and soda, she talked.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You were civil to me when your friend would have
-sent me contemptuously away,” she said. “And when
-I told you that I had dined at the Café de Paris only
-three weeks ago, and your friend laughed, you did not.
-You pretended that you believed it. That was polite
-of you. For we both knew that never once in all my
-life have I dined at the Café de Paris or any such swell
-restaurant in Paris. And it was kind of you. It made
-me ready to fancy that I had dined there and that
-does one a little good, eh? One feels better in one’s
-self. So I will be kind in my turn. You are interested
-in that little one,” and she jerked her head towards
-the table in the Bar, where Marguerite had rejoined
-the noisy group. “Yes, she has chic, and she
-is pretty on her feet, and she has a personality, but—”
-Paul Ravenel leaned forward, his face hardening.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Mademoiselle, I do not want to hear.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Oh, I am not going to crab her,” replied Henriette,
-and her petulant temper flamed up. “You think, I
-suppose, that women cannot admire a girl who is
-younger and prettier than themselves and cannot like
-her. That is foolish. I tell you we all like Marguerite
-Lambert. And I speak to you for your good
-and hers. But, of course, if you do not care to hear
-me—”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I beg your pardon, Mademoiselle,” said Paul. “I
-will listen to you very willingly.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Henriette’s passions were no more than bubbles upon
-the surface of her good-humour. They burst very
-quickly and left no traces. The flush faded from her
-throat and forehead and no doubt from the painted
-cheeks as well, though that could not be discovered by
-mortal eye.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Listen,” she said. “Your friend asked me what
-Marguerite Lambert was doing at the Villa Iris, and
-I would not answer him. Why should I? It was
-clear what he meant, wasn’t it? Why was she, who
-might really have dined at the Café de Paris three
-weeks ago, already here at Casablanca, so near to the
-end of things?” Henriette’s face grew for a moment
-haggard with terror, as she formulated the problem.
-The last stage but one of the dreadful pilgrimage of her
-class! She herself was making that journey, and what
-lay beyond and so hideously close, loomed up when she
-thought of it, and appalled her.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul interrupted her with a word of solace.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You are making too much of his question.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>But Henriette would have none of his consolation.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“No, that is what he meant and what you meant,
-too?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I said nothing.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“But the question was in your face. The question
-and a great deal of trouble. Why was Marguerite
-Lambert already at Casablanca?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul did not contradict her again. She would not
-believe him if he did and he might lose the answer to
-the question.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You made it still more difficult to understand,” he
-said frankly. There was no good to be gained by beating
-about the bush with this woman who was disposed
-to help him. “For though you didn’t answer our question
-you added to it another perplexity. You said that
-she wouldn’t remain here long.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Henriette nodded.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“That is right. The answer to both questions is the
-same. She drifted here so soon, and she will stay for
-so short a time, because she waits for the grand passion.
-Yes, the little fool!” but it was not in scorn
-that she styled Marguerite a little fool, but with a half-contemptuous
-tenderness, and perhaps a tiny spite of
-envy.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“The grand passion!” Paul repeated, wondering
-what in the world his companion meant.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes. Oh, she is quite frank with the rest of us.
-We talk, you know, when we are dressing, and after
-the café is closed, when we are changing back to our
-street clothes. Until the grand passion comes, nothing,
-nothing, nothing to any man. Look, they are
-dancing again, she and Petras Tetarnis, the Greek.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>So he was a Greek, the man with the yellow-buttoned
-boots and the heavy black moustache! Henriette
-watched them with the eye of a professional.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes, she dances prettily, that little one. But would
-you like a girl to dance with you just in that way—so
-unconcerned, so half-asleep, so utterly indifferent to
-you? And if you wanted her as Petras Tetarnis does,
-furiously, wouldn’t you be mad when she swam in
-your arms so lightly, with so correct a grace and not
-one look or smile or thought for you? So that if you
-spoke to her, she had to recall her thoughts from the
-end of the world before she could answer you? You
-would be wild with rage, eh? You would want to
-take that slim little white throat between your two
-big hands and squeeze and squeeze until some attention
-was paid to you, if it was only the attention of
-agony and fear. Am I not right?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul’s face turned white. He leaned across the
-table and cried in a low, fierce voice:</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Was that what you meant, Henriette, when you
-said that she would not be here long? That the Greek
-would murder her?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Henriette burst into a laugh.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Oh, no, no, no, my friend. Petras Tetarnis is not
-the man to run such perils. He has made much money,
-since the French have come to Casablanca. He is a
-prudent one. It would have to be a very dark night
-and a very empty street before Tetarnis risked his
-beautiful money and all the enjoyment he gets from
-it; and even then some one else would have to do the
-work. But he will use other ways.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“What kind of ways?” asked Paul.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Henriette shrugged her shoulders.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“He is always here. He is rich. Madame Delagrange
-makes much of him. Very likely he has lent
-her money, and if so, he will want his interest.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I see.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul leaned back in his chair and Henriette looked
-at him curiously.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You were much moved, my friend, when I spoke of
-the big, coarse hands gripping that little throat.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Well, any man would be, and whoever the woman,”
-he protested, and Henriette smiled her disbelief.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Would you have been so moved if it had been my
-throat which you thought to be in danger?” she asked
-shrewdly. “No! Let us be frank. You would have
-said, ‘It is Henriette’s business to look after herself.
-She is old enough, anyway’; and you would have forgotten
-me the next moment.” She turned her eyes
-again upon Marguerite Lambert.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“The grand passion. Oh, la, la, la! Until it comes
-nothing, oh, but nothing at all for any one—not half
-a heart beat! But when it does come, everything, at
-once, with both hands. The folly!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“The glorious imprudence!” replied Paul.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Henriette broke into a harsh laugh as she heard the
-softly spoken words and saw the light in Paul Ravenel’s
-eyes. It was the light of a great relief rather
-than of hope. The fear which had plagued him all
-through this evening had gone now. There was no
-need for the excuses. He had not to argue a defence
-for Marguerite Lambert.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“The glorious imprudence,” Henriette repeated with
-a sneer. “Yes, so you say—you, the man who has
-everything to gain from the glorious imprudence and
-when he is tired of it, can drop it in the road behind
-him. But I tell you those are not good ideas for a girl
-who dances for her living, in the cafés. There is the
-patron behind the patron like Petras Tetarnis, who
-will make trouble if he doesn’t get what he wants, for
-there are rich patrons whom the patron does not wish
-to drive away. Or there are jealousies which may
-mean fighting and the police. No, my fine gentleman!
-Girls who are difficult, the Villa Irises are no place for
-them. That is why Marguerite Lambert at twenty is
-dancing in Casablanca and will not dance there
-long.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“But if the great passion comes?” cried Paul.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Then it must come quick! Believe me, very quick.
-Petras Tetarnis is growing troublesome. And if it
-comes! Shall I tell you what will happen? She will
-blow her brains out! Oh, you may start in your chair.
-But look at her where she sits! There is the mark of
-fate already upon her face. It is written, as they say
-in this country.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>So to Henriette as to Gerard de Montignac and to
-Paul Ravenel, that indefinable look of destiny in Marguerite
-was evident. Paul asked himself whether it
-was not simply the outward and visible sign of that
-passionate self-respect which had kept her untarnished
-against the rush and play of the great passion when it
-came. Or was the future really written there—a history
-of great joys perhaps and great sorrows certainly
-to be?</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“So Marguerite lives on seven francs a day and—”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>She got no further. Paul interrupted her with an
-exclamation of horror.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Seven francs!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes. That is what our generous Madame Delagrange
-pays us each night and we provide our own
-dancing kit out of it. Oh, the little fool starves. That
-is certain—all the more certain because she will not
-let any of the clients here give her food.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“But she let me,” cried Paul with a smile of pride.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes, she let you to-night. But the others, never,
-never, lest—you understand? Lest they should make
-a claim.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Out of so small a service?” asked Paul incredulously.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Henriette smiled.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You have been lucky in your world,” she said.
-“The clients of the Villa Iris are not so generous.
-They will make a claim out of anything, as, by the
-way, most men will, if the claim may get them what
-they want. So that little one, since she will give herself
-to none of them, is wise to starve. You are the
-only one from whom she has taken food. It is curious,
-eh? It is because of that and because you treat me
-like a human being that I, Henriette, who like the
-little fool, ramble on so seriously to you to-night.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>The plastered face softened into tenderness and the
-bird-like eyes shone and filled suddenly with tears.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“It is kind of you,” said Paul. If any one had said
-to him a couple of hours before that he would have
-felt himself intensely privileged because a little dancing
-girl of the Villa Iris had taken supper from him
-and from him alone, he would have laughed his informant
-to scorn. But it was so. Paul was radiant
-with pride. He saw himself as a very fine fellow, a
-much finer fellow than he had ever believed himself
-to be. The loneliness of his boyhood, a sudden blow
-crushing his pride and his dreams in the dust, and
-years thereafter informed with a strong purpose to
-regain his name and his place in his own country, had
-combined to defer but had not slain his youth. It was
-back with him now, all the more ardent and dangerous
-from the restraint which had held it in check. Paul
-Ravenel was a boy of nineteen on this evening in the
-fire of his passion, but with the will and the experience
-of his own years; and he was old enough to hide any
-plans which he might be forming and to seek all the
-knowledge he could get from Henriette.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Why should she blow out her brains, as you say?”
-he asked, offering to Henriette a cigarette.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Because that is what she will do,” replied Henriette
-as she lighted her cigarette. “I know my world.
-Listen! My father kept a little eating-house at Rouen,
-where I saw many types of men. He went bankrupt.
-I went to dance in Paris. Oh, I was nothing out of
-the way. I danced in a quadrille at the Casino de
-Paris for a little time, then at the Bal Tabarin. I
-went to Madrid and Barcelona where I danced at the
-Lion d’Or, the restaurant which has no doors, for it
-is open night and day. And in the end I came here.
-Well, I tell you this. Fine dreams are for rich people.
-For us, if we are wise, we bury them out of sight the
-moment they are born. We will not think of them.
-We will not allow them. The rich have much which
-makes disappointment bearable. For us—we blow our
-brains out.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Whilst she spoke she kept darting little swift glances
-at her companion, as though she was practising on him
-some trivial diplomacy. She believed, in truth, every
-word she said. But since her philosophy was not
-Marguerite’s, if this man could give the girl a year or
-two of happiness, it would be something, at all events.
-But Paul sat and listened carelessly and answered not
-at all.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“See!” she cried. “When you spin the racquet for
-the choice of courts at the tennis, it is ‘rough’ or
-‘smooth,’ eh? Well, it is always rough with us and
-we lose the choice.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>She laughed at her trifle of a joke, and again her
-eyes glanced at Paul. But the clearer his purpose became
-to himself, the more impassive grew his face.
-Long ago he had learnt that lesson of defence. Henriette
-rose. She, at all events, was openly disappointed.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“So! I have talked to you long enough,” she said.
-The piano began once more its dreadful cacophany.
-“Ah, Marguerite is dancing with another of that band.
-He does not matter. You yourself will dance with her
-again to-night, isn’t it so?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul shook his head.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“No,” and as he saw Henriette’s face cloud over,
-he added, “she herself bade me keep away.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>The cloud passed at once. That was good news.
-There was an understanding between them, then, already.
-Henriette beamed.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I understand that,” she said in a whisper, “and I
-hope you understand it, too. Madame Delagrange is
-not very content that we dance much with the officers.
-She says they have no money.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul laughed. He would have loved to have seen
-Gerard de Montignac’s face if that remark had been
-made before him and to have heard his reply.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Not so much, certainly, as those gentlemen over
-there whom we have made rich. But enough, Mademoiselle
-Henriette, to thank a good friend.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>For a moment Henriette was puzzled. Then she
-looked down. Beside her empty glass lay a folded
-slip of paper. The broad band of purple told her the
-amount of the bank note. She leaned forward and
-spoke in a whisper.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“A thousand francs! It is a fortune to me! You
-understand that? I will take it, yes, with a thousand
-thanks, but it was not to get your money that I spoke
-to you.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I never thought it. If I had thought it, your surprise
-would have proved me wrong.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Henriette gathered the note in the palm of her hand
-and making a movement as if to take her handkerchief,
-slipped it secretly into her bosom. Another thought
-came to her.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You are really rich then! You could make a little
-home, a little safe home, where there would be no
-clients or patrons or starving. Oh, that would be different!”
-she said in a wondering voice. “I take back
-what I said about the end her grand passion would
-lead her to.” Henriette glanced again towards Marguerite.
-“She is chic, eh? She has style, the little
-one? An air of good breeding. Whence does it
-come? How is it that she has kept it?” Paul could
-have answered that question had he wished to. She
-had kept it because of her immense pride and self-respect,
-she had probably got it to keep, from the same
-source. Henriette looked from the girl dancing to
-the officer at the table.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“A little home, eh. If it could be!” she pleaded.
-Paul gazed at her with a smile upon his lips and in his
-eyes, but he did not answer her, and she flung away.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Oh, you are a box with the lid shut! Good-night,
-Monsieur!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Good-night, Mademoiselle Henriette.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>A few moments later Paul Ravenel followed Henriette
-into the Bar. He stopped before the counter
-where Madame Delagrange was vigorously wiping the
-wet rings made by the bottoms of the glasses from the
-light polished wood. She had always the duster in
-her hand, except when she was measuring out her
-drinks into the glasses, and very often then, and generally
-was at work with it.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“This is quite Maxim’s, Madam,” he said.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>The flattery had little effect. Madame barely paused
-in her polishing and smiled sourly.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“In that case I must see about raising my prices,
-Monsieur,” said she. No, clearly she did not like the
-officers. Paul went on to the door. Marguerite, seated
-with the Levantines, never looked at him, but just as
-he was going out she raised her glass to her lips with
-a little nod of her head, as though she drank a health
-to some absent friend, and her slow smile dawned and
-trembled on her lips.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>But the night was not yet over for Paul Ravenel.
-As he reached his house he heard his name called aloud
-and turning about saw his friend Gerard de Montignac
-hurrying towards him.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“There is news at last,” he said.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>The town had been full of rumours for many days.
-Certain things were known. It was certain, for instance
-that the tribes of the Beni-M’Tir, the Ait-Youssi
-and the Gerouan had actually pitched their tents on
-the plain of Fez and in full revolt against Mulai Hafid
-the Sultan, were pressing the city close. It was known
-too that a flying column purposely small in order to
-set at rest the distrust of the German Press and the
-opposition of politicians in Paris, had been assembled
-at Kenitra for a swift march to relieve the capital.
-This had been delayed by bad weather which had turned
-the flat country beyond Kenitra into a marsh.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>But there had been for days a continual disembarkation
-of fresh troops at Casablanca which pointed to
-operations on a wider scale. On this night the truth
-was out.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Come into the house and let me hear, Gerard,” said
-Paul, and opening his door he switched on the electric
-lights and led Gerard into a room.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Meknes has risen too. A new Sultan, Mulai Zine,
-the brother of Mulai Hafid has been proclaimed Sultan
-there. It is no longer to be a flying column which will
-camp for a few days under the walls of Fez and return.
-It is to be a great expedition. The whole camp at Ain-Bourdja
-is ringing with it to-night. I ran down to tell
-you.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“That was good of you, Gerard,” said Paul.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>There was a great contrast visible now between the
-two officers, the one excited and eager, the other playing
-with the switch of the standard lamp upon his
-table, and lost in thought.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I hear that my squadron is to go up in the first
-column under Colonel Brulard. You, of course, with
-your battalion will be wanted too.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I suppose so,” replied Paul slowly. “I should have
-liked to have finished this report before I go.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“The report can wait,” cried Gerard, “France can’t.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>The two friends talked late into the night. Paul
-gradually threw off the reticence with which he had at
-first answered De Montignac. They fell to debating
-the strength of the different columns, the line of march,
-whether through the forest of Zemmour or over the
-plain of the Sebou and by the Col of Segota, and who
-would command.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Brulard for the Advance Force,” said Gerard, “the
-General himself will follow.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“And Gouraud?” asked Paul.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes, yes, Gouraud. He couldn’t be left behind. It
-is said that he will have the supply column and follow
-a day or two behind Brulard.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“We shall know more about it to-morrow,” said
-Paul, and Gerard looked at his watch.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Do you know the time?” he said springing to his
-feet. “If we were in France now, we should see daylight.”
-He was in an emotional mood. He clapped
-his friend upon the shoulder. “We shall see one another
-again, my old one, before I start, no doubt. But
-if we don’t, and anything happens to either of us, well,
-it is good luck to the survivor.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>He shook hands with Paul and Paul let him out of
-the house.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul went back to the room. The eagerness with
-which he had discussed the technical details of the expedition
-fell from him as soon as he was alone. He
-sat down at his table and remained there until dawn
-at last did break over the town. But he was not at
-work upon his report. He had pushed it from him
-and sat with his face between the palms of his hands.</p>
-
-<div><h1 id='ch9'>CHAPTER IX</h1></div>
-
-<h3>Marguerite Lambert</h3>
-
-<p class='noindent'><span class='lead-in'><span class='dropcap'>T</span>he</span> rumours of the camp were proved true the
-next morning and the preparations for provisioning
-and concentrating so large a force
-were swiftly pushed forward. Gerard de Montignac
-was to march with his squadron in a week’s time by
-Rabat and Saller to Kenitra. Paul was to rejoin his
-battalion a few days later. Half of that battalion,
-Paul’s company included, was to form part of the
-escort of Colonel Gouraud’s huge supply column, which
-with its hundreds of camels was beginning to assemble
-at Meheydia at the mouth of the Sebou.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul was now a full Captain in command of that
-company of the Tirailleurs which he had led during
-the last engagements of the Chaiouïa campaign, and
-marked out by his superiors as an officer likely to reach
-the high ranks and responsibilities. He had still a few
-days of his leave and he spent the greater part of them
-in the careful revision of his report. Gerard de Montignac,
-on his side was engaged in the supervision of
-the equipment of his squadron and was busy from
-morning until night. Two or three times during the
-course of the week, he went down between nine and
-ten at night to the Villa Iris, and sat or danced for half
-an hour with Marguerite Lambert. But he never saw
-Paul Ravenel there and through the week the two
-friends did not meet except for a moment or two in the
-thronged streets.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Le grand serieux!” said Gerard, speaking of Paul
-to Marguerite Lambert with an affectionate mockery.
-“He will be a General when I am an old Major dyeing
-my moustache to make myself look young. But meanwhile,
-whilst we are both Captains, I should like to
-see more of him than I do. For, after all, we go out
-with our men—and one never knows who will come
-back.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Marguerite’s face lost its colour at his words and
-she drew in her breath sharply. “Oh, it is our business
-of course,” he continued, taking her sympathy to
-himself. “Do you know, Marguerite, that for a second,
-I though you had stirred that thick soup in Paul’s
-veins which he calls his blood? But no, he never comes
-here.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Marguerite laughed hurriedly, and asked at random,
-“You have seen him to-day?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes. He was coming out of a house close to the
-port with the agent who looks after his property, a
-little Italian. Paul was talking very earnestly and did
-not notice me. He has a good deal of property in
-Casablanca and was making his arrangements no
-doubt for a long absence.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Marguerite looked down at the table, tracing a pattern
-upon its surface with her finger. When she spoke
-again her voice broke upon her words and her lips
-quivered.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I shall lose all my friends this week,” she said.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Only us two,” said Gerard, consoling her.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“That’s what I mean,” she returned with a little
-smile, and Gerard de Montignac leaned forward.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Marguerite, I don’t go for a couple of days,” he
-said, lowering his voice to an eager whisper. “Let us
-make the best of them! Let me have the memory of
-two good days and nights to carry away with me, will
-you? Why not? My work is done. I could start off
-with my troops at six o’clock to-morrow instead of at
-six o’clock on the third morning. Give me the next
-two days.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Marguerite shook her head.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“No, my friend.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Gerard de Montignac knew nothing of that conversation
-which Henriette had held with Paul Ravenel on
-this spot a few nights before. He could but believe
-that Marguerite Lambert somehow found that dreadful
-gang of nondescripts with whom she foregathered
-more to her taste than he or his friend. She shone
-like a flower in this squalid haunt, a tired and drooping
-flower. It was extraordinary that she could endure
-this company for a moment, to say nothing of
-their embraces. But women, even the most delicate
-amongst them, would blindfold their eyes and stop their
-ears, and cease to appreciate both the look of their
-friends and the esteem in which they are held, if their
-interest prompted them. Gerard de Montignac rose
-angrily from his chair.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Of course poor devils of officers like myself can’t
-hope to compete with these rich Dagoes,” he said
-brutally. “We must console ourselves with reflecting
-that our efforts and dangers have made them rich.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Marguerite Lambert flushed scarlet at the insult, and
-then lowered her head.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I do not wish to speak to you again,” she said in a
-distinct low voice, and Gerard de Montignac stalked
-out of the Villa Iris.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>He was troubled by his recollection of the little
-scene during the next two days; sometimes falling into
-a remorse, and sometimes repeating his own words
-with bravado, and arguing that this was the proper
-way to speak; and always ending with a flood of heart-felt
-curses.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Damn all Dagoes and Levantines! There ought to
-be a special code for them. They ought to be made to
-take off their shoes when they meet us in the street.
-Those old Moors knew something! I’ll never see that
-girl again as long as I live. Luckily she’ll be gone by
-the time I come back to Casablanca. Henriette said
-she wouldn’t dance at the Villa Iris for long. No, I
-won’t see her again.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>He kept carefully away from the neighbourhood of
-the Villa for thirty-six hours. Then a post came in
-and was delivered throughout the camp at eight o’clock
-in the evening. Amongst the letters which Gerard de
-Montignac received was one written in English by a
-Colonel Vanderfelt in Sussex praying for news of
-Paul Ravenel. Gerard had enough English to perceive
-how much anxiety and affection had gone to the composition
-of that letter.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“It ought to be answered at once,” he said. “Paul
-must answer it.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Gerard looked at his watch. It was close upon nine
-now, and he was to parade at six in the morning. He
-must hand over that letter to Paul to-night. He could
-have sent it by the post very well, or he could have
-written an answer to Colonel Vanderfelt himself. But
-he took up his cap instead and walked down from Ain-Bourdja
-towards the town. Very likely he had some
-unacknowledged purpose at the back of his mind. For
-he found himself presently standing before the Villa
-Iris, though that house lay well out of the road between
-the camp and Paul Ravenel’s house by the seaward
-wall.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Well, since I am here,” he said, as though he had
-come to this spot quite by accident, “I may as well go
-in and make my peace with Marguerite Lambert.
-For all I know I may be quitting the world altogether
-very shortly, and why should I leave unnecessary
-enemies to hate my memory.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Thus he explained quite satisfactorily to himself his
-reason for entering and looking about him for Marguerite.
-But she was nowhere to be seen—no, not
-even amongst the Dagoes and the Levantines. She
-must be outside in the cool of the balcony beneath the
-roof of vines. But a glance there showed him that he
-was wrong. There was nothing for it but to approach
-the virago behind the Bar, who hotter and redder
-than ever on this night in early May, was
-polishing away at her counter and serving out the
-drinks.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Gerard ordered one and taking it from her hand,
-said carelessly:</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Mademoiselle Marguerite is not here to-night?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Madame Delagrange made a vicious dab with her
-duster and cried in an exasperation:</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Look, Monsieur! When she is here I have nothing
-but complaints. That little Marguerite! She holds
-her nose in the air as if we smelled. She looks at us
-as if we were animals at a circus—and she has nothing
-to be conceited about with her thin shoulders and
-tired face. Now she is gone, it is all the time—‘What
-have you done with our little Marguerite?’ Well, I
-have done nothing.” She turned to another customer.
-“For you, Monsieur? A bottle of champagne? Abdullah
-shall bring it to you.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Abdullah in his Turkish breeches was handed the
-dreadful decoction and Gerard de Montignac tried
-again:</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“She has left the Villa Iris altogether?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes, yes, yes. She has gone, that Miss Ni’Touche!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“And where has she gone?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>The harridan behind the Bar flung up her hands.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Saperlipoppette, how should I know, I ask you?
-I beg you, Monsieur, to allow me to serve my clients
-who do not think that because they have bought a
-whiskey-soda, they have become proprietors for the
-night of the Villa Iris.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>With an indignant nod she turned to some other
-customers. Gerard wandered out into the verandah,
-where he sat down rather heavily. He was more troubled
-than he would have thought possible. After all
-the disappearance of a little dancing girl from a Bar
-in a coast town of Morocco!—what was there to make
-a fuss about in that? That is the way of little dancing
-girls. They dance and they disappear, a question or
-two from you and me and the next man are as it were
-the ripples upon the pond, and then the surface is still
-once more.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>But Gerard de Montignac could not dismiss Marguerite
-Lambert with this easy philosophy. He remembered
-her too clearly, her slim grace, the promise
-of real beauty if only she had food enough, her anger
-with him two evenings ago, and above all the queer
-look of fatality set upon her like a seal. Marguerite
-Lambert gone! How and whither? One or two
-dreadful sentences spoken a fortnight ago in the mess
-by the Commandant Marnier were written in letters
-of flame upon his memory. Casablanca was the last
-halting place but one in the ghastly pilgrimage of these
-poor creatures. The last of all—he shuddered to think
-of it. To picture Marguerite Lambert amongst its
-squalors was a sacrilege. Yet she had gone—she had
-moved on! There was the appalling fact.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>He saw Henriette strolling a little way off between
-the tables. He beckoned eagerly to her. She looked
-at him doubtfully, then with a mutinous air and a toss
-of the head she strolled towards him.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You want to speak to me? You were not very polite
-the last time.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I will atone for my discourtesy to-night, Mademoiselle
-Henriette.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Henriette was induced to take a chair and order a
-drink.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Gerard believed that he must practise some diplomacy
-with this fiery creature if he was to get the truth
-from her, but as a fact he had not to put one question.
-For Henriette had hardly begun to sip her whiskey
-and soda before she said:</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“The little Marguerite! She has been sent away.
-I am sorry. I told you—didn’t I?—that she wouldn’t
-stay here long.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Sent away?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Henriette nodded.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“By Madame?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Last night?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes. After all the guests had gone. But what a
-scene! Oh, la, la, la! I was frightened I can tell you.
-So were we all. We hid in the little room there off
-the Bar, where we dress, and listened through the
-crack of the door. But a scene! It was terrible.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Tell me!” said Gerard.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Henriette twitched her chair into the table with an
-actual excitement. She was really and deeply distressed
-for Marguerite. But for the moment her distress
-was forgotten. The joy of the story teller had
-descended upon her.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“It was the Greek over there, Petras Tetarnis,” she
-began. “He was mad for Marguerite and she wouldn’t
-have anything to do with him. So he got her turned
-away. See how drunk he is to-night. How proud of
-his fine revenge on a little girl who asked for nothing
-more than permission to earn her seven francs a night
-in peace.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“She wouldn’t have anything to say to him!” Gerard
-protested. “Why, she was always at that table where
-he sits.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes. Because he is the real owner of the Villa
-Iris. Madame is no more than his servant. So Marguerite,
-since she wished to stay here, must be friendly
-to him. But Petras was not content with friendliness
-and last night when your friend came in—”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“My friend,” interrupted Gerard de Montignac.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes, the one with the yellow hair and the long legs
-and the face that tells you nothing at all.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Paul! He was here last night!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes. Oh, he has come here more than once during
-the last week, but very late and for a few minutes. He
-goes straight to that table and takes Marguerite away,
-as if he were the master; and somehow they all sit
-dumb as if they were the lackeys. Imagine it, Monsieur!
-All of them very noisy and boisterous and
-then—a sudden silence and the yellow-headed Captain
-walking away with Marguerite Lambert as if they did
-not exist. It used to make the rest of us laugh, but
-they—they were furious with humiliation and when, a
-little time afterwards, the Captain had gone—oh, how
-bold they were! They would pull his nose for him the
-next time, they would teach him how gentlemen behave—oh,
-yes, yes! But it was always the next time that
-these fine lessons would be given.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Gerard de Montignac nodded his head.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I know the breed.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Henriette described how Paul Ravenel had entered
-the Bar a little after midnight. He had taken Marguerite
-Lambert away, danced a round or two, and
-given her some supper; and whilst she ate, Petras
-Tetarnis emboldened by drink and the encouragement
-of his friends had left his table and begun to prowl
-backwards and forwards behind Paul Ravenel’s back,
-nodding and winking at his associates and muttering
-to himself. Paul had taken no notice, but Marguerite
-had stopped eating and sat in terror watching him over
-Paul’s shoulder like a bird fascinated by a snake.
-Tetarnis drew nearer and nearer with each turn, Marguerite
-sat twisting her hands and imploring Paul to
-go away and leave her. She was speaking in English
-and in a whisper so that Henriette could not repeat the
-words. But it was easy enough to translate them. “It
-is for my sake,” she was saying. “It is for my sake.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>But Paul would not listen; and with a little helpless
-flutter of her frail hands Marguerite sank back in
-her chair. There would be a disturbance, very possibly
-a fight. Once more she was to be the Helen of a
-squalid Iliad and the result would be what it always
-had been. She would move on—and this time there
-was no whither she could move. She had come to the
-end.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I could read the despair in her eyes, in the utter
-abandonment of her body,” said Henriette, but there
-had been much at that moment in Marguerite Lambert’s
-thoughts which Henriette could not read at all.
-The passionate dream of her life was dying, as she sat
-there. She had come to the end. It would have no
-chance of fulfilment now. Where to-morrow, could
-she find the great love waiting for her? It had made
-her life possible, it had given her strength to endure
-the squalor of her lodging and her companions, and
-the loss of all that daintiness and order which mean so
-much to women. It had given her wit to defend herself
-against the approaches of her courtiers, and the
-self-respect which kept her with the manners of one
-of gentlest birth. Nearer and nearer drew Petras
-Tetarnis until he bumped against Paul’s chair, and then
-very quickly and quietly Paul rose to his feet.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>A stifled prayer burst from Marguerite’s trembling
-lips. Then she covered her face with her hands and
-closed her ears with her thumbs. But there was no
-disturbance at all.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“The Captain Paul took Petras by the elbow and
-looking down upon him talked to him as one talks to
-a child. I could hear what he said. ‘You are terrifying
-this lady. You must not behave like this in public
-places. You must go back to your place and sit very
-quietly or you must go home.’ And Petras went.
-Yes, without a word, as if he had been whipped he
-went back to his chair amongst his friends. But, I
-tell you, Monsieur, his eyes had all hell in them! And
-after a little, very cautiously, as if he was afraid lest
-the Captain Paul should notice him he crept to the
-counter and talked very earnestly with Madame.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“What was he saying?” asked Gerard de Montignac.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I could not hear at all. I dared not even try to
-listen. I went to the table where Marguerite and her
-friend were sitting. Marguerite was imploring him
-to go away. I agreed with her. The storm was over.
-It was better for Marguerite’s sake that he should go
-away quietly now without any fuss.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“And he went?” asked Gerard.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Not at first,” returned Henrietta. “No, he was
-stubborn. He was thinking of his pride, as men do,
-not of the poor women who suffer by it. But at last—it
-seemed that some idea came into his head, some
-thought which made him smile—he consented. He paid
-his bill and walked, neither quickly nor slowly through
-the Bar and out by the passage into the street. And
-so the people settled down, and the trouble seemed at
-an end.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>And so until the closing of the Bar it was. As a
-rule the visitors had all gone by two o’clock in the
-morning; and this particular night was no exception.
-It was the practice as soon as the room was empty for
-Madame Delagrange to pay the girls their seven francs
-apiece at the counter. Then they crossed into the little
-dressing room, changed their clothes and went out
-into the lane by the street door, which was locked behind
-them. On this night, however, Madame Delagrange
-kept Marguerite Lambert to the last.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You others can run away and get off your clothes.
-I want to have a little talk by myself with this delicate
-Miss Touch-me-not,” she said, lolling over the counter
-with a wicked leer on her coarse red face and licking
-her lips over her victim. The others were very glad
-to hurry away and leave the old harridan and Marguerite
-alone in the gaudily tiled, brightly lit room. They
-kept the door of the dressing room ajar, so that they
-could both see and hear what took place. But for a
-minute or two Madame Delagrange contented herself
-with chuckling and rubbing her fat hands together and
-looking Marguerite up and down from head to foot
-and almost frightening the girl out of her wits. Marguerite
-stood in front of the counter looking in her
-short dancing skirt like a schoolgirl awaiting punishment.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“So this is how we repay kindnesses!” Madame Delagrange
-began, slowly wetting her lips with her tongue.
-According to Henriette she was exactly like an ogress
-in a picture book savouring in anticipation the pretty
-morsel she meant to devour for supper. “We make
-troubles and inconveniences for the kind old fool of
-a woman who lets us sing our little songs in her Bar
-and dance with her clients and who pays us generously
-into the bargain. We won’t help her at all to keep the
-roof over her head. We treat her rich clients like mud.
-Only the beautiful officers are good enough for us!
-Bah! And we are virtuous too! Oh, he, he, he! Yes,
-but virtue isn’t bread and butter, my little one. So
-here’s an address.” She took a slip of paper from the
-shelf behind her and pushed it towards Marguerite.
-Marguerite took a step forward to the counter and
-picked up the paper.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“What am I to do with this, Madame?” she asked
-in perplexity.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You are to go to that address, Mademoiselle.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“To-morrow?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Now, little fool!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Why?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“He is waiting for you.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Marguerite shrank back, her face white as paper,
-her great eyes wide with horror.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Who?” she asked in a whisper.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Petras Tetarnis.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Madame Delagrange nodded her head at Marguerite
-with an indignant satisfaction.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Off you go! We shall be a little more modest, to-morrow
-evening, eh? We shan’t look at everybody
-as if they would dirty our little slippers if we stepped
-on them. Come, take your seven francs and hurry
-off. Or,” and she thrust out her lips savagely, “never
-come back to the Villa Iris.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Marguerite stood and stared at the paper in her
-hands.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You can’t mean it, Madame.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Madame snorted contemptuously.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Make your choice, little one. I want to go to bed.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Marguerite folded the paper and with the tears running
-down her cheeks slowly tore it across and across
-and let the fragments flutter down to the floor. Madame
-Delagrange uttered an oath and then let loose
-upon the girl such a flood of vile abuse, that even those
-hiding behind the door of the dressing room had never
-heard the like of it.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Out with you,” she said, spitting upon the ground
-and sweeping the seven francs off the counter towards
-Marguerite, so that they rolled and spun and rattled
-upon the floor. “Pick up your money and get your
-rags together and march! Quick now!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>She lolled over the counter screaming with laughter
-as Marguerite ran hither and thither seeking through
-her blinding tears for the coins, stooping and picking
-them up. “There’s another somewhere,” the old harridan
-cried, holding her fat sides. “Seek! Seek!
-Good dog! It takes ten years off my life to see the
-haughty Miss Touch-me-not running about after her
-pennies.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Marguerite had got to retrieve them all. In the
-dreadful penury in which she lived, a single franc had
-the importance of gold. So she ran about the room,
-searched under tables and chairs and in the corners.
-The seven francs were all her capital. They stood between
-her and death by hunger. She must go on her
-knees and peer through the veil of her tears for the last
-of them. Even the women behind the door, hardened
-though they were, felt the humiliation of that scene in
-the marrow of their bones, felt it as something horrible
-and poignant and disturbing. As soon as Marguerite
-had picked up her money, Madame Delagrange shuffled
-out from behind her counter.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Now come along with me. I mean to see that you
-don’t take away what doesn’t belong to you.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>She took the weeping girl by the elbow and pushed
-her along in front of her to the dressing room. Then
-she stood over her whilst she changed into her street
-dress and put up her dancing kit in a bundle.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Do you miss anything, girls?” Madame Delagrange
-asked with her heavy-handed irony and indeed with
-an evident hope that one of them would miss something
-and the police could be sent for. But all of
-them were quick to say no, though not one of them had
-the courage to take Marguerite by the hand and wish
-her good luck in the face of the old blowsy termagant.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Very well then!” and Madame Delagrange took a
-step towards Marguerite who shrank back as if she
-expected a blow. Madame Delagrange laughed heartily
-at the girl’s face, rejoicing to see her so cowed and
-broken.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Come here,” she said with a grim sort of pleasantry
-and she grinned and beckoned with her finger.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Marguerite faltered across the room, and the big
-woman took her prisoner again and marched her out
-through the Bar onto the verandah.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“There! You can go out by the garden and a good
-riddance to you!” Madame Delagrange banged to
-the big doors behind Marguerite Lambert and bolted
-them, leaving her with her bundle in her hand standing
-on the boards beneath the roof of vines.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“That’s the last we saw of her. Poor kid!” said
-Henriette. “If she hadn’t been such a little fool! Do
-you know that for a moment or two I hoped that your
-friend—”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Paul,” Gerard de Montignac interrupted with a nod
-of his head. “I also—for a moment or two. But
-women don’t mean much to Paul.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Henriette laughed bitterly, wondering to what man
-women did mean anything at all. In her experience
-she had never run across them.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I am afraid for that little one,” she said, her
-thoughts coming back to Marguerite. “You know
-what happened? Her little bundle was found on the
-balcony this morning. The knot had broken, and her
-dancing dress, her slippers, her silk stockings were lying
-scattered on the boards. She just left them where
-they fell. You see, they were her stock-in-trade. She
-had brought them over with her from France and she
-has no money to replace them with. I am afraid.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Gerard de Montignac was conscious of a chill of
-fear too. He recognised the significance of the abandonment
-of that bundle. The knot had burst, as Marguerite
-stood on the verandah, the doors shut behind
-her, the dark garden in front of her. She had not
-thought it worth while to gather her poor trifles of
-finery together again. Their use was over. Whither
-had she gone? Was she alive now? Had those roaring
-breakers on the coast drawn her into their embrace
-and beaten her to death upon the rocks and the sands?</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Where does she lodge?” he asked sharply.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I don’t know,” answered Henriette. “None of us
-know. She would never tell. I think that she had
-some poor little room of which she was ashamed. With
-her seven francs a day, she could have nothing else.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I must find out,” cried Gerard, and then he struck
-his fist upon the table. “But I can’t find out. I march
-at six o’clock to-morrow morning for Fez.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Your friend then,” Henriette suggested eagerly.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Paul!” replied Gerard. “Yes. He has a few days
-still in Casablanca. He has compassion, he will help.
-I know him.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Henriette’s face lightened a little.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“But he must be quick, very quick,” she urged. “You
-will see him to-night?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I will go to him now,” and Gerard remembered
-the letter in his pocket from Colonel Vanderfelt. “I
-was indeed on my way to him when I came here.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Gerard looked at his watch. It was half past ten.
-He had stayed longer than he had intended at the Villa
-Iris.</p>
-
-<div><h1 id='ch10'>CHAPTER X</h1></div>
-
-<h3>Colonel Vanderfelt’s Letter</h3>
-
-<p class='noindent'><span class='lead-in'><span class='dropcap'>G</span>erard</span> de Montignac found Paul still
-up and putting the last words to the report of
-long and solitary wanderings amongst the inland
-tribes. The report was to be despatched the next
-morning to the Bureau des Affaires Indigènes at Rabat,
-and Gerard waited in patience until the packet was
-sealed up. Then he burst out with his story of what
-had taken place on the night before at the Villa Iris.
-Paul listened without an interruption, but his face grew
-white with anger and his eyes burned, as he heard of
-Madame Delagrange’s coarse abuse and Marguerite’s
-tears and humiliations.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“So you see, Paul, it was your fault in a way,”
-Gerard urged. “Of course sooner or later Petras
-Tetarnis—damn his soul!—would have presented his
-ultimatum, as he did last night, but you were the occasion
-of it being done.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes,” Paul agreed.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Then you must find her. You must do what you
-can, send her home, give her a chance. I’ll start searching
-myself this very night. But you have more time
-and better means of discovering her.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul had knocked about Casablanca as a boy. He
-had many friends amongst the natives, and was accustomed
-to sit with them by the hour, drinking mint
-tea and exchanging jokes. He was a man of property
-besides in that town and could put out a great many
-feelers in different quarters.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I have no doubt that I can discover where she is,”
-he said, “if she is still in Casablanca.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Where else can she be unless it’s in the sea!” cried
-Gerard. “But remember you have got to be quick.
-She had only the seven francs. God knows what has
-become of her!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>He stood gazing at the lamp as if he could read her
-whereabouts in that white flame as the gifted might do
-in a crystal; with his cap tilted on the back of his head
-and a look of grave trouble upon his face.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I’ll find her, never fear,” said Paul Ravenel, touching
-his friend upon the arm. “And what I can do to
-keep her from harm that I will do.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Gerard responded to the friendliness and the assurance
-in Paul’s voice. He shook off his dejection.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Thank you, mon vieux,” he said and held out his
-hand. “Well, we shall meet in Fez.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>He had reached the door before he remembered the
-primary reason for his visit.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“By the way, I have a letter about you from some
-one in England, a Colonel Vanderfelt. Yes, he is anxious
-for news of you. He wrote to me because in
-your letters to him you had more than once spoken of
-me as your friend.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>A shadow darkened Paul’s face as he listened, and
-a look of pain came into his eyes. He took the letter
-from Gerard.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Have you answered it, Gerard?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“No. It only reached me to-night. I must leave
-that to you.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Right.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>The door-keeper let Gerard out and he tramped
-through the now silent and empty streets the length
-of the town to the Market Gate; and so to his quarters
-in the camp at Ain-Bourdja. Some years were to pass
-before the two friends met again.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul stood for a long time just as Gerard had left
-him with Colonel Vanderfelt’s letter in his hand. The
-fragrance of an English garden seemed to him to
-sweeten this Moorish room. Though the lattices were
-wide open, he heard no longer the thunder of the great
-breakers upon the shore. The letter was magical and
-carried him back on this hot night of May to a country
-of cool stars. The garden, he remembered, would be
-white with lilac, the tulips would be in flower, the rhododendrons
-masses of red and mauve, against the house
-the wisteria would be hanging in purple clusters. And
-in the drawing room some very kindly people might at
-this moment be counting the date on which they could
-expect an answer to this letter.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Well, the answer would never come.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“All those pleasant dreams are over,” thought Paul.
-“They have not heard from me for more than a year.
-Let the break be complete!” and with a rather wistful
-smile he tore the letter into shreds. Then he went out
-and turning into a street by the sea-wall came to that
-house from which Gerard de Montignac had seen him
-and his agent depart three days before. A lattice was
-open on the first floor and from a wide window a
-golden flood of light poured out upon the night. Paul
-whistled gently and then waited at the door. It was
-thrown open in a few seconds, just time enough for
-some one to run down the stairs and open it. Paul
-stepped into a dark passage and a pair of slender arms
-closed about his neck and drew his face down.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Marguerite, why didn’t you tell me how that
-venomous old harridan treated you?” he whispered.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Marguerite Lambert laughed with a note of utter
-happiness which no one had heard from her for a long
-while.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“My dear, what did it matter any longer;” and
-clinging to him passionately, she pressed her lips to
-his.</p>
-
-<p class='line0' style='text-align:center;margin-top:1em;margin-bottom:1em;'>*&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;*&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;*&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;*&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;*</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul could have added a postscript to Henriette’s
-story, as Gerard de Montignac had told it to him, if he
-had so willed. For when Marguerite Lambert stood
-alone on that verandah, her bundle in her hand, a figure
-had risen up out of the darkness of the garden and
-stepped onto the boards. She recoiled at the first moment
-in terror, and her bundle slipped from her hand
-and scattered its contents.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Marguerite,” the man whispered, and with a wild
-throb of her heart she knew it was Paul Ravenel who
-was speaking to her.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You! You!” she said in so low a voice that, though
-he stood at her side, the words only reached his ears
-like a sigh. “Oh!” and her arms were about his shoulders,
-her hands tightly clasped behind his head, and
-her tear-stained cheeks pressed close against the breast
-of his tunic. He tried to lift her face, but she would
-not let him.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“No! No!” she whispered. He could feel her
-bosom rising and falling, and hear the sobs bursting
-from her throat. Then she flung up her face.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“My dear! My dear! I was hoping that some sudden
-thing would kill me, because I couldn’t do it myself.
-And then—you are here!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>She drew herself from his arms, and not knowing
-what she did she kneeled and began to gather together
-her scattered belongings. Paul Ravenel laughed and
-stooping, lifted her up.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You won’t want those things any more, my dear,”
-and with his arm about her he led her from the garden
-through the quiet streets to this house by the sea-wall
-which had been got ready against her coming.</p>
-
-<div><h1 id='ch11'>CHAPTER XI</h1></div>
-
-<h3>A Dilemma</h3>
-
-<p class='noindent'><span class='lead-in'><span class='dropcap'>I</span>t</span> was the sixteenth day of April in the following
-year. The dawn broke over Fez sullen and unfriendly
-as the mood of the city. And all through
-the morning the clouds grew heavier. Many watched
-them with anxiety through that forenoon: the French
-Mission which was to set out on the morrow, on its
-return to Rabat with the treaty of the Protectorate of
-Morocco signed and sealed in its pocket; Mulai Hafid
-himself, now for these many months Sultan, who was
-to travel with the Mission, on his way to Paris; various
-high dignitaries of state, who though outwardly
-wreathed in smiles and goodwill had prepared a little
-surprise for the Mission in one of the passes on its
-line of march to the coast; and various young officers
-of the escort who after ten months of garrison duty
-outside Fez welcomed a chance of kicking up their
-heels for a week or two in the cafés of the coast towns.
-Like conversation before dinner, all these arrangements
-depended on the weather.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>At twelve o’clock Mulai Hafid gave a farewell luncheon
-to the Mission in his great Palace in Fez Djedid;
-and after luncheon he conducted his guests to a Pavilion
-looking upon a wide open space called Mechouar.
-They had hardly reached the Pavilion before a storm
-burst with all the violence of the tropics. The Pavilion
-was like everything else in Morocco. It had never
-been finished when it was new, and never repaired
-when it was old; and very soon, the rain breaking
-through the flimsy roof had driven the guests from
-the first floor to the chamber of audience below, and
-was splashing down the stairs in a cascade. A general
-discomfort prevailed. Mulai Hafid himself was in a
-difficult mood. To one French Commissioner of importance
-who apologized to him because a certain General,
-lately promoted from Colonel, had not yet had
-time to procure the insignia of his new rank, Mulai
-Hafid replied dryly:</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“The sooner he gets them the better. He’ll want
-them all to protect him before he has done.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>And a little later when the Head of the Mission,
-with whom he was playing chess, indiscreetly objected
-to the Sultan moving surreptitiously one of his knights
-with a latitude not authorised by the rules, he turned
-in vexation to a Kaid of his friends and said: “See
-what I have come to! I can no longer even move my
-own cavalry as I please, without the consent of his
-Excellency and the French.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Altogether it was an uneasy luncheon party. Alone
-Paul Ravenel was content. He was on duty with the
-Mission and all the morning his face had been as
-cloudy as the sky because the storm did not break.
-Now he stood at a window of the upper room, sheltering
-himself as best he might from the leaks of the
-roof and smiled contentedly. Lieutenant Praslin, who
-a year before had trumpeted the praises of Marguerite
-Lambert in the mess at Ain-Bourdja, stood at his elbow.
-Praslin commanded now a platoon in Paul’s company
-and held his chief in awe. But annoyance spurred
-him to familiarity.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You are amused, my old one, are you?” he enquired.
-“We are of the escort to-morrow. We shall
-swim through mud. The banks of the rivers will be as
-slippery as a skating rink. We shall have horses and
-camels tumbling about and breaking our necks. We
-shall have ladies in the party too. And you are
-amused! Name of a name, you have a sense of humour,
-my Captain.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I laugh,” replied Paul, “because if the rain continues,
-we shan’t go at all.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“And you don’t want to go! To arrive safely at
-Rabat with the Mission, it might easily mean your
-step.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>That Paul should despise the indifferent gaieties of
-Rabat and Casablanca—that was understood. He was
-the serious one, destined for the high commands. But
-here was opportunity and Paul Ravenel had been quick
-to seize upon opportunity. There had been a pretty
-little fight between Kenitra and Segota when Paul
-was in command of the Advance Guard of Colonel
-Gouraud’s convoy; and Paul had fought his little battle
-with a resourceful skill which had brought his name
-into the orders of the day. He had been for ten
-months now in command of his Company at the great
-camp of Dar-Debibagh, four kilometres out of Fez.
-These were days of rapid promotion in an army where
-as a rule promotion was slow. A successful march to
-Rabat might well make him Commandant and give
-him his battalion. Yet the look upon his face, as he
-watched the sheets of rain turning the plain of the
-Mechouar into a marsh, was the look of a man—no,
-not relieved, but reprieved—yes, actually reprieved,
-thought the Lieutenant Praslin.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Below them in the chamber of audience the Chiefs
-of the Mission were at this moment debating the postponement
-of the journey and they came quickly to the
-only possible decision. The departure was put off for
-three days.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“We shall go then, however,” said Praslin, when this
-decision was announced. “The escort is made up.
-There will be no change.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I wonder,” Paul Ravenel replied. “In three days
-a man may learn wisdom. The Mission may after all
-wait until a sufficient force is assembled to protect it
-properly and then the whole personnel of the escort
-may be changed.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Oh, those stories!” cried Praslin contemptuously.
-He had the official mind which looks upon distrust of
-official utterances as something next to sacrilege. And
-official utterances had been busy of late. There was
-no truth, they declared stoutly, in those stories that the
-Maghzen, the Government itself, was stirring up disaffection
-and revolt behind the back of the Mission.
-Very likely the people of Fez were saying that the
-Sultan was the prisoner of the French, that he was
-being taken to Rabat and Paris to be exhibited triumphantly
-as a captive; but the people of Fez were
-born gossips and there was no danger in their talk.
-Had not the Grand Vizier himself pledged his word
-that the country was quiet? Thus the official mind.
-Thus too, consequently, Lieutenant Praslin, who was
-very anxious to see life as it is lived in the coast towns.
-And if the Intelligence Division and some soldiers who
-had spent years in the country took a different view,
-why, soldiers were always alarmists and foolish people
-and it was waste of time to listen to them.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul rode back through the rain with Lieutenant
-Praslin to the camp at Dar-Debibagh when the reception
-was over. They went by the Bab Segma and the
-bridge over the Fez River. The track was already a
-batter of mud above the fetlocks of their horses. At
-seven o’clock, however, the rain ceased and Paul,
-changing into a dry uniform, went into Praslin’s tent.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I am dining with a friend of mine in Fez,” he said,
-“and I shall not be back until late.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“The battalion parade’s at six in the morning,”
-Praslin reminded him. “The order has not been
-countermanded.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I know,” answered Paul. “I shall be on duty of
-course”; and mounting his horse he rode again into the
-city.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>He rode back by the way he had come and just
-within the Bab Segma he met four Moors mounted
-upon mules richly caparisoned, and themselves wearing
-robes of a spotless white. They were clearly men
-of high rank and one rode a little in advance of the
-others. As Paul drew closer to them he recognised
-this man as the Minister of War and one of the most
-important dignitaries of the Maghzen. Paul saluted
-him and to his amazement the Minister did not return
-the salute but turned to one of his companions with a
-dishonouring word.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Djiffa!” he said contemptuously, and spat on the
-ground. Paul took no notice of the insult. But if he
-had needed proof of the stories which the official mind
-refused to entertain, here it was openly avowed. Very
-likely the postponement of the Mission’s departure
-had upset the precious plans of the Maghzen and the
-Minister of War was showing his displeasure. The
-point of importance to Paul was that he should dare
-to show it so openly. That could but imply very complete
-plans for an ambuscade in force on the road of
-the Mission to the coast, and a very complete confidence
-as to the outcome.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul began to think of his own affairs.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Suppose that the Mission and its escort is destroyed,”
-he reflected. “I have left nothing to chance.
-No! The blow must fall as lightly as I can make possible.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>He enumerated one by one the arrangements which
-he had made and recalled the wording of his instructions
-to his solicitors and agents.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“No, I can think of nothing else,” he concluded.
-He had this final request for help to make to-night, and
-he was very sure that he would not make it in vain.
-“No,—whatever money can do to lighten the blow—that
-has been done. And money can do much assuredly.
-Only—only”—and he admitted to himself
-at last with a little shiver, a dark thought which he had
-hitherto driven off—“she is just the kind of girl who
-might commit suttee.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>He rode along the main street into the quarter of
-Tala. It was a street always narrow, but sometimes
-so narrow that if two mules met they could hardly
-pass. High walls of houses without any windows
-made it a chasm rather than a street. At rare intervals
-it widened into a “place” or square, where a
-drinking fountain stood or a bridge crossed a stream.
-It was paved with broken cobble stones with a great
-rut in the middle where the feet of the mules and
-horses had broken down to the brown earth beneath;
-and here and there a slippery mill-stone on which the
-horse skidded, had been let in to the cobbles by way
-of repair. It climbed steeply and steeply fell, and in
-places the line of houses was broken by a high garden
-wall above which showed orange trees laden with their
-fruit and bougainvillæa climbing.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>At times he passed under an archway where the
-street was built over above his head and huge solid
-doors stood back against the walls on either hand, that
-one quarter might be shut off from another during the
-night, or in times of trouble. On his right hand a
-number of alleys led into the Souk-ben-Safi and the
-maze of Fez-el-Bali. Into one of these alleys Paul
-turned and stopped in front of a big house with an
-imposing door studded with nails, and a stone by which
-to mount a horse.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>He dismounted and knocked upon the door. To
-his surprise, it was not at once thrown open. He
-looked about him. There was no servant waiting to
-take his horse in charge. If there had been a mistake!
-Paul’s heart sank at the thought. Suppose that his
-friend Si El Hadj Arrifa, on whom so much now might
-depend, had been called away from his home? But
-that couldn’t be—surely! However peremptory the
-summons had been, so punctilious a personage as Si
-El Hadj Arrifa would have found a moment wherein
-to put off his expected guest. Yet if nevertheless it
-were so .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. !</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul Ravenel felt the weighty letter under his tunic
-and gazed at the blank wall of the great house with
-troubled eyes. Oh, he must talk with his friend to-night!
-In three days the Mission and its escort were
-to start. He might not get another chance. He redoubled
-his blows upon the door and at last he heard
-a key turn in the lock and a clatter as the wooden
-cross-bars were removed.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>That sound completed his uneasiness. He had ridden
-through the city thinking of his own affairs, his
-eyes in blinkers. Now tracing his steps in memory,
-he recalled that the streets had been strangely quiet,
-strangely empty. And here at the end of his journey
-was this hospitable house barricaded against an invited
-guest.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Oh, no,” he said, seeking to reassure himself, “the
-danger’s out there in the ‘bled,’ on the way to the
-coast, not here in the town.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>But a picture rose before his mind of four notable
-Moors in milk-white robes mounted on mules with
-trappings of scarlet and silver who sneered openly at
-the uniform and spat. Paul Ravenel was frightened
-now. If it was not only in the “bled” that danger
-threatened, then all his careful letters and arrangements
-were worth just as much as the cobble stones
-underneath his feet.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>The door was open at last and as a servant took
-Paul’s horse by the bridle and led it away to a stable,
-Paul hurried impatiently into the house. But he was
-no more impatient than the servant who closed and
-bolted the door behind him; and in the passage he saw
-a small troop of attendants, every one of them armed
-and at the entrance from the passage into the central
-court Si El Hadj Arrifa himself with a face of fear
-and in the attitude of a man poised for flight.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>But when he caught sight of the gold lace upon
-Paul’s uniform, the Moor’s expression changed to surprise
-and surprise in its turn to a smile of welcome. Si
-El Hadj Arrifa was a stout man, fair like so many of
-the Fasi, with a fringe of beard round his fat face. He
-was dressed in a silken shirt with an overgarment of
-pink tissue under his white djellaba and his hands were
-as well-kept as a woman’s. He wore a fine white haik
-over his turban and fez.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I am afraid that you didn’t expect me,” said Paul.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Your Excellency is always welcome,” replied Si
-El Hadj Arrifa. “Our poor little meal is ready.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>But it was not ready and Paul’s uneasiness increased.
-He knew, however, that he would hear nothing until
-hospitality was satisfied of its ceremonies and then
-only by a roundabout road. He was led into a room
-opening by means of a wide archway onto the court.
-In one corner of the room stood a big modern brass
-bedstead. It was an ornament and a decoration, nothing
-more. For sleep, cushions upon the tiled floor
-were used. Round the wall there were a great number
-of clocks, Grandfather clocks, heavy Victorian clocks
-of ormolu, clocks of marble, most of them ticking away
-but registering quite different hours, and on the tiled
-floor stood two branched candlesticks of shining silver
-with the candles burning. Thick cushions were
-stretched upon the tiles about the candles and upon
-them Paul and his host took their seats.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Si El Hadj Arrifa was a personage in Fez, a man of
-influence in politics and of great wealth. He had visited
-Manchester more than once, to buy cotton goods
-and he talked of that town whilst they waited for
-dinner.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“They have good dentists,” he said.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul looked at this soigné and dainty gentleman in
-the fine setting of his beautiful house, and smiled to
-think of the figure he must cut in Manchester. He
-probably wore a black gown like a gabardine and
-elastic sided boots over white woollen socks and lived
-in a small room in a dingy street. But Si El Hadj
-Arrifa fell soon into an uneasy silence and sat listening
-with his head cocked as if he expected some sound
-from the city without to ring out over the open square
-in the roof above the court. A fountain was playing
-in the centre of the court in honour of the visitor, but
-the Moor called to a servant to turn it off, since the
-splash and tingle of the water so filled the ears that
-they could apprehend nothing else.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Dinner was brought in at last by a couple of
-negresses and Paul must eat of each course beginning
-with sweetmeats, and ranging through a couscouss, a
-roasted leg of mutton and a stuffed chicken. Paul put
-his right hand into the dish and tore at the meat in
-the due fashion and accepted tit-bits from the fingers
-of his host. Some orange water was brought for him
-to drink, and when the long meal was over one of the
-negresses brought them a ewer and soap and poured
-water over their hands whilst they washed them.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes, they have good dentists in Manchester,” said
-Si El Hadj Arrifa and, taking a complete set of shining
-teeth from his mouth, he washed them and polished
-them and replaced them.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“They seem to have very good dentists there,” said
-Paul with befitting gravity.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>A silver tea kettle was brought and a silver spirit
-lamp, and Si El Hadj Arrifa brewed two little cups of
-heavily sweetened green tea and flavoured it with mint.
-But even while engaged upon this important work, he
-still kept his head cocked a little on one side, as though
-he still listened for some dreaded yet expected sound.
-And when he handed the cup to Paul, it rattled in the
-saucer.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Nothing on this evening had so startled Paul
-Ravenel. His heart jumped within his breast. Si El
-Hadj Arrifa was not merely disturbed. His hand was
-shaking. He was desperately afraid. He drew a
-breath and leaned forward to speak and Ravenel said
-to himself with relief. “At last! It is coming.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>But he was wrong. His host only enquired whether
-Paul had ever visited America.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“No,” he answered.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“A man in Manchester told me that they had a way
-there of stuffing turkeys which was very good. But
-they used oysters for it and of course so far from the
-sea we can get none at Fez.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Some day there will be a railway,” said Paul consolingly.
-Si El Hadj Arrifa made another brew of
-tea, this time suspending in the brew a little lump of
-ambergris to flavour it.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I must begin,” thought Paul, as he took his cup.
-He felt for the big letter in his tunic but before he
-could take it from his breast his host spoke in a low,
-quiet tone, words which at first seemed of little more
-importance than any which had been spoken before,
-and afterwards were able to set Paul’s heart fluttering.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I sent a messenger this evening to you at the camp
-at Dar-Debibagh.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“He missed me,” replied Paul.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“It is a pity.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Why?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I sent him to warn you not to come into Fez to-night.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Why?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You are my friend. There is danger.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“But outside the city,” cried Paul, “from the tribes—after
-we have marched.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Here in Fez too,” Si El Hadj Arrifa insisted in a
-voice which now frankly shook with terror. “For you
-and all of your creed that dwell in this city.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul was already on his feet, his face and his eyes
-set in a stare of horror. Si El Hadj Arrifa quite misunderstood
-the French officer’s manner. He said
-soothingly:</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You shall stay in my house till it is all over.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“All over?” Paul repeated. He took his hand from
-the bulky letter in his tunic. If the dreadful news
-were true, his plans must change. His heart sank as
-he caught a glimpse of how they must change.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I must know more, my friend,” he said, and he sat
-quietly down again upon the cushions.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“There are the Askris,” said the man of Fez, “the
-tribesmen. You have taken them too quickly into your
-armies. You have armed them too quickly. You
-have placed them with their instructors in the Kashab
-des Cherarda by the Segma gate as a garrison for this
-town. Oh, madness!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes,” Paul agreed. “We should have waited a
-year—two years.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“They are told that they must carry knapsacks,”
-continued Si El Hadj Arrifa. “With us that is work
-for women, an insult to men.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“But it isn’t true,” said Paul Ravenel.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“What does that matter if it is believed? The knapsacks
-were carried on mules publicly through the city,
-so that all men might see them. Six thousand of
-them.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Not by our orders,” said Paul, and the swift look
-and the shrug of the shoulders with which the protest
-was received told him much. It was by the order of the
-Maghzen that those knapsacks had been paraded. The
-Government itself was behind this movement in the
-city as it was behind the insurrection on the plains.
-Once more he saw very clearly the four contemptuous
-notables upon their mules.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Of course we have known of this trouble,” said
-Paul slowly. “But we thought that each instructor
-could make it clear to his men that the story was a
-lie.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Si El Hadj Arrifa flung up his hands.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Oh, the great lessons and nothing is learnt! Was
-there not trouble once for the English in India? Was
-there not talk of cartridges greased with the fat of
-pigs? It was not true. No! But it served. As the
-knapsacks will serve in Fez.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“A little time,” cried Paul Ravenel, clutching at the
-straw of that faint hope.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“There is no time,” answered Si El Hadj Arrifa.
-“Listen!” He looked swiftly behind him into the
-shadows of the court to make sure that there were none
-to overhear. “The revolt in Fez was planned for to-morrow,
-after the Mission had departed. There was
-to be a scouring.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“The Askris are ready: more than ready. It was
-difficult to hold them in, even with the promise of to-morrow.
-Now that the departure is postponed, they
-will not wait. It needs a word perhaps, but the speaking
-of that word cannot be delayed.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul nodded gloomily.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“And they won’t believe it,” he said in a dull quiet
-voice, as he stared upon the ground. Believe it? Paul
-Ravenel knew very well that were he to batter down
-the door of the Embassy, they would not even allow
-him to blurt his story out. Why should he come prattling
-his soldier’s silliness at that unearthly hour? Let
-him go back to his camp and await his well-deserved
-reprimand in the morning! There are proper channels
-by which presumptuous young officers must address
-their importunities. It is the history of many disasters.
-Politics and ambition and the play of parties must decide
-what is going to happen, not prescience or knowledge.
-Is a country notoriously <span class='it'>studiis asperrima belli</span>?
-Let us never admit it, lest we range against us this or
-that faction which is strong enough to bring us down.
-It’s all a gamble. So let us plank our money and
-everybody else’s and their lives into the bargain on to
-our colour and chance it turning up. “All rising to
-Great Place is by a winding stair.” So we must twist
-and turn and see nothing beyond the next step by which
-we mount. Authority in Fez had just been given the
-cravat of Grand Officer of the Legion of Honour, because
-the negotiations for the Protectorate had been
-conducted so smoothly and had ended in so resounding
-a success. It would never do for authority to listen
-to any intrusive soldier who insisted that murder
-and torture were knocking on the door. Had not the
-Maghzen declared that the tribesmen in the “bled”
-were only thinking of their husbandry? Did not the
-Grand Vizier himself guarantee the goodwill and
-peacefulness of Fez?</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“They have stopped their ears and bandaged their
-eyes,” said Paul.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“But you will stay here to-night,” his friend urged.
-“No one, I think, saw you come into my house, and
-my servants are faithful. Yes, you will stay here and
-be safe until this danger is overpast!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul shook his head.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“That I cannot do,” he said, and Si El Hadj Arrifa
-hearing the tone he used, knew that there would be no
-persuading him.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Then go while you can, and ride quickly with your
-pistol loose in its holster.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>But even so Paul did not move.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Wait,” he said.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>He raised his head to listen. The night was still as a
-tomb. A cry even from the most distant corner of the
-city, it seemed to him, must carry to this open square
-of darkness above them. He had time. “Yes, wait,”
-he repeated, and he went apart into the shadowy patio.
-Never had he been set to face so tragic a dilemma. He
-knew Si El Hadj Arrifa too well to doubt him. Nor
-indeed had he any real doubt as to the choice which he
-himself would make. The choice was in truth made,
-had been made from the moment he was sure that torture
-and massacre threatened those who remained in
-Fez as much as those who marched to Rabat. But he
-stood in that shadowy court of marble and tiles, gazing
-with a great sorrow upon many lovely cherished
-things which he was now forever to forego, his own
-hopes and ambitions, a little circle of good friends,
-honour and good report, a career of active service and
-study well-applied, and at the end of it all a name
-cleansed of its stain, and—even now the picture rose
-before his mind—a dreamlike high garden fragrant
-with roses, from which one looked out over moonlit
-country to the misty barrier of the Downs. It was
-such a farewell as he had never thought to make and
-when he turned back into the room his face was twisted
-as with a physical pain and anguish lay deep in his
-brooding eyes.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>He took the envelope from his breast.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I shall trust you with more than my life,” he said.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Your Excellency has honoured me with his friendship.
-I am his servant in all things.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I have been for three nights writing this letter. I
-had it in my mind to open it here and read it to you.
-But the bad news you have given me points to another
-way. It may be that there will be no need to use it.
-I give it into your hands and I beg you to keep it
-sealed as it is, until you are certain of my death. If I
-am alive I shall find a means to let you know. If I
-am dead, I pray you to do all that I have written here.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Si El Hadj Arrifa took the letter and bowed his
-forehead upon it, as though it carried the very Sultan’s
-seal.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“With God’s will, I will do as you direct.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul took his friend by the hand, and looked him in
-the eyes.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I could not rest quiet in my grave if my wishes
-written there were not fulfilled—if misfortune struck
-where there is no need that it should strike. A voice
-would call to me, in sorrow and distress, and I should
-hear it and stir in my grave though I was buried
-metres deep in clay. It is a promise?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Si El Hadj Arrifa struck a bell and a man came out
-to him from the servants’ quarters.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“All is quiet, Mohammed?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Up till this hour.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“His Excellency’s horse then! You will go in front
-of him with a lantern as far as the Bab Segma. His
-Excellency returns to the camp at Dar-Debibagh.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>The servant’s eyes opened wide in fear. He looked
-from his master to his master’s guest, as though both
-of them had been smitten with madness. Then he went
-out upon his business, and the two men in the court
-heard the fall of the bars and the grinding of the lock
-of the door.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I will put this away,” said Si El Hadj Arrifa, balancing
-the letter in his hands; and he went upstairs to
-his own room. When he came down Paul was standing
-in the patio, with his cap upon his head.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I will bid you good-bye here my friend,” said Paul,
-but his host, terrified though he was, would not so far
-fall short of his duties. He went out with Paul Ravenel
-to the street. The city all about them was very
-quiet. There was no light anywhere but the light in
-the big lantern which Mohammed was carrying in one
-hand whilst he held the bridle of Paul’s horse with the
-other. Paul mounted quickly and without a word.
-Si El Hadj Arrifa stood in the doorway of his house.
-He watched the lantern dwindle to a spark, he heard
-the sharp loud crack of the horse’s shoes upon the
-cobbles soften and grow dull. He waited until the
-spark had vanished, and, a little time afterwards, the
-beat of the hoofs had ceased. And still there was no
-sign of any trouble, no distant clamour as of men
-gathering, no shrill cries from the women on the roofs.
-He went back into his house.</p>
-
-<div class='figcenter'>
-<img src='images/illo134.png' alt='' id='iid-0003' style='width:100%;height:auto;'/>
-<p class='credit'><span class='it'>A William Fox Production.</span>&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;<span class='it'>The Winding Stair.</span></p> <p class='caption'>PAUL FIRST MEETS MARGUERITE, DANCER IN THE CAFE IRIS.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div><h1 id='ch12'>CHAPTER XII</h1></div>
-
-<h3>The Little Door in the Angle</h3>
-
-<p class='noindent'><span class='lead-in'><span class='dropcap'>S</span>i El Hadj Arrifa</span> squatted upon his cushions
-and stared at the flames of the candles in
-his branched silver candlestick. Captain Paul
-Ravenel would be half way through the Tala now. It
-was always in that quarter of the town that turbulence
-began. He would be half way through the Tala, therefore
-half way between this house and the Bab Segma
-too. And as yet there was not a cry. Si El Hadj
-Arrifa had never known a night so still. But then he
-had never listened before with such an intensity of
-fear, fear for himself, fear for that friend of his riding
-through the silent town, with the lantern swinging
-close to the ground in front of him. The sky had
-cleared after the rain and the stars were bright above
-the open square of the roof. But it was dark and once
-past the Bab Segma and clear of the town, Paul Ravenel
-would slip like a swift shadow over the soft
-ground to Dar-Debibagh. He must be near the gates
-by now. Si El Hadj Arrifa pictured him now skirting
-the gardens of Bou Djeloud and very close to the gate;
-a few yards more, that was all. Si El Hadj Arrifa
-imagined him knocking upon the gate for the watchman
-to open it. A sense of relief stole over the Moor.
-Mohammed would be back very soon now. Upon the
-relief followed drowsiness. Si El Hadj Arrifa’s head
-fell forward upon his breast and his body slipped into
-an easier attitude.&nbsp;.&nbsp;.&nbsp;.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Yes, Paul Ravenel was undoubtedly rapping upon
-the Segma gate, but rapping rather urgently, rather insistently.
-How those dogs of watchmen slept, to be
-sure! And Si El Hadj Arrifa woke with a start and
-very cold. It was upon his own outer door that some
-one knocked urgently and insistently.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>The Moor rose to his feet and stopped. His eyes
-had fallen upon his fine silver candlesticks and he stood
-upright and stiff in a paralysis of terror. The candles
-had burnt low. He had slept there for a long time.
-Mohammed should have been back an hour ago. The
-sound of his knocking, too, urgent, yet with all its
-urgency, discreet, spoke, like a voice of fear. Something
-untoward then had happened. Yet the city
-still slept. Si El Hadj Arrifa was no braver than most
-of his fellow townsmen. He shivered suddenly and
-violently and little whimpers of panic broke from his
-lips. Massacres were not conducted quietly. Uproar
-and clamour waited upon them; and the strange and
-eerie silence brooding over the town daunted the soft
-luxurious Moor till his bones seemed to melt within his
-body. It was stealthy and sinister like an enemy hidden
-in the dark. He crept into the passage and listened.
-There was nothing to hear but the urgent scratching
-and rapping upon the door.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Is that you, Mohammed?” he asked.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes, Master.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Si El Hadj Arrifa unfastened the door and held it
-ajar, looking out. Mohammed was alone, and there
-was no longer a lantern in his hand.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Come in! And make no noise!” said Si El Hadj
-Arrifa.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Mohammed slipped into the passage, closed the
-strong door so cautiously that not a hinge whined,
-then locked and bolted and barred it.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Now follow me!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>The Moor led the way back to the room with the
-brass bedstead and sank like a man tired out on to the
-cushions. His servant stood in front of him with a
-passive mask-like face and eyes which shone bright
-with fear in the light of the candles. “Speak low!”
-said Si El Hadj Arrifa; and this is the story which
-Mohammed told in a voice hardly above a whisper.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>The French officer did not ride to the Segma Gate.
-He called in a quiet voice to Mohammed and turned
-off towards the Bab-el-Hadid on the south of the town.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“The Bab-el-Hadid,” Si El Hadj Arrifa repeated
-in wonderment.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“But his Excellency did not go as far as the gate.
-He stopped at the hospital and dismounted,” said Mohammed.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Si El Hadj Arrifa’s face lightened. The hospital
-was the headquarters of the military command. Paul
-Ravenel had taken his story there.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul had remained for a long time in the hospital.
-Two officers came out with him at length, one of whom
-was dressed in slippers and pyjamas with a dressing
-gown thrown on as if he had been wakened from his
-bed.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Was his Excellency smiling?” asked Si El Hadj
-Arrifa.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“No. The other two were smiling. His Excellency
-shrugged his shoulders and mounted his horse heavily
-like a man in trouble.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Si El Hadj Arrifa nodded his head and muttered to
-himself.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“They will not believe,” he said. “No, they will not
-believe.” He looked towards Mohammed. “Then he
-went out by the Bab-el-Hadid?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>But Paul had not. He had turned his back to the
-Bab-el-Hadid and bade Mohammed lead to the
-Karouein quarter.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>They went for a while through silent empty streets,
-Mohammed ten paces or so ahead, holding the lantern
-so that the light shone upon the ground and Paul
-Ravenel following upon his horse. Mohammed did
-not turn round at all to see that the Captain was following
-him, but the shoes of the horse clacked on the
-cobbles just behind him and echoed from wall to wall.
-They came to the first gate and it was open. The great
-doors stood back against the wall and the watchman
-was not at his post. Mohammed was frightened. An
-omission to shut off the quarters of the city one from
-the other at night could not be due to negligence. This
-was an order given by authority. However, no one
-stopped them; they saw no one; they heard no one.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>They came to a second gate. This too stood wide.
-Beyond the gate the street was built over for a long
-way making a black tunnel, and half way down the
-tunnel it turned sharply at a right angle. When this
-corner had been turned, a glimmer of twilight far
-ahead would show where the tunnel ceased.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Mohammed passed in under the roof over the street
-and after he had walked some twenty paces forward,
-he judged that Captain Ravenel had fallen a little behind,
-the shoes of the horse no longer rang so clearly
-on the stones. He turned then, and saw horse and
-rider outlined against the dark sky, as they reached the
-tunnel’s mouth. He noticed Paul Ravenel bent forward
-over the neck of his horse to prevent his head
-from knocking against the low roof. Then he entered
-the tunnel and was at once swallowed up in the blackness
-of it.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Mohammed walked forward again rather quickly.
-For he was afraid of this uncanny place, and turned
-the angle of the street without looking round again.
-He did not think at all. If he had, he would have
-understood that once the feeble flicker of his lantern
-were lost beyond the corner, Paul Ravenel would be
-left in the darkness of the blind, the mouth of the tunnel
-behind him, a blank wall before his face. Mohammed
-was in a fever to reach the open street again and
-now that he saw it in front of him at the end of the
-passage opaquely glimmering as an uncurtained window
-on a dark night will glimmer to one in a room, he
-pushed eagerly forward. He was close to the outlet
-when he realised that no horse’s hoofs rang on the
-cobbles behind him.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>He turned and peered back into the tunnel. There
-was nothing to be seen and there was no sound. Mohammed
-did not dare to call out. He stood wavering
-between his duty and his fear; and suddenly a tremendous
-clatter broke the silence and frightened Mohammed
-out of his wits. Mohammed had just time
-to draw back close against the wall when a horse
-dashed past him at a full gallop. A stirrup iron struck
-and tore his djellaba and the horse was gone—out of
-the tunnel up the street. But Mohammed’s eyes were
-now accustomed to the darkness. He was able to see
-against the sky that the horse was riderless.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Something had startled the horse and the French
-Captain was thrown. He was lying on the ground
-back there, in the darkness. That was all! Thus Mohammed
-reasoned, listening. Yes, certainly that was
-all—except that it might well be that the French Captain
-was hurt.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Mohammed must return and find out. Quaking with
-alarm he retraced his steps, throwing the light of his
-lantern on one side of the passage after the other. But
-so far the passage was empty. No doubt the Captain
-would be lying on the ground beyond the angle
-where the tunnel turned. But here too he searched
-in vain. The Captain had disappeared: somewhere
-between the two outlets in this black place. He had
-gone!</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Mohammed lifted the lantern above his head, swinging
-it this way and that so that the light flickered and
-danced upon the walls. Then his arm grew steady.
-Opposite it to him in the darkest corner there was a
-little door studded with great nails—a door you never
-perceived though you passed through the tunnel ten
-times a day. Mohammed crossed to it, touched it,
-shook it. It was locked and bolted. He was debating
-whether he should knock upon it or no. But he dared
-not. This was the beginning of that Holy War which
-was to free El Magreb from the clutch of the Christians,—the
-stealthy beginning. To-morrow there would
-not be one of them alive in Fez, and outside Fez the
-land would be one flame of vengeance. If the French
-Captain were behind that little door he must be praying
-for a swift death!</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Mohammed drew back and suddenly the mouth of
-the tunnel was obscured and he saw the figures of two
-men. Panic had been hovering about Mohammed these
-many minutes since. It took him by the throat and
-the heart now. With a cry he dashed his lantern on
-the ground and fled leaping, past the two men. He
-was not followed.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>This is the story which Mohammed told to Si El
-Hadj Arrifa in the room with the clocks and the brass
-bedstead and the silver candelabra.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“That is the gate by Karouein Mosque?” said the
-master, when his servant had done.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Si El Hadj Arrifa nodded his head thoughtfully.
-He did not believe that the Captain had been captured
-or slain in this noiseless fashion. He himself had
-been bidden not to open that big envelope locked away
-upstairs until he was very certain that Paul Ravenel
-was dead. The Captain had his plans into which it
-was no business of his friend to pry.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“As to that little door, Mohammed,” he said. “It
-will be well to forget it.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“It is forgotten, Master,” answered Mohammed, and
-far away but very clear and musical in the silence of
-the night the voice of a mueddin on a lofty minaret
-called the Faithful to their prayers.</p>
-
-<div><h1 id='ch13'>CHAPTER XIII</h1></div>
-
-<h3>The Companions of the Night</h3>
-
-<p class='noindent'><span class='lead-in'><span class='dropcap'>S</span>i El Hadj Arrifa</span> was right. When Mohammed
-saw Paul Ravenel ride forward out of
-the loom of the night into the darkness of the
-tunnel, bending his head so that it might not strike the
-roof, he missed a slight action which was much more
-significant. Paul slipped his right hand into his pocket
-and took out a heavy key. He had been seeing to it that
-Mohammed should draw gradually ahead and by the
-time when he came opposite to the little door in the
-angle, Mohammed was far beyond the turn and there
-was not the faintest glimmer of light from the lantern.
-Paul slipped from his saddle, gave his horse a sharp
-cut across the buttocks with his riding whip, and as the
-startled animal galloped off, turned quickly to the little
-door.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>He was in a darkness so complete that he could not
-see the key in his hand nor the hand that held it. Yet
-he found the keyhole at once and in another second
-he was within the house. The passage in which he
-found himself was as black as the tunnel outside. Yet
-he locked the door, picked up and fitted the stout
-transverse bars into their sockets as neatly as though
-he worked in the broad noon. He had made no sound
-at all. Yet he had shut a door between the world and
-himself, and the effort of his life now must be to keep
-it for ever closed. He had a queer fancy that a door
-thus momentously closing upon his fortunes ought to
-clang so loudly that the noise of it would reach across
-the city.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“There was once a Paul Ravenel,” he said to himself.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>The lantern in Mohammed’s hands flickering upon
-the walls of the tunnel and every second dwindling a
-little more, receding a little more, danced before his
-eyes. There went the soul and spirit of that Paul
-Ravenel.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>He was aroused from his misery by the sound of
-Mohammed’s hands sliding curiously over the panels
-of the door. The cry of panic followed quickly and
-the clatter of the lantern upon the cobble stones. Paul
-waited with his pistol in his hand, wondering what
-had startled his attendant. But silence only ensued
-and he turned away from the door into the house. At
-the end of a short passage he opened a second door
-and stood on the threshold of a small court brightly lit
-and beautiful. A round pool from which a jet of
-water sprang and cooled the sultry air was in the centre
-of the white-tiled floor. Wooden pillars gaily painted
-and gilded and ornamented in the Moorish fashion, not
-by carving but by little squares and cubes and slips of
-wood delicately glued on in an intricate pattern, supported
-arches giving entrance to rooms. There was a
-cool sound of river water running along an open conduit
-waist-high against a wall; and poised in an archway
-across the court with her eyes eagerly fixed upon
-the passage stood Marguerite Lambert, a tender and
-happy smile upon her lips.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>When Paul Ravenel saw her, the remorse which had
-been stinging him during the ride and had reached a
-climax of pain as he stood behind the door, was stilled.
-Marguerite had changed during this year. The hollows
-of her shoulders and throat had filled. The haggard
-look of apprehension had vanished from her face.
-Colour had come into her cheeks and gaiety into her
-eyes and a bright gloss upon her hair. She wore a
-fragile little white frock embroidered with silver which
-a girl might have worn at a dance in a ball room of
-London or Paris; and in the exotic setting of that
-court she seemed to him a flame of wonder and beauty.
-And she was his. He held her in his arms, the softness
-of her cheek against his.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Marguerite!” he said. “Each time I see you it is
-for the first time. How is that?” But Marguerite
-did not answer to his laugh. She held him off and
-scanned him with anxious eyes.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Something has happened, Paul.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“No.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“When you came in, you were troubled.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“When I saw you the trouble passed. I was afraid
-that you might be angry. I am very late.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Marguerite did not believe one word of that explanation,
-but the way to discover the true one did not
-lie through argument. She drew Paul across the court,
-holding him by the hand and saying lightly:</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Foolish one, should I quarrel with you on the
-evening before you march away? You might never
-come back to me.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>She led him into a side room and drew him down
-beside her on the thick, low cushions. Upstairs there
-were chairs and tables and the paraphernalia of a
-western home. Here on the level of the patio and the
-street they had for prudence’ sake kept it all of the
-country. There was no brass bedstead, it is true, to
-ornament the room, but there were three tall grandfather
-clocks, though only one of them was going and
-that marked the true time. Marguerite laid her head
-in the hollow of his shoulder and her arm went round
-his waist.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Paul, you won’t get killed!” she whispered. “Oh,
-take care! take care! I am afraid. This year has been
-so perfect.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You must have been lonely many days.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“And many nights,” whispered Marguerite, with a
-little grimace. Then she laughed with the trill of a
-bird. “But you had just gone or you were soon returning
-and my thoughts were full of you. I am not
-difficult and thorny, am I, Paul? Say so! Say so at
-once!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>He laid her down so that her shoulders rested on his
-knee and her face smiled up at him, and bending he
-kissed her on the mouth for an answer.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You are the most golden thing that ever happened
-in this world,” he said. “I think of all those years
-that I lived through, before I met you, quite contented
-with myself and knowing nothing—no, absolutely nothing
-of the great miracle.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“What miracle, Paul?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“The miracle of man and woman,—of you and me—who
-want to be together—who are hungry when we
-are not together,—who walk amongst rainbows when
-we are.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul was the “grand serieux,” as Gerard de Montignac
-had called him, warning him too of that very
-fate which had befallen him. Love of this girl had
-swept him off his feet, calf-love and man’s love had
-come to him at once. Marguerite was new and entrancingly
-strange to him as Eve to Adam. He made
-much of her judgment, as lovers will, marvelling when
-she swept to some swift, sane decision whilst he was
-debating the this and the that. She entertained him
-one moment as though he were an audience and she
-a company of players; she was the tenderest of companions
-the next: in her moments of passion she made
-him equal with the gods; and the pride and glory to
-both of them was that each had been the first to enter
-the heart and know the embraces of the other.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Paul, what are you thinking about?” she asked.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“That’s the prettiest frock I have seen you in,” said
-he, and with a smile of pleasure she raised herself and
-sat at his side.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“It’s the prettiest I have got,” she returned.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul lifted a strip of the fragile skirt between his
-fingers.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“It’s a funny thing, Marguerite,” he said. “But
-until I knew you, I never noticed at all whether a girl
-was wearing a topping frock or whether she was
-dowdy. So long as they had something over their
-shoulders, they were all pretty much the same to me.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“And now?” asked Marguerite.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Well, it’s different,” said Paul, disappointing her
-of her expected flattery. “That’s all.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Marguerite laughed, as she could afford to. As she
-knew very well, he loved to see her straight and slim
-in her fine clothes and it gave him an entrancing little
-sensuous thrill to feel the delicate fabrics draping exquisitely
-her firm young body.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul, before he had set out with Colonel Gouraud’s
-supply column on the expedition to Fez, had sent Marguerite
-across the Straits and up to Madrid, where a
-credit was opened for her at one of the banks. Paul
-had been afraid lest she should stint herself, not only
-of luxuries but of things needed. But she had answered,
-“Of course I’ll take from you, my dear. I am
-proud to take from you.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>She looked back upon that journey now and said:</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I had six glorious weeks in Madrid. Fittings and
-fittings and choosing colours, and buying shoes and
-stockings and hats and all sorts of things. I began at
-half past nine every morning and was never finished
-till the shops closed. I had never had any money to
-spend before. Oh, it was an orgy!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“And you regret those weeks?” asked Paul, misled
-by the enjoyment with which she remembered them.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Nonsense. I had more fun still when I came back
-with what I had bought. I was going to make myself
-beautiful in the eyes of my lord!” and mockingly she
-pushed her elbow into his side, as she sat beside
-him.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Marguerite, upon her return, had waited for some
-weeks in Tangier. Paul had to make sure that he was
-to be stationed at Fez. Afterwards he had to find and
-buy this house, furnish it and provide a staff of servants
-on whose fidelity he could rely. He had secured two
-negresses and an Algerian, an old soldier who had
-served with him in the Beni-Snassen campaign before
-he had ever come on service to Morocco. Even when
-all was ready at Fez there was a further delay, since
-the road from Tangier to Fez was for a time unsafe.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I was tired of waiting, long before Selim and the
-negress and the little escort you sent for me appeared,”
-she said. “But the journey up country I
-adored.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>It was early in the year. The ten villages with their
-hedges of cactus; the rolling plains of turf over-scattered
-with clumps of asphodel in flower; the aspect of
-little white-walled towns tucked away high up in the
-folds of hills; the bright strong sun by day, the
-freshness of the nights, and the camp fires in that open
-and spacious country were a miracle of freedom and
-delight to this girl who had choked for so long in the
-hot and tawdry bars of the coast towns. And every
-step brought her nearer to her lover. It was the season
-of flowers. Great fields of marigold smiled at her.
-Yellow-striped purple iris nodded a welcome. Rosy
-thrift, and pale-blue chicory, and little congregations of
-crimson poppies, and acres of wild mustard drew her
-on through a land of colour. And here and there on
-a small knoll a solitary palm overshadowed a solitary
-white-domed tomb.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>She rode a mule and wore the dress of a Moorish
-woman. All had been done secretly, even to the purchase
-of the house in Fez, which was held in the name
-of a Moorish friend of Paul’s. It was Marguerite’s
-wish from first to last. Paul would have proclaimed
-her from the roof tops, had she but lifted an eyebrow.
-But she knew very well that it would not help Paul in
-his career were he to bring a pretty mistress up from
-the coast and parade her openly in Fez. He would
-get a name for levity and indiscretion. Moreover, the
-secrecy was for itself delightful to her. It was to her
-like a new toy to a child.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I love a secret,” she had said once to Paul, when he
-urged that her life was dull. “It sets us a little further
-apart from others and a little nearer together. It
-will be fun keeping it up, and we shall laugh of an
-evening, locked safely away in the midst of Fez in our
-little hidden palace.” It was fun, too, for Marguerite
-to dress herself in a fine silk caftan of pink or pale
-blue reaching to her feet, to pass over the mansouriya,
-to slip her bare feet into little purple embroidered
-heelless slippers, to wind a bright scarf
-about her hair, to burden her ankles and arms with
-heavy clashing rings of silver, to blacken her long eyelashes
-and veil the lower part of her face and go shopping
-with one of the negresses in the Souk-Ben-Safi.
-It was fun also to return home and transform herself
-into a fashionable girl of the day and wait in this
-southern patio for the coming of her lover.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I love routine like a dog,” she said on this evening.
-She was sitting on the low cushion by Paul’s side.
-Her slim legs showing pink through the fine white silk
-of her stockings were stretched out in front of her.
-She contemplated the tips of her small white satin
-slippers. “I don’t want any more surprises,” and
-Paul’s face grew for a moment grave and twitched
-with a stab of pain. “I don’t want any more people.
-I have had enough of both. I love going up on the
-roof and watching that great upper city of women,
-and wondering what’s going on in the narrow streets
-at the bottom of the deep chasms between the houses.
-I have books, too, and work when I’m not too lazy to
-do it, and I am learning the little two-stringed guitar,
-and I want one person, one foolish dear person, and
-since I’ve got him, I’m very happy.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul reached forward and, closing a hand round one
-of her ankles, shook it tenderly.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Listen to me, Marguerite!” he began, but she was
-upon her feet in an instant. She snatched up Paul’s
-kêpi and cocked it jauntily on her curls.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Canada?” she cried in a sharp, manly voice, and
-saluted, bringing her high heels together with a click
-and standing very stiff and upright. She hummed the
-tune of “The Maple Leaf,” interpolating noises meant
-to parody the instruments of an orchestra, and she
-marched in front of Paul and round the patio quickly
-and briskly like a girl in a pantomime procession, until
-she came back to her starting point.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Australia!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Again she saluted and marched round to the tune of
-“Australia will be there.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“The U-nited States of America!” she announced,
-and this time she skimmed round the patio in a sort
-of two-step dance, swift as a bird, her white and
-silver frock glinting and rippling as she moved.</p>
-
-
- <div class='poetry-container' style=''>
- <div class='lgp'> <!-- rend=';' -->
-<div class='stanza-outer'>
-<p class='line0'>“Yankee Doodle went to town</p>
-<p class='line0'>Upon a little pony,”</p>
-</div>
-</div></div> <!-- end poetry block --><!-- end rend -->
-
-<p class='noindent'>she sang, and she returned to her starting point.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Great Britain!” she cried.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Here she saluted for a long time while marking time
-and calling out in a gruff voice: “One, two, one, two!
-Can’t you girls keep time! Miss Montmorenci, you’ve
-a ladder in your stocking, and if you think any one is
-going to take the trouble to climb up it, you flatter
-yourself. Miss de Bourbon, you haven’t marked your
-face and it can do with a lot!” and off she went to the
-tune of the “British Grenadiers.” When she came opposite
-to Paul again she held out her short skirt on
-each side, dropped a low curtsey and declared:</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“And that, ladies and gentlemen, will conclude our
-entertainment for this evening.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>It was to conclude their entertainment for many and
-many an evening, for whilst Paul laughed and applauded,
-from right above their heads, it seemed, a
-voice vibrant and loud and clear dropped its call to
-prayer through the open roof of the court.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Allah Akbar! God is above all. There is no God
-but God and Mohammed is his prophet. Rise and
-pray! Rise and do the thing that is good. There is
-no God but God!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>It was the same voice to which Si El Hadj Arrifa
-was listening in another quarter of the city. Paul’s
-house was built in the very shadow of the Karouein
-Mosque, and the voice pealing from its high minaret in
-the silence of the night, familiar though both Marguerite
-and he were with it, never failed to startle
-them. It was a voice deep, resonant, a voice of music
-and majesty.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“The Companions of the Sick!” said Paul, as they
-listened to it without moving, caught in the spell of its
-beauty.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“There are ten of them,” said Marguerite. “Like
-all the rank and fashion of Fez, I set my clocks by
-their voices.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes, ten,” Paul explained. “Ben Hayoun, a rich
-man lay very ill in this city, and night after night he
-could get no sleep. The silence became terrible to him.
-He felt an appalling sense of loneliness as the hours
-dragged by and not a sound varied them. So, when
-he recovered, he founded this order of ten mueddins,
-each of whom must chant the summons to prayer for
-a half of one of the five hours which precede the dawn,
-so that those in pain shall be no more alone. They
-call them the companions of the sick.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Marguerite looked up to the open roof and the stars
-above it.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I often wonder what they think when they look
-down upon this bright square of light beneath them:
-whether they speculate who live here and why they
-stay up so late of nights. I fancy sometimes that the
-mueddin is looking down and watching us as we move
-about the court.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>She stood for a moment gazing upwards, and then
-her mood changed.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“One o’clock,” she cried, and running to the clock
-against the wall, she opened the glass which protected
-its face and adjusted the hands. “Paul, I’ll give you
-a whiskey and soda, and you must go.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>She turned to him, trying to laugh gaily, but her
-voice broke.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You have to be on parade at six and you have miles
-to go before you reach your camp.” Her gaiety deserted
-her altogether. She flung herself into his arms
-and clung to him, pressing her face against his coat.
-“Oh, my dear, when shall I see you again? I wish
-that you weren’t going. Yes, I do! Though I pretend
-to laugh and to think nothing of it when I am
-with you, I have been praying for a week with all my
-heart that something might happen to keep you here.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Something has happened,” said Paul.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Marguerite lifted her face.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You are not going?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“No.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Paul, Paul!” she cried joyfully. But there was a
-look on his face which dashed her joy. Marguerite
-was quick in those days to fall from a high buoyancy
-of spirit to forebodings and alarm. This miracle of
-her happiness was balanced on so fine a needle point
-that sometime it must drop and break into a thousand
-useless shining splinters. “Why aren’t you going?”
-she asked suspiciously.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Because of the rain.” Paul Ravenel explained.
-“The departure of the Mission is postponed for three
-days.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Only for three days?” Marguerite repeated with a
-wistful droop of the corners of her mouth.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“It won’t leave after three days,” said Paul. “It
-won’t leave Fez for a long while.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>He spoke very gravely and after a moment of silence
-Marguerite disengaged herself gently from his
-embrace. A trace of the haggard look which had once
-been so familiar upon her face was visible there
-again: so visible that Paul wondered whether some
-hint of the threatened massacre had not been given to
-her by Selim or the negresses.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes, you were in great trouble when you came into
-the court to-night, and when I asked you why, you put
-me off with an excuse. The truth now, Paul, please!”
-she pleaded though she caught her breath at the
-thought of what the truth might mean to her.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You have courage, Marguerite.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>The girl’s eyelids closed and fluttered over her eyes.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I shall need it?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>She sank down upon the cushions, for her knees had
-given under her. Paul did not understand the real
-cause of her distress until she took his hand between
-both of hers and spoke.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You needn’t hesitate, my dear. Of course I have
-always lived in fear that our life together couldn’t go
-on. In my happiest moments, deep down, I have felt
-that dread. Perfection’s not allowed, is it? There’s
-a jealousy that will shatter it. I was sure of that.
-But I always hoped—not yet. I always prayed for a
-little longer time to make up for the wretched years
-before.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>If trouble was mentioned to Marguerite Lambert in
-those days she had just the one interpretation of the
-word. It meant separation from Paul and therefore
-the ending of all things. Her passion occupied her,
-heart and brain and blood. She had waited for it, curiously
-certain that she would not be denied it. Now
-that the great gift was hers, she was in a desperate
-alarm lest she should wake one morning to discover
-that it had been filched from her in the night. Paul
-dropped down upon the cushions at her side and with
-a tender laugh drew away her hands from her face.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Marguerite, you are foolish. It isn’t separation,
-of course. You haven’t to fear that—no, nor ever will
-have to. Believe me, Marguerite! Look at me and
-say you believe me!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>He turned her face towards him and held it between
-his hands and her eyes lost their trouble and smiled at
-him.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“That’s right. Now listen, Marguerite!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>He gave her a little shake. For since she knew that
-the one evil which she dreaded was not to befall her she
-had ceased to attend.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I am listening, Paul.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I dined with a friend of mine to-night. I went
-there to leave him a letter of instructions about you if
-anything happened to me on our march down to the
-coast.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Happened to you?” she exclaimed with a sharp intake
-of her breath.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I expected an attack. Si El Hadj Arrifa would
-have seen that you were sent safely down to the coast.
-My agents there would have taken care of you. You
-would of course never want for anything again.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I should want for everything,” said Marguerite
-slowly. “I don’t think, Paul, that I could go on living.
-.&nbsp;.&nbsp;. I was told of a girl .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. when her husband died,
-she dressed herself in her wedding gown—I couldn’t
-do that, my dear,” she interpolated with a little whimsical
-smile. “Then she lay down on her bed and took
-poison.&nbsp;.&nbsp;.&nbsp;. I often think of that girl.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Marguerite, you shouldn’t. It’s morbid. You are
-young. Even if I went—” but there came a stubborn
-look upon Marguerite Lambert’s face against which he
-was well aware his finest arguments would beat in
-vain. “I’ll discuss that with you when it’s necessary,”
-he said. “To-night my friend Si El Hadj Arrifa
-warned me that not only was the Mission to be attacked
-on its way to the coast, but that there would also
-be a rising here.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>He had Marguerite’s attention now. She looked at
-him with startled eyes.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“In Fez?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“That will mean—?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes, let us face it. A massacre.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Marguerite shivered and caught Paul’s hand. She
-looked about the court outside the lighted room in
-which they sat. There were shadowy corners which
-daunted her. She looked upwards, straining her ears.
-But the ceaseless chant of the mueddin on the minaret
-of the Karouein mosque alone broke the silence of the
-night.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“When is it to be?” she whispered, as though the
-fanatics were already gathered about her door.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“To-night, probably. To-morrow, certainly.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“And you can trust your friend’s word?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“As I would trust yours,” said Paul.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Marguerite drew closer to her lover and huddled
-against him. He put his arm about her. She was
-trembling. The fun of the masquerade was over. She
-wondered now how without fear she could have wandered
-with her black servant through the narrow,
-crowded markets and in those deep, maze-like streets;
-she pictured to herself the men; furtive, sleek Fasi;
-wild creatures from the hills with long muskets gleaming
-with mother-of-pearl; brawny men of the people,
-and she painted their faces with the colours and the fire
-of fury and fanaticism. This little house shut in and
-crowded about with a thousand houses! She had
-thought of it as a secret palace hidden away in the
-uncharted centre of a maze. Now it seemed to her a
-trap set in a jungle of tigers—a trap in which she and
-Paul were caught. And her thoughts suddenly took a
-turn. No, only she was in that trap.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>She listened, turning her face upwards to the open
-roof. The city was still quiet.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Paul, there are other Christians scattered in houses
-in the town.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Couldn’t you give a warning? So that troops from
-the camp might be hurried into the town? Leave your
-uniform here! Dress in your djellaba and your Moorish
-clothes. You can reach headquarters—”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I have already been there. They will not believe,”
-said Paul.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Marguerite thought for a little while, summoning
-her strength to assist her, and the memory of the great
-debt she owed her lover.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Very well,” she said. “You have done all that you
-can. You must go back to the camp now, Paul, while
-you still can.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“No.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I shall be all right, Paul. No one suspects this
-house. You have always been careful when you came
-here that the tunnel was empty. At the worst I have
-the little Belgian automatic pistol you gave me.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“No,” Paul repeated.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“But your place is in the camp with your men.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I have leave,” said Paul. “I applied for leave the
-moment I knew that we had three days more in Fez.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Marguerite did not for a moment doubt the truth of
-what he said. He spoke so simply. It was so natural
-a thing that he should ask for leave. She gave up the
-little scheme to which she had steeled her heart. Her
-arms crept about his neck.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“There!” she whispered with a sigh of relief. “I
-have tried to send you away, haven’t I? I have done
-my best and you won’t go! I am glad, Paul, I am
-glad! Alone I should have shivered in terror.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“We shall be together, Marguerite.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Her lips trembled to a smile. Danger thus encountered
-seemed in the anticipation hardly to be considered
-a danger at all.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Listen,” she said, lifting her hand.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>The voice of another mueddin now rang out across
-the city. Marguerite rose.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“This lighted square just above our heads, Paul, is
-just beneath his feet. Let us give him no cause to
-wonder.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>She put out the candles and returned to Paul
-Ravenel’s side. They sat together in the darkness,
-huddled against one another, whilst the companions of
-the sick followed one another upon the high minaret
-of the Karouein mosque.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Once, twice when some stray cries broke the silence
-Paul whispered eagerly.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“It is beginning,” and as silence followed upon the
-cries. “No! No!” he added in a dull voice, a voice of
-disappointment.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Paul, you wish it to begin!” said Marguerite in
-wonder, and she tried to distinguish the expression of
-his face, even though the darkness showed her nothing
-but the silhouette of his head.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“It will be the sooner over,” said Paul quickly.
-“The revolt can’t last long in any case. There’s a
-strong column in the field just south of Meknes. A
-call from the wireless and four days will bring them
-here.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>But there was another reason why with all his soul
-he prayed to hear the still night break up in a clatter
-of firing and fierce cries. If the revolt began to-night,
-why then he himself had been caught in it, had been
-forced to seek a refuge, had been unable to regain his
-post. Who could gainsay him? All was saved—Marguerite
-and honour too. Whereas if the morning
-came and Fez was still at peace and his appointed place
-empty—then some other man must fill it. But the
-voices on the minaret rang out in music above their
-heads, until Marguerite said: “This is the last. It is
-he who raises the flag over the mosque. In half an
-hour we shall have the dawn.”</p>
-
-<div><h1 id='ch14'>CHAPTER XIV</h1></div>
-
-<h3>The Tunic</h3>
-
-<p class='noindent'><span class='lead-in'><span class='dropcap'>“M</span>arguerite,</span> you must go to bed,” said
-Paul. “I’ll rouse you if there’s any danger.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>It was very near to the dawn now. There was a
-freshness and an expectation in the air; a faint colourless
-light was invading the darkness; in the patch of
-sky above their heads the bright stars were swooning.
-For most of this last half hour Marguerite’s head had
-lain heavy upon his shoulder, and if she opened her
-eyes it was only to close them again with a sigh of content.
-Paul lifted her on to her feet and led her up the
-stairs.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“And you, Paul?” she asked, drowsily.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I shall be within call. I shall sleep for a little on
-the cushions below. Good-night.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Marguerite noticed that the voice of the last mueddin
-ceased whilst she was still preparing herself for her
-bed; and after she had got into it, she heard a kettle
-singing cheerfully in the court below as if Paul were
-brewing for himself some tea. Then, with the doors
-of her bedroom open upon the little gallery above the
-court she went fast asleep.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Hours afterwards a shattering noise awakened her.
-She lay for a few moments deliciously poised between
-sleep and consciousness, and vaguely thinking her long
-and troubled vigil to have been a nightmare which the
-light of day had happily dispelled. The sunlight was
-falling in a sheet of gold through the open roof. “It
-must be very late,” she reflected, lazily, and thereupon
-sharply and crisply two shots from a rifle split the air.
-Marguerite sprang up in her bed with a hand to her
-heart, as though one of those shots had wounded her.
-It was just the same noise which had broken through
-her slumbers. The nightmare was true, then! She
-listened, resting upon one arm, with her face turned towards
-the open doors. A clamour of voices was borne
-from a distance to her ears. The new Terror had
-begun.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Paul!” she cried loudly. “Paul”; and a tall man
-dressed in the robes of a Moor stood beside her bed.
-She shrank away with a little scream. It was not
-until he smiled that she recognized her lover.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You had better get up, Marguerite,” he said, and
-bending down he kissed her. “You have slept well,
-thank the Lord.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>One of the negresses brought her a cup of tea and
-Marguerite, slipping on her dressing gown, sat upon
-the edge of the bed and thrust her feet into her slippers.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“What is the time, Paul?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“A little past one.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“So late?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I let you sleep. There was no disturbance. The
-first shot waked you.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I will be quick,” she said, or rather began to say.
-For the words, half-uttered, were frozen upon her lips.
-Such a din, so shrill, so menacing and strange, burst
-out above their heads that Marguerite cowered down
-under it as under the threat of a blow. She had never
-heard the like of it, she hoped never to hear the like of
-it again; yet she was to hear it now for days—the
-swift repetition of one strident note, swelling and falling
-in a pæan of wild inhuman triumph. Marguerite
-imagined all the birds of prey in the world wheeling
-and screaming above the city; or a thousand thin voices
-shrieking in a madhouse; you—you—you—you—you—the
-piercing clamour ran swift as the clacking of a
-mitrailleuse, and with a horrid ferocity which made
-the girl’s blood run cold.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Paul,” she said, “what is it?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“The women on the roofs.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Oh!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Marguerite shuddered as she listened, clutching
-tight her lover’s arm. Such a promise of cruelty was
-in those shrill cries as made Marguerite think of the
-little automatic pistol in the drawer of her table as a
-talisman which she must henceforth carry close to her
-hand. She felt that even if she escaped from the peril
-of these days, she could never walk again in the narrow
-streets between the blind houses without the chill of
-a great fear. Her clasp tightened upon her lover’s
-arm and he winced sharply. Marguerite looked up into
-his face, and saw that his lips were pressed close together
-to prevent a cry of pain.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Paul!” she said wonderingly. She loosened her
-clasp and turned back the sleeve of his djellaba. Beneath
-it, his forearm was roughly but tightly bandaged.
-“Oh, my dear,” she cried, in a voice of compunction,
-“what happened to you whilst I slept? You
-are wounded—and for me! Must I always do you
-harm?” and she beat her hands together in her distress.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“It was an accident,” said Paul.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“An accident?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>She ran to her medicine-chest, and making him sit
-beside her, unfastened the bandage. “An accident?”
-she repeated. It looked to her as if he had been stabbed.
-A knife had been driven right through the flesh of his
-forearm. Paul did not reply to her exclamations and
-she did not press her questions. She washed and
-dressed the wound and bound it up again.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“It must hurt terribly,” she said, her forehead
-knitted in distress.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“It is easier now,” he answered. “The knife was
-clean.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You are sure of that, Paul?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Quite.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>She made a sling of his arm and sent him away.
-She dressed quickly, wondering how that wound had
-been inflicted and why he wished not to explain it.
-Surely he had not gone out whilst she slept? Surely
-there had been no attack upon the house? No! But
-she was plunged now into a world of mystery and
-fear, and she wrung her hands in an impotent despair.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>They took their breakfast in a room upon the first
-floor, Paul asking questions as to how far the house
-was provisioned, and Marguerite answering almost at
-random, whilst the cries of the women rang shrill overhead.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Oh, yes, there is food,” she answered.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“We can always send Selim out,” he added.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Marguerite’s eyes lightened.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“We will send him out, Paul,” she exclaimed. “Do
-you know what has been troubling me? We haven’t
-a window upon any street. We are here at the bottom
-of a well with nothing but our ears to warn us of
-danger. We can see nothing.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul looked at her anxiously. She was nervous,
-the flutter of her hands feverish, and her voice running
-up and down the scale as though she had no control
-over it. Paul reached across the table and laid his
-hand upon her arm.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You poor little girl!” he said gently. “These are
-trying days. But there won’t be many. The wireless
-here will have got into touch already with Moinier’s
-column near Meknes. The troops, too, at Dar-Debibagh
-may do something,” and ever so slightly his voice
-faltered when he spoke of the troops, yet not so slightly
-but that Marguerite noticed it. “They have some
-guns,” he went on hurriedly, and again Marguerite noticed
-the hurry, the desire to cover up and hide that
-little spasm of pain which had stabbed him when he
-thought of his men. “Yes, the guns!” he said. “There
-will be an end to that infernal twittering on the roof
-tops when the guns begin to talk.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Paul, you should have been with your men,” said
-Marguerite, and he answered her with a kind of violent
-obstinacy which drew her eyes in one swift glance
-to his face. “I am on leave.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>He changed his tone, however, immediately.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“We will send Selim into the town for news,” he
-said cheerfully, “and we will go up on to the roof.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Selim was bidden to knock twice, and, after a tiny
-interval, once more upon his return. Paul stood behind
-the door listening to make sure that the tunnel
-was empty before he opened it. Then he let him go,
-and locked and barred the door again.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Come,” he said to Marguerite and, picking up some
-cushions, they went upstairs to the roof. Marguerite
-had followed Paul’s example, and was dressed in Moorish
-clothes; the house was higher by a storey than any
-which adjoined it, and the roof itself was enclosed in
-a parapet waist-high. They crouched upon the cushions
-behind the wall and cautiously looked over it.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>A pack of clouds was threatening in the west, but
-just now the city glittered in the sunlight like a jewel,
-with its hanging gardens and high terraces, its white
-houses huddling down the hillside like a flock of sheep,
-and the bright green tiles of its mosques. Paul and
-Marguerite never tired of this aspect of the lovely
-city, shut within its old crumbling walls and musical
-with the rushing noise of its many rivers. But to-day
-they saw it as they had never seen it before. For the
-roofs were crowded with women in their coloured robes
-of gauze and bright scarves, who danced and screamed,
-and climbed from one house to another on little ladders
-in such a frenzy of excitement that the eyes were dazzled
-and the ears deafened. Paul turned towards the
-north. Upon the roof of one house men were breaking
-through with axes and picks, whilst others flung
-down rags and sticks which had been soaked in paraffin
-and lighted, through the holes into the rooms below.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I think that’s the house of the French veterinary
-surgeon,” said Paul; and from all about that house rose
-a continuous rattle of firing.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Look!” said Paul, and he nodded to the south.
-Here there was a gap between the houses, and Marguerite
-could see far below a tumble-down stone bridge
-built in a steep arch across a stream. As she looked,
-a wild horde of men swarmed upon the bridge, capering
-and yelling.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“There are soldiers amongst them,” said Marguerite.
-“I can see their rifles and their bandoliers.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes, the Askris who have revolted,” answered Paul,
-and suddenly he covered Marguerite’s eyes with the
-palm of his hand. “Don’t look!” But Marguerite had
-already seen, and she sank down behind the parapet
-with a moan. In the midst of that wild procession
-some rifles with bayonets fixed were held aloft, and
-on one of the bayonets the trunk and the limbs of a
-man were impaled. The head was carried last of all,
-and upon a pole taller than the bayonets, a head black
-with blood, like a negro’s, on which a gold-laced kêpi
-was derisively cocked.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul swore underneath his breath.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“One of my brothers,” he whispered. “Oh, my
-God,” and dropping his head into his hands, he rocked
-his body to and fro in an agony of remorse.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Marguerite touched him on the shoulder.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Paul, there’s a carbine in your room.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“It would be fatal to use it.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I don’t care,” Marguerite cried fiercely. Her face
-was alive with passion. “Use it, Paul. I don’t care!”
-and from far below there rose the sound of a loud
-knocking upon a door.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Marguerite’s heart fluttered up into her throat. She
-stared at Paul with her eyes opened wide in horror.
-The same thought was in both their minds. Both listened,
-holding their breath that they might hear the
-better.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“It was upon our door they knocked,” Marguerite
-whispered, and she crept a little closer to her lover.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Listen!” replied Paul, and as the knocking began
-again, but this time louder, he added with a grim look
-upon his face, “Yes.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“And it was not Selim who knocked,” said Marguerite.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>They could hear cries now, angry orders to open,
-followed by a muffled clamour and such a clatter of
-heavy blows as shook the very house.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I must go down,” said Paul, in a low voice.
-“Otherwise they’ll break in the door.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Marguerite nodded. Her face was white to the lips,
-but she was quite still now and her eyes steady. They
-crept down to the uppermost floor of the house. The
-noise was louder.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You will stay here, Marguerite?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You have your pistol?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Marguerite drew it from her broad waistbelt of
-gold brocade, snapped back the barrel, and set the
-safety catch. Her hand never shook. Now that the
-peril was at her elbow she could even smile. Paul
-took her passionately in his arms.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You are gold all through, Marguerite,” he cried.
-“If this is the end, I thank you a thousand times. I
-would hate to have died without knowing the wonder
-of such rare love as yours.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“ ‘We two embracing under death’s spread hand.’ ”
-She quoted from a book upon her shelf in which she
-was pleased to find a whole library of wisdom and
-inspiration.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You will wait until the last moment?” said Paul,
-touching the little automatic in her hand.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Until they are on this last flight of stairs,” she
-replied, in an even voice. “Paul!” She clung to him
-for a second, not in terror, but as to some inestimable
-treasure which she could hardly let go. Then she
-stood away, her eyes shining like the dew, her face
-hallowed with tenderness. “Now, my dear, go!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul Ravenel ran down the stairs. The clamour
-echoing from the tunnel had taken on a fiercer note;
-the door, stout as it was, bent inwards under the
-blows. Marguerite, standing upon the landing, heard
-him unbolt the door. She drew back out of sight as
-a crowd of men, some in djellabas spotted with blood,
-some in ragged caftans, some armed with rifles, others
-with curved knives, others, again, with sharpened
-poles, swept screaming like madmen over the court.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“The Frenchman,” cried a great fellow, brandishing
-a butcher’s cleaver. “Give him to us! God has willed
-that they shall all die this day.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>What had become of Paul? she wondered. Had he
-been swept off his feet and trampled down in the rush?
-She heard his voice above the clamour. She imagined
-him standing with uplifted hand claiming silence. At
-all events, silence followed, and then his voice rang
-out.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“God willed that he should die yesterday,” said Paul.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Marguerite peered out between the curtains which
-overhung the entrance to the room. She saw him
-move, calm and smiling, across the court to an alcove
-and point to a corner.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“The Frenchman came to my house once too often.
-Look! He sought refuge here last night. He was
-not wise to seek refuge in the house of Ben Sedira the
-Meknasi. For to-day his body rolls in the river—”
-Paul threw open a small door in the back wall and
-showed them the Karouein River tumbling, swollen
-with the rain, past the walls of his house. Then he
-pointed to the alcove: “And his livery lies there.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>There was a rush into the alcove, and the shouts of
-exultation broke out again. A blue tunic, on the
-breast of which medals glinted and rattled, was tossed
-out high amidst the throng. The tunic was gashed
-and all cluttered and stained with blood which had
-dried. Paul’s gold-lace cap spun through the air, was
-caught, and clapped upon the head of a boy, his
-breeches and boots and accoutrements were flung from
-hand to hand and shared out amidst laughter and
-cheering. And once more there was a surge of men,
-and the court was empty and silent. No, not quite
-empty. Paul was talking in a gentle voice to one wild
-man who was now wearing over a ragged caftan Paul’s
-uniform tunic. Paul held him firmly by the elbow,
-and was speaking in a curiously soft, smooth voice,
-than which Marguerite had never heard anything more
-menacing.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You will leave that tunic, good friend. You will
-take it off at once and leave it here. It is my trophy.
-Have I not earned it?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>The man protested, and sought to disengage himself,
-but Paul still held him firmly.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“It shall hang in my house,” he continued, “that
-my children may remember how once there were
-Frenchmen befouling the holy ground of Morocco.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Once more Marguerite heard the rattle of the medals
-as the coat was restored, and the Moor cried out:
-“There will be none alive in Fez this night. Salam
-aleikum, O man of Meknes!” And a little afterwards
-the door was slammed and barred.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul returned to the court, holding the tunic in his
-hands. The peril of the last few moments was swept
-altogether out of his mind. For a moment Marguerite
-herself was forgotten. He was holding the badge of
-many years of honourable service, and the shining
-medals which proved that the service had been of real
-value to the country he served. All was now wasted
-and foregone.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I should make the sacrifice again,” he said obstinately
-to himself, “if it were to make again. I should!
-I should!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>But he had not borne to see the tunic and its medals
-paraded in triumph on the back of one of these assassins
-through the streets of Fez. When he stopped the
-Moor and held him back from his companions, his
-hand had gripped close the revolver hidden in his waistband.
-Had the man clung to the tunic, Paul would
-have killed, whatever the risk. The traditions and the
-whole training of his life had forced his hand. He
-knew that, as he stood in the silent sunlit patio fondling
-the stuff of the coat between his fingers, and his
-heart aching as though some little snake had slipped
-into his bosom and was feeding there.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I have done what my father did,” he thought. “I,
-who set out to atone for him.” And he laughed aloud
-with so much mockery at his own pretensions that the
-laughter startled him. “I can plead a different reason.
-But what of that? I have done what my father did!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>He folded the tunic reverently, and laid it down
-again in the alcove. As he stood up he was startled
-by the clatter of something falling overhead and the
-sharp explosion of a pistol. He looked upwards. The
-sound had come from behind those curtains where
-Marguerite was hidden. Had she been watching?
-Had she seen him fondling the tunic? Had she heard
-his bitter laughter? Perhaps he had spoken aloud.
-For a moment his heart stood still. Some words that
-Henriette had said to him—oh, ever so long ago, in
-the Villa Iris, flashed back into his mind. “Even if
-the grand passion comes—oh la, la la!—she will blow
-her brains out, the little fool!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>He sprang up the stairs, crying “Marguerite! Marguerite!”
-and stumbling in his haste. No answer was
-returned to him. He tore the curtains aside, and saw
-her lying on the floor by the side of a divan. The
-pistol had slipped from her hand and fallen a little
-way from her. Paul flung himself upon his knees beside
-her, lifted her, and pressed her close to his heart.
-“Marguerite! Marguerite!” he whispered. There
-was no wound, and she was breathing, and in a moment
-or two her eyes opened. Paul understood in
-that supreme moment of relief how greatly his love of
-Marguerite overpowered his grief at honour lost.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Oh, my dear, you frightened me!” he said.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>She smiled as he lifted her onto the divan.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I was foolish,” she answered.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>She had waited upon the outcome of that wild scene
-in the court below, her nerves steady, her mind unconscious
-of any effort to steel herself against catastrophe.
-She could catch but a glimpse of what was going forward;
-she did not understand the trick by which Paul
-Ravenel had appeased the invaders; she heard the wild
-babble of their frenzied voices and Paul’s voice over-topping
-them. She had waited serenely with her little
-pistol in her hand, safety to be reached so easily by the
-mere pressure of a finger. Then suddenly all was
-over; the court was empty, the house which had rung
-with fury a moment since was silent; and as she heard
-the bolts of the door shot once more into their sockets
-her strength had melted away. She had stood for a
-little while in a daze and, catching at the divan as she
-fell, had slipped in a swoon to the floor. The pistol
-fell from her hand and exploded as it fell.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I was foolish,” she repeated; “I didn’t understand
-what had happened. I don’t even now.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I was afraid that some time or another some one
-had seen me enter this house and remembered it,” Paul
-Ravenel explained. “Last night something happened
-outside the door—what, I don’t know, but enough to
-trouble me a little. So after you had gone to bed I
-boiled a kettle—”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes, I heard it.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“And sterilized my big knife. I drove the knife
-through my arm and let the blood soak through my
-tunic, and then I stabbed the tunic again in the back.
-It was lucky that I did.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“What should I have done without you?” she said,
-as she rested upon the cushions of the divan. She laid
-a hand gently in his.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Does the wound hurt, Paul?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“It throbs a little if I move it. That’s all. It’s nothing.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I’ll dress it again to-night,” she said, sleepily, and
-almost immediately she fell asleep. She slept so deeply,
-that a muffled roar, which shook the house, did not
-even trouble her dreams. Paul smiled as he heard
-that sound. “That’s one of the seventy-five,” he reflected.
-The guns from the camp at Dar-Debibagh
-were coming into action.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>He left Marguerite sleeping, and climbed again to
-the roof. The guns were firing to the south of the
-town, and were still far away. But no man who had
-fought through the Chaiouïa Campaign could ever forget
-the tribesmen’s terror of the guns.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Another day or two!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul counted up the stages of the march of Moinier’s
-column from Meknes. If only he was quick, so that
-the tribesmen could not mass between him and Fez!
-There were houses alight now in Fez-el-Bali. The
-work of massacre was going on. But let General
-Moinier hurry, and the guns over there at Dar-Debibagh
-talk insistently to Fez! Moreover, at five o’clock
-the rain began again. It fell like javelins, with the
-thunder of surf upon a beach.</p>
-
-<div><h1 id='ch15'>CHAPTER XV</h1></div>
-
-<h3>On the Roof Top</h3>
-
-<p class='noindent'><span class='lead-in'><span class='dropcap'>M</span>arguerite</span> drove her two trembling
-negresses out of the corners into which they
-had flown when the house was invaded, stood
-over them while they cooked the dinner, and strictly
-ordered that it should be served with the proper ceremonies.
-She dressed herself in her European clothes
-and with even more, to-night, of the scrupulous daintiness
-which was habitual to her. Paul watched her
-with a great pride and wonderment.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“How in the world do you know at once what we
-have to learn?” he asked. “When people are rattled,
-routine’s the great remedy. Just doing the ordinary
-things at the ordinary hours lifts you along with a
-sort of assurance that life is going to be as sane to-morrow
-as it was yesterday. But we have men to
-watch, and they teach us these things. Where do you
-get them from?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“From myself,” answered Marguerite, with a blush
-upon her cheeks, which her lover’s praise never failed
-to provoke. “I had to keep my own little flag of
-courage flying if I could.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>At half past nine they heard Selim’s three knocks
-upon the outer door, and Paul let him in and brought
-him to Marguerite in the room opening on to the patio.
-He brought with him a budget of black news. A
-couple of officers had been dragged from their horses
-and butchered in the streets. An engineer and his wife
-in Fez Djedid had been shot down as they sat at their
-luncheon. There had been an attack upon the Hôtel de
-France, where the managress and a priest had been
-slain.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“There is a house in the Tala quarter,” said Paul,
-“where two veterinary surgeons and two other officers
-lodged. I saw men breaking through the roof to get
-at them this afternoon.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“They escaped, Sidi. They let themselves down
-from a window into an alley. It is believed that they
-are hiding in a covered drain.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“And the four French telegraph operators. They,
-too, occupied a house in the Tala.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Selim had no good tidings to tell of them. The
-door of their house had been forced at midday.
-Throughout the afternoon they had resisted in an upper
-room, which they had barricaded, firing with what
-weapons they had until their ammunition was exhausted.
-At seven in the evening a rescue party had
-arrived, but only one of them was alive, and he grievously
-wounded.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“A rescue party!” asked Paul, wondering whence
-that party had come. There was not enough men at
-the headquarters in the hospital to do more than protect
-the quarter of the Consulates, even if they could
-do that.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“A battalion from Dar-Debibagh forced its way
-into the city at five o’clock this afternoon,” said Selim.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul’s face took life, his eyes kindled. No one knew
-better than he the difficulties which must have hampered
-that exploit.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“That was well done,” he cried. “Whose battalion?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>The old Algerian soldier replied:</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“The Commandant Philipot’s.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>The gladness died out of Paul Ravenel’s face, and
-he sat in silence staring at the tiles of the floor. To
-Marguerite it was as though the light of a lamp waned
-and flickered out. She laid her hand upon his.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“That’s your battalion, Paul?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul nodded, and whispered “Yes,” not trusting his
-voice over much.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You should have been with it, my dear. But for
-me you would have led your company,” she said, remorsefully;
-and he cried out aloud suddenly in a voice
-which she had never heard him use before, a voice
-rough and violent and full of pain.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I am on leave.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Hearing him, she felt the compunction of one who
-has carelessly knocked against a throbbing wound.
-Her eyes went swiftly to his face. During these moments
-Paul Ravenel was off his guard, and she was
-looking upon a man in torture.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“The little Praslin will be leading my company,” he
-said, “and leading it just as well as I could have done.”
-He turned again to Selim. “Did the battalion have
-trouble to get through?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Great trouble, Sidi. The commandant tried to
-come in by the little gate in the Aguedal wall and the
-new gardens of the Sultan. But he was attacked by a
-swarm of men issuing from the Segma Gate on his left
-flank and by sharp-shooters on the wall itself in front
-of him.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“And we taught them to shoot!” cried Paul in exasperation.
-“The commandant was held up?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes, Sidi.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“What then? He was losing men, and quickly.
-What did he do?” Paul asked impatiently. His own
-men were under fire. He had got to know, and at
-once. “Out with it, Selim. What did the Commandant
-Philipot do?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“He led his battalion down into the bed of the river
-Zitoun,” said Selim, and a long “Oh!” of admiration
-and relief from Paul welcomed the manœuvre. He
-spread before his eyes, in mind, an imaginary map of
-the difficult ground at that southwest corner of the city,
-outside the walls. Pressed hardly upon his left flank,
-at the mercy of the riflemen on the crest of the high,
-unscalable wall of the Aguedal, Commandant Philipot,
-leaving a rear-guard—trust the Commandant Philipot
-for that!—had disappeared with his battalion into the
-earth. Paul chuckled as he thought of it—the ingenuity
-and the audacity, too!</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“He made for the Bab-el-Hadid?” he said.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes,” answered Selim.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>There had been risk, of course, risk of the gravest
-kind. Out of shot, the battalion certainly was—out of
-shot and out of sight. But, on the other hand, in the
-deep chasm of the Oued Zitoun it could not see any
-more than could its antagonists. If its rear-guard
-was overwhelmed by the insurgents from the Segma
-Gate, if a strong band of tribesmen rode up to the
-southern lip of the chasm and caught the battalion
-floundering below amongst the boulders and the swollen
-river! Why, there was an end of that battalion and,
-for the moment, of the relief of Fez. But he had got
-through—there was the fact. And by no other way
-and with no smaller risk could he have got through.
-Paul Ravenel, watching that unprinted map upon the
-floor, over which he bent, had no doubt upon that point.
-A great risk nobly taken for a great end, and adroitly
-imagined! And with what speed they must have covered
-that difficult ground!</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Well, the little Praslin would lead very well,” he
-said aloud, but with just a hint of effort in his cordiality.
-“He knows his work.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“And you are on leave, Paul?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Marguerite was watching her lover with startled
-eyes. But Paul noticed neither her look nor the urgent
-appeal of her voice. He was away with his company
-in the bed of the Oued Zitoun, now stumbling over the
-great stones, now flung down headlong by the rush of
-the rain-swollen torrent and pressing on again in the
-hurried march. He sat tracing with his finger on the
-tiles the convolutions of the river, the point where the
-battalion must leave its shelter and march through the
-gardens to the gates—lost to all else. And Marguerite,
-watching him, caught at any reason which could reassure
-her.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Of course, Paul was unconsciously expressing the
-regret of a true soldier that his company had gone upon
-difficult and hazardous service without him, and a
-soldier’s interest in a brilliant manœuvre successfully
-accomplished. His absorption meant no more than
-that. But—but—his cry, “I am on leave,” startled out
-of him a challenge, an obstinate defiance, harsh with
-pain, rang in her ears still, argue as she might. In
-spite of herself, an appalling suspicion flickered like
-lightning through her mind and went out—and flickered
-again.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>She heard Paul asking questions of Selim and Selim
-answering. But she was asking of herself a question
-which made all other questions of little significance.
-If her suspicion were true, could his love for her remain?
-Could it live strongly and steadily after so
-enormous a sacrifice? Wouldn’t it die in contempt of
-himself and hatred of her? If Paul Ravenel had
-looked at Marguerite Lambert at this moment he
-would have seen the haggard dancing girl of the Villa
-Iris, as he had seen her under the grape-vine of the
-balcony with her seven francs clenched in her hand.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul, however, was giving his attention to Selim.
-The quarter of the hospitals and the Consulates was
-now thought to be safe, though the Moors, uplifted
-by their success, had planned to attack it that night.
-An attempt had been made by a company of Philipot’s
-battalion to force the Souk-Ben-Safi and its intricate,
-narrow streets, but the company had been driven back.
-A second company had been sent out to capture and
-hold the Bab-el-Mahroud, but it was now beleaguered
-and fighting for its life. Another section was at the
-Bab Fetouh, in the south of the town, under fire from
-the small mosque of Tamdert. A good many isolated
-Europeans had been rescued from the houses, and
-brought into the protected quarter, but Fez, as a whole,
-was still in the hands of the insurgents.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>At this point Paul Ravenel broke in with a sharp
-question.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You spoke to no one of this house?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Selim shook his head.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“To no one, Sidi.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“To none of the French soldiers? To no friend of
-the French? You are sure, Selim? You are very
-sure? There were no Europeans to be rescued from
-this house? Answer me truthfully!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Never was question more insistently expressed.
-Why?—why?—why? .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Marguerite found herself
-asking whilst her heart sank. That their secret might
-still be kept, its sweetness preserved for them? No,
-that reason was inadequate. Why, then? Because the
-danger was over? But it was not over. So much
-Selim had made very clear. The few troops had been
-withdrawn to the protected quarter of the Consulates.
-The detachments outside were hard put to it. The
-city of Fez was still in the hands of the insurgents.
-Why then? Why the eagerness that the French
-should know nothing of this secret house? Oh, there
-was an answer, dared she but listen to it! An answer
-with consequences as yet only dimly suspected. If it
-was the true answer!—Marguerite sat stunned. How
-was she to get away quite by herself that she might
-think her problem out, without betraying the trouble
-of her mind to Paul?</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>It was Paul himself who made escape easy for her.
-He dismissed Selim and said to Marguerite:</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I’ll go up on the roof, my dear, for a little while.
-The rain has stopped, but, dressed as you are, it
-wouldn’t be wise for you to come.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>The excuse was feeble, and he spoke looking away
-from Marguerite—a rare thing with him. But Marguerite
-welcomed the excuse and had no eyes for the
-shifty look of him as he made it.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Very well,” she said, in a dull voice, and Paul went
-quickly up the stairs.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Selim’s story had moved him to the depths of his
-soul. He was conscious of an actual nausea. “I should
-make the sacrifice again.” He repeated a phrase which
-had been growing familiar to him during this day, repeated
-it with a stubborn emphasis. But he was beginning
-to understand dimly what the sacrifice was to
-cost him. Soldiering was his business in life. He was
-sealed to it. He had known it when he stood in his
-father’s death room on the islet off the coast of Spain;
-and when he sat over Colonel Vanderfelt’s wine in the
-dining room looking out upon the moonlit garden; but
-never so completely as now when his thoughts were
-with the men of his company stumbling in the river
-bed, and his feet were dragging up the stairs to the
-roof.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I must be alone for a little while, otherwise Marguerite
-will guess the truth.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>It was an instinct rather than a formulated thought
-which drove him upwards. He dreaded Marguerite’s
-swift intuitions, that queer way she had of reaching
-certainty, cleaving her way to it like a bird through the
-air. He drew a long breath as he crept out upon the
-roof. He was alone now, and, sinking down upon the
-cushions underneath the parapet, he wrestled with his
-grief, letting it have its way up here in the darkness so
-that he might confine it the more surely afterwards.
-For an hour on this first night of the revolt he remained
-alone upon the roof-top whilst Marguerite,
-separated from him by the height of the beleaguered
-house, sat amongst the lighted candles in the room by
-the court, steeling herself to a sacrifice which should
-equal his.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>When she was sure of herself she wrapped a dark
-cloak about her shining frock and climbed in her turn
-to the roof. But she moved very silently, and when
-she raised her head above the trap she saw her lover
-stretched upon the terrace, his turban thrown aside, his
-face buried in his arms, his whole attitude one of almost
-Oriental grief. He was unaware of her until she
-crouched by his side and, with something maternal in
-the loving pity of her hands, gently stroked his head.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Paul!” she whispered, and he sprang swiftly up.
-She got a glimpse of a tortured face, and then he
-dropped by her side and, putting his arms about her,
-caught her to his heart.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“My dear! My dear!” he said.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Paul,” she began, in a breaking voice, but Paul
-would not listen. He pointed his arm westwards over
-the parapet.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Look!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>In their neighbourhood all was quiet, though here
-and there a building was burning near enough to light
-up from time to time their faces. But away in the
-southwest a broad red glare canopied the quarter and
-flames leapt and sank.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“What is that?” asked Marguerite, distracted from
-her purpose.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“The Mellah,” replied Paul. “They have looted and
-burnt it. It’s the rule and custom. Whatever the
-cause of an uprising, the Mellah is the first to suffer.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Marguerite had never set foot in that quarter. Paul
-described it to her—its dirty and crowded alleys, its
-blue-washed houses jammed together and packed with
-rich treasures and gaudy worthlessness, gramophones
-blaring out some comic song of London or Paris, slatternly
-women and men, ten thousand of them, and then
-the bursting in of the gates.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“And the Jews themselves! What has become of
-them?” she asked, with a shudder.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“God knows!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Unarmed, pounded like sheep within their high walls,
-they were likely to have been butchered like sheep, too.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“There’s a small new gate, however, leading to their
-cemetery. They may have found that way free,” said
-Paul, without any confidence. But, as a fact, they had
-escaped whilst their houses were being plundered. The
-gardens of the Sultan’s Palace, which adjoined, had
-been swiftly thrown open to them, and at this very
-moment they were camping there without food or
-money or shelter—except the lucky ones who had made
-little family groups in the empty cages of Mulai Hafid’s
-menagerie between the lions and the jaguars.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Paul”—Marguerite began a second time, but now
-a rattle of firing and a distant clamour of fierce cries
-broke out upon their left hand. Paul Ravenel turned
-in the direction of the noise eagerly, and as Marguerite
-turned with him, once more her attention was arrested.
-From a semi-circle of streets a blaze of light across
-which thick volumes of smoke drifted, rose above the
-house-tops, so that the faces of the two watchers were
-lit up as by a sunset.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“It is the attack upon the Consulates,” said Paul.
-“It will fail. There are troops enough now to hold it.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>On the other side of the city, however, to the north,
-it was a different matter. By the Bab-el-Mahroud the
-French outpost was hard-pressed. Paul was listening
-with all his intentness.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“It sounds as if our ammunition was running short,”
-he said, in a low, grave voice; and this time Marguerite
-was not to be denied. Kneeling up, she caught Paul
-by the arms as he sat, and turned him toward her.
-The light, strong and bright, was sweeping across his
-face in waves.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Paul, is it true?” she asked, searching his eyes.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul Ravenel had no need to ask what was true;
-he had no heart to deny its truth. The thing which
-most he dreaded had come to pass. Marguerite knew
-what he had done. He had been certain that she knew
-from the moment when she had laid her hand upon
-his head.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes,” he answered, meeting her gaze. “It is true.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You are not on leave!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“No.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You have deserted!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul’s face twitched with a spasm of pain, but he
-did not take his eyes from Marguerite.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes,” he said.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Marguerite shook him gently as one might shake a
-wayward child.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“But you can’t do that, Paul.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I have done it, Marguerite.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Oh, Paul—you can’t have understood what you
-were doing! You can’t have thought!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I have thought of everything.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You have sacrificed your honour.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I have you.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Your career.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I have you.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You have lost every friend.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“What do I care about friend’s, Marguerite, when I
-have you?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>She let go of his arms with such an expression of
-grief and despair upon her face as cut him to the
-heart to see. She bowed her forehead upon the palms
-of her hands and burst into tears. Paul drew her
-close to him, seeking to comfort her.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“We shall be together, Marguerite, always. Yesterday
-night, when I foretold you of these massacres—you
-took it lightly because we were together. You
-seemed to say nothing in the world mattered so long
-as we were together.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“But don’t you see, Paul”—she drew herself away
-and raised her face, down which tears were running—“we
-have been both of us alone to-night—already. You
-here on the roof—I in the court below—and we wanted
-to be alone, yes, my dear—why deny it, since I know?
-We wanted to be alone, each of us with our miserable
-thoughts.&nbsp;.&nbsp;.&nbsp;. In a little while you’ll hate me.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“No,” he said, violently. “That could never be.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>She bent her head over his hands and pressed them
-to her eyes, wetting them with her tears.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Paul,” she whispered between her sobs, “I can’t
-take such a sacrifice. Oh, my dear, you should have
-left me with my seven francs and my broken bundle
-on that balcony in Casablanca.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul stooped and kissed her hair.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Marguerite, I wouldn’t have left you there for anything
-in the world. From the moment I saw you there
-was no world for me, except the world in which you
-and I moved step by step and hand-in-hand.”</p>
-
-<div><h1 id='ch16'>CHAPTER XVI</h1></div>
-
-<h3>Marguerite’s Way Out</h3>
-
-<p class='noindent'><span class='lead-in'><span class='dropcap'>G</span>radually</span> the attack upon the Consulates
-died away. The waving light from the blaze
-of torches in the ring of streets about that
-quarter diminished, and darkness came again to the
-watchers upon the roof top. They sat huddled together
-in silence. Marguerite’s broken sobbing had ceased.
-Above them the bright stars wheeled in a sky of velvet.
-Only away to the north, where the beleaguered post still
-held out at the Bab-el-Mahroud, was there now any
-sound of firing, or any faint clamour of voices. The
-troubled city rested, waiting for daylight.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul became conscious that Marguerite was stirring
-out of the abandonment of grief in which she had lain.
-He felt her supple body stiffen in his arms. Some
-idea, some plan perhaps, had occurred to her of which
-he must beware; all the more because she did not speak
-of it. He was pondering what that plan might be,
-when above their heads, in their very ears it seemed,
-the first mueddin on the balcony of his minaret launched
-over the city his vibrant call to prayer.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>The sound startled them both so that they clung together.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Don’t move,” whispered Paul.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“The Companions of the Sick!” said Marguerite, in
-a low voice. “My dear, we shall need them to-night as
-much as any two in Fez.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>They waited for a few moments. Then they crept
-swiftly and silently to the hatchway and closed it above
-their heads. In Marguerite’s room Paul lighted the
-candles. Marguerite was wearing the little frock of
-white and silver in which she had dressed the night
-before, and she let the dark cloak slip from her shoulders
-and fall about her feet.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Paul,” she said, joining her hands together upon
-her breast in appeal. “I want you to do something—for
-me. You can walk safely through the streets.
-Dressed as you are, no one will know you. No one
-will suspect you. If you are spoken to, you can answer.
-You are Ben Sedira the Meknasi. I want you
-to go at once to the Protected quarter.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Why, Marguerite?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You can rejoin your battalion.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“No.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Oh, you can, Paul! You can make yourself known.
-They will let you through their barricades.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“It is too late,” said Paul.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Marguerite would not accept the quiet statement.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“No,” she pleaded, her eyes eager, her mouth
-trembling. “I have been thinking it out, my dear, up
-there on the roof. You can make an excuse. You
-were seized yesterday night after you had visited the
-Headquarters. You were pulled from your horse.
-You were kept imprisoned and escaped to-night.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul shook his head.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“No one would believe that story, Marguerite.
-The people of Fez are making no prisoners.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Then you took refuge in the house of a friend!
-You have many friends in Fez, Paul. A word from
-you and any one of them will back you up and say he
-gave you shelter. It’ll be so easy, Paul, if you’ll only
-listen.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“And meanwhile, Marguerite, what of you?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>She was waiting for that question with her answer
-ready upon her lips.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes. I have thought of that too, Paul. I shall be
-quite safe here now by myself. They have searched
-this house already. They went away satisfied with
-your story. They will not come here again.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul smiled at her tenderly. She stood before him
-with so eager a flush upon her face, a light so appealing
-in her eyes. Only this morning—was it so short
-a time ago as this morning?—yes, only this morning
-she had been terrified, even with him at her side, because
-they were shut in within this house without windows,
-because they could see nothing, know nothing,
-and must wait and wait with their hearts fluttering at
-a cry, at the crack of a rifle, at the sound of a step.
-Now her one thought was to send him forth, to endure
-alone the dreadful hours of ignorance and expectation,
-to meet, if needs must, the loneliest of deaths, so that
-his honour might be saved and his high career retained.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You are thinking too much of me, Marguerite,” he
-said, gently.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Marguerite shook her head.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I am thinking of myself, my dear, just as much as
-I am thinking of you. I am thinking of your love for
-me. What am I without it?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Nothing will change that,” protested Paul.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Marguerite smiled wistfully.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“My dear, how many lovers have used and listened
-to those words? Is there one pair that hasn’t? I am
-looking forward, Paul, to when this trouble is over—to
-the best that is possible for us two if we are alive
-when it is over. Your way! Flight, concealment for
-the rest of our lives and a bond of disgrace to hold us
-together instead of a bond of love which has done no
-harm to any one and has given a world of happiness to
-both of us. Paul, my way is the better way! Oh, believe
-it and leave me! Paul, I am pleading for myself—I
-am!—and”—the light went out of her eyes, her
-head and her body drooped a little; he had never seen
-anything so forlorn as Marguerite suddenly looked—“and,
-oh, ever so much more than you imagine!” she
-added, wistfully.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul took her by the arm which hung listlessly at
-her side.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“My dear, I can invent no story which would save
-me. The first shot was fired at noon to-day, not yesterday.
-Nothing can alter that. And even if it could
-be altered, I won’t leave you to face these horrors
-alone. I brought you to Fez—don’t let us forget that!
-I hid you in this house. My place is here with you.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>But whilst he was speaking Ravenel had a feeling
-that he had not reached to the heart of the plan which
-she had formed upon the roof. The sudden change in
-her aspect, the quick drop from eager pleading to a
-forlorn hopelessness, the wistful cry, “I am pleading
-for myself ever so much more than you imagine!”—No,
-he had not the whole of her intention. There was
-more in her mind than the effort to persuade him to
-leave her. There was a provision, a remedy, if persuasion
-failed.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul let her arm go and drew back a step or two until
-he leaned against a table of walnut wood set against
-the wall. Marguerite turned to the dressing-table and
-stood playing absently with her little ornaments, her
-brushes, and her combs. Then she surprised him by
-another change of mood. The eager, tender appeal,
-the sudden hopelessness were followed now by a tripping
-flippancy.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Fancy your caring so much for me, Paul!” she
-cried, and she tittered like a schoolgirl. “A little dancing
-thing from the Villa Iris! I am not worth it. Am
-I, Paul?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>She turned to him, soliciting “Yes” for an answer,
-smiling with her lips though she could not with her
-eyes, and keeping these latter lowered so that he should
-not see them. “Well, since your silence tells me so
-politely that I am, I’ll give up trying to persuade you
-to leave me.” She yawned. “I am tired to death,
-Paul. I shall sleep to-night. And you?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>She cocked her head on one side with a coquettish
-gaiety, false to her at any time, and never so false to
-her as now. To Paul, whose memory had warned him
-for the second time that day, it was quite dreadful to
-see.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I shall watch in the court below,” he said, and
-he moved a step or two away from the little table
-against the wall.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Then go, or I shall fall asleep where I stand,” said
-Marguerite, and she led him to the wide doors opening
-on to the landing. “I shall leave the doors open, so
-that you will be within call.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>She gave him a little push which was more of a
-caress than a push, and suddenly caught him back to
-her. Her eyes were raised now, her arms were about
-his neck.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Paul,” she whispered, and both eyes and lips were
-smiling gravely, “whatever happens to me, my dear,
-I shall owe you some wonderful months of happiness.
-Months which I had dreamed of, and which proved
-more wonderful than any dreams. Thank you, dear
-one! Thank you a thousand times!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>She kissed him upon the lips and laid her hand upon
-his cheek and stood apart from him.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Good-night, Paul.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul Ravenel answered her with a curious smile.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You might be saying good-bye to me, Marguerite.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Marguerite shook her head with determination.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I shall never say good-bye to you, Paul, not even
-if this very second we were to hear the assassins surging
-up the stairs,” she said, her eyes glowing softly
-into his, and a sure faith making her face very beautiful.
-“We have broken codes and laws, my dear, both
-of us. But we have both touched, I think, in spite of
-that, something bigger and finer than we had either of
-us believed was here to touch. And I don’t believe
-that—you and I”—she made a little gesture with her
-hand between herself and him—“the miracle as you
-called it, of you and me can end just snapped off and
-incomplete. Why, my dear, even if we go right back
-to earth, at the very worst, I believe,” she said, with a
-smile of humour, “some spark of you will kindle some
-dry tinder of me and make a flame to warm a luckier
-pair of lovers.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul looked at her in silence.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You talk to me like that!” he said, at length. “And
-then you try to persuade me you weren’t worth while.”
-He turned the moment of emotion with a laugh.
-“Good-night, Marguerite,” and he went downstairs.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Marguerite waited without moving whilst he descended
-the stairs and crossed the court. She heard
-him pass into the room with the archway and the
-clocks. He was quite invisible to her now. Therefore,
-so was she to him; and she was standing very close to
-the doors; just within her bedroom—no more. She
-stepped back silently. There were rugs upon the floor,
-and between the rugs she stepped most carefully lest
-one of the heels of her satin shoes should clack upon the
-boards. She went straight to the little table of walnut
-wood set against the wall and laid her hand upon the
-drawer. The handle was of brass; she lifted it so that
-it should not rattle, and so stood with an ear towards
-the stairway, listening. But no sound came from the
-court, there was not a creak of any tread on the stairs.
-Reassured, Marguerite pulled open the drawer a little
-way. The table had been fashioned in a century when
-tables really were made. The drawer slid out smoothly
-and noiselessly just far enough for Marguerite’s hand
-to slip through the opening.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Her fingers, however, touched nothing. She opened
-the drawer wider. It was empty. Yet it had not been
-empty that evening when she had changed her clothes.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Paul was standing here,” she said to herself. “Yes,
-facing me with his back to the table, whilst I was talking
-to him.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>She remembered now that when she had thrown her
-arms about his neck, as he stood in the doorway, he
-had kept his left hand behind his back. She sat down
-upon the edge of the bed, and a smile flitted across her
-face.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I might have known that he would have understood,”
-she whispered. He always had understood
-from the first moment when, without a word, he had
-called her to him at the Villa Iris. But Marguerite
-must make sure. She stole out on to the landing.
-From the point where she stood she could look down
-and across the court into the room with the clocks.
-Paul was lying upon the cushions in a muse, looking
-at something which lay darkly gleaming on the out-stretched
-palm of his hand—her little automatic pistol.
-He had cleaned it and reloaded it and replaced it in the
-drawer that afternoon, after Marguerite had fainted
-and it had exploded on the floor. He had taken it out
-of the drawer when Marguerite was bidding him good-bye
-a few minutes back. For, mingled with her words,
-another and a coarser voice had been whispering in his
-ears. “And if it comes—the grand passion! She will
-blow her brains out—the little fool!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Not from disillusionment, as Henriette with her bitter
-experience of life expected, but to save him, Paul
-Ravenel, to set him free, whilst there was still perhaps
-a chance that by some deft lie he might hold on to his
-career and his good name. “That, no!” said Paul, and
-he pushed the pistol into his waistbelt and composed
-himself for his long vigil.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>The candles burned down, and one by one flickered
-out; mueddin succeeded mueddin in the minaret; but
-for their voices the town was quiet; Paul Ravenel tired
-with the anxiety, the sleeplessness, and the inward conflicts
-which through thirty hours had been his share,
-nodded, dozed, and in the end slept. He woke to find
-the grey of the morning thinning the shadows in the
-house, making it chill and eerie and an abode of ghosts.
-Surely a ghost was stirring in the house with a little
-flutter and hiss of unsubstantial raiment, a ripple of
-silver and fire—there by the balustrade above the patio,
-now on the stairs.&nbsp;.&nbsp;.&nbsp;. And now Paul Ravenel,
-though he did not move, was wide awake, watching
-from his dark corner with startled eyes. Marguerite
-was on the stairs, now stopping to peer over towards
-her lover, lest he should have moved, now most stealthily
-descending.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>The last mueddin had ceased his chant, a hum of
-voices rose through the still air without the house; the
-city was waking to another day of massacre. And
-Marguerite was creeping down the stairs. She had not
-gone to bed that night, after all. She was still wearing
-her white frock with the embroidery of silver. She
-had thrown over her shoulders a glistening cloak. She
-had put on the jewels he had given her. They sparkled
-in the dim light on her bosom—a square sapphire hung
-on a chain of platinum and diamonds which went
-about her neck—on her wrists, on her shoes, at her
-waist.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Why? Why?” he asked of himself; and as Marguerite
-reached the foot of the stairs and stepped into
-the court, he had the answer to his question. For
-something gleamed in her hand—the great key of the
-street door.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul Ravenel was just in time. For with the swiftness
-and the silence of the ghost he had almost taken
-her to be, Marguerite flashed across the patio, and was
-gone.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Marguerite!” he cried aloud, as he sprang to his
-feet, so that the house rang with his cry. A sob, a
-wail of despair answered him, a clink as the heavy key
-dropped from her startled hands. He found her blindly
-fumbling at the bolts, distraught with her need of
-haste.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Paul, let me go! Let me go!” she cried.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>He lifted her in his arms as one lifts a child and carried
-her back into the court.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Marguerite!” he whispered. “A step outside that
-tunnel dressed as you are, now that Fez is awake,
-and—”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I know, I know,” she interrupted him. “I should
-be out of your way altogether. Oh, Paul, let me go!
-I have been thinking of it all night. I can’t take, all
-the time, and everything you have that’s dear to you!
-Let me give too—something in return—my life, my
-dear, that’s worth so little. Oh, Paul, let me give it
-now, when I am ready to give it—before my courage
-goes,” and she struggled and beat upon his breast with
-her small fists in a frenzy.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>But he held her close to him. “Poor child, what a
-night of horror she must have lived through,” he reflected.
-Lying on her bed in the dark, waiting for the
-first gleam of dawn, for the first sounds of the city’s
-awakening, and shutting her eyes and her ears against
-the terror of these savage and wild-eyed fanatics, forbidding
-her heart to sink before the ordeal of her great
-sacrifice. She had decked herself out in her jewels,
-like that bride of whom she had told him, but for a
-different reason; that she might the sooner attract notice
-and invite murder.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“It was mad, Marguerite!” he cried, and then, holding
-her to his heart. “But it was splendid!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Already her strength was waning. She no longer
-struggled. She hung in his arms. Her hands stroked
-his face.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Let me go, Paul,” she pleaded, “won’t you? It
-will be quick. The first of them who sees me! Oh,
-while I can do it. My dear, my dear, I’ll gladly die
-for you, I love you so.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Quick?” exclaimed Paul Ravenel, savagely. “You
-don’t know them! I have seen our men on the battlefields.
-Quick? My dear, they would bind you hand
-and foot and give you to their women to mutilate
-alive.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Marguerite uttered a cry and struggled against him
-no more. He carried her up the stairs, undressed her,
-and put her to bed. She laid her hand in his. He
-would have his way. She gave herself into his keeping
-and, holding fast on to his hand, she fell asleep.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>That morning the roar of the guns was louder, and
-the shells were flying over the city.</p>
-
-<div><h1 id='ch17'>CHAPTER XVII</h1></div>
-
-<h3>The Outcasts</h3>
-
-<p class='noindent'><span class='lead-in'><span class='dropcap'>T</span>hat</span> day, the eighteenth of April, broke in
-gloom. A heavy canopy of sullen clouds hung
-over Fez. Nowhere within eye’s reach was
-there a slant of sunshine. There were no shadows, no
-flashes of colour. White houses and dark gardens and
-green-tiled mosques all lay very clear and near and distinct,
-but without any of the radiance which on a day
-of sunlight gives to the city so magical a beauty, that a
-stranger looking down upon it can believe that he has
-wandered into fairyland.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>The shells were screaming over Fez from the south.
-They dispersed the Moors holding the North Fort outside
-the walls, and they destroyed the Castle of Sidi
-Bou Nafa in Fez Djedid, close to the Sultan’s Palace,
-which was held in force by the insurgents. But there
-were too many refugees still hiding and too many Fazi
-secretly friendly to the French to make possible such a
-bombardment as would reduce the city to terms.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>The insurgents were still in possession of every
-quarter of the town except the Sultan’s Palace and the
-district of the Embassy and Consulates. The little post
-at the Bab-el-Mahroud had been exterminated during
-the night. The company of which that post had been
-a section, under Captain Henry, subsequently to be
-famous as a general upon a wider field, was fighting its
-way desperately back in the Souk Senadjine. Another
-company sent to join hands with him and occupy the
-quarter of Tala was held up in the Souk-Ben-Safi; and
-the post at the southern gate of Bab Fetouh was in
-desperate straits. The only gleam that morning was
-the rescue of the guests besieged in the Hôtel de France
-under the covering fire of a platoon stationed on the
-roof of the British Consulate. The screams of the
-women indeed shrilled from the terraces with a fiercer
-exultation than even on the outbreak of the rising.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Marguerite woke later to the sound of them. She
-held her hands over her ears and called loudly to Paul:</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I want to look at your arm,” she said, when he ran
-to her.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“It’s going on finely. It can wait until you are
-dressed.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“No.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>She slipped her legs out of bed and sat on the edge
-of it, thrusting her feet into her slippers. She wanted
-to do something at once which would take her thoughts
-from that piercing and inhuman din. Paul brought to
-her the medicine-chest and she dressed and bandaged
-the half-healed wound.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Thank you, Marguerite. I’ll tell them to get your
-bath ready,” he said, as he turned to go. But the
-screaming overhead made her blood run cold. She
-could endure the roar of the seventy-fives, the rattle
-of musketry, even the wild yelling of the men; but this
-cruel frenzy of the gaily-dressed women upon the
-house-tops, never tiring whilst daylight lasted, shocked
-her as something obscene, the screaming of offal-birds,
-not women, a thing not so much unnatural as an accusation
-against nature and the God that made nature.
-She quickly called her lover back.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Paul, you took my little pistol from the drawer of
-my table there last night.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Well?” said Paul, looking at her in doubt.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I want you to give it back to me.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul Ravenel hesitated.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You need not fear,” she continued. “Yesterday I
-meant to use it—for your dear sake as I thought—or
-rather for both our sakes. But since you will keep me
-with you—why, all that’s over and I shall not use it unless
-there is real need. Listen!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>She lifted her hand and, as she listened, shuddered.
-“You spoke of those women this morning. What they
-would do to me. I should feel—safe if you would give
-my pistol back to me.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul took it from his belt and laid it on the flat of
-her hand.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Thank you,” she said, with a sigh of relief. She
-sat on the edge of the bed, her hair tumbled about her
-shoulders, smiling at this little weapon which could
-make death swift and easy, like a child delighted with
-a new toy.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Things which make the flesh crawl and the spirit
-shudder have sometimes a curious and dreadful fascination.
-All through their luncheon these strident
-cries called to Marguerite, drew her like some morbid
-vice. She wanted to creep up on to the roof, to crouch
-behind the parapet, though she knew that her heart
-would miss its beats and her senses reel on the edge of
-terror. And when Paul Ravenel said:</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Marguerite, I shall lie down on my bed and sleep
-when we have finished,” she realized that it was her
-own wish which he was uttering. She was almost disappointed
-when he lit a cigar. A cigarette, yes; but a
-cigar! That needs a deal of smoking. “You’ll wake
-me if there’s need,” said Paul. “I think that I shall
-sleep soundly.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Marguerite noticed the heaviness of his eyelids, and
-was filled with compunction.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“If I must,” she answered, determining that whatever
-happened he who had hardly slept at all for fifty
-hours should sleep his sleep out now.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Yet within an hour she had waked him.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Hardly, indeed, had Paul’s eyes closed before she
-climbed to the roof. The terraces of the houses were a
-very kaleidoscope of shifting colours. Orange, scarlet,
-deep waistbelts of cloth of gold over dresses of purple
-and blue and pink were grouped in clusters here like
-flower beds. There the women moved in and out with
-frantic gestures like revellers in Bedlam. And over all
-the shrill vibrant pæan like a canopy!</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Marguerite watched and listened, shivering—until
-one house caught and riveted her eyes. Beneath her
-flowed the Karouein river. The farther bank was
-lined with the walls of houses, and about one, a little to
-Marguerite’s right, there was suddenly a great commotion.
-Marguerite lifted her head cautiously above the
-parapet and looked down. A narrow path ran between
-the houses and the stream, and this path was suddenly
-crowded with men as though they had sprung from the
-earth. They beat upon the door, they fired senselessly
-at the blind mud walls with rifles, they shouted for admittance.
-And the roof of that one house was empty.
-Marguerite was suddenly aware of it. It was the only
-empty roof in all that row of houses.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>The shouts from the path were redoubled. Orders
-to open became screams of exultation, threats of vengeance.
-Marguerite, looking down from her high vantage
-point, saw the men upon the pathway busy like
-ants. A group of them clustered suddenly. They
-seemed to stoop, to lengthen themselves into line—and
-now she saw what they were lifting. A huge square
-long beam of wood—a battering ram? Yes, a battering
-ram. Three times the beam was swung against the
-door to the tune of some monotonous rhythm of the
-East, which breathed of deserts and strange temples
-and abiding wistfulness, curiously out of keeping with
-the grim violence which was used. At the fourth blow
-the door burst and broke. It was as though a river
-dam had broken and a river torrent leapt in a solid
-shaft through the breach.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>For a few moments thereafter nothing was seen by
-Marguerite. The walls of the house were a curtain between
-her and the tragic stage. She could only imagine
-the overturning of furniture, the pillage of rooms a
-moment since clean and orderly, now a dirty wreckage,
-a pandemonium of a search—and then the empty roof
-was no longer empty. A man sprang out upon it, a
-man wearing the uniform of a French officer. He had
-been bolted like a rat by dogs.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Clearly his enemies were upon his heels. Marguerite
-saw him spring over the parapet on to the adjoining
-roof and a cloud of women assail him. Somehow he
-threw them off, somehow he dived and dodged between
-them, somehow he reached the further parapet, found
-a ladder propped against the outside wall, and slid
-down it on to a third housetop. And as he reached
-the flat terrace, yet another swarm of screaming termagants
-enveloped him. He was borne down to the floor
-of the room.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>For a little while there was a wild tossing of arms,
-a confusion of bodies. It seemed to Marguerite as
-though all these women had suddenly melted into one
-fabulous monster. Then, with shrieks of joy and flutterings
-of scarves and handkerchiefs, they stood apart,
-dancing flatly on their feet. The officer for his part
-lay inert and for the best of reasons; he was bound
-hand and foot.&nbsp;.&nbsp;.&nbsp;. And shortly afterwards the
-women lighted a fire.&nbsp;.&nbsp;.&nbsp;.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“A fire?” said Marguerite, in a perplexity. “Why
-a fire?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>She watched—and then she heard the dreadful loud
-moan of a man in the extremity of pain. In a moment
-she was shaking Paul Ravenel by the shoulder, her face
-white and quivering, her eyes still looking out in horror
-upon a world incredible.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Paul! Paul! Wake up!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Ravenel came slowly out of a deep sleep, with a
-thought that once more the insurgents were about his
-door. But a few stammering words from Marguerite
-brought him quickly to his feet. He unlocked a cupboard
-and took from it a carbine in a canvas case. He
-slipped off the case and fitted a charged magazine beneath
-the breech.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You will wait here, Marguerite.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Whilst he was speaking he was already on the stair.
-Marguerite could not wait below as he had bidden her.
-This horror must end. She must know, of her own
-knowledge, that it had ended. She followed Paul as
-far as the mouth of the trap, and came to a stop there,
-her feet upon the stairs, her head just above the level
-of the roof. The groans of the tortured man floated
-across the open space mingled with the triumphant
-screams of the women.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Oh, hurry, Paul, hurry,” she cried, and she heard
-him swear horribly.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>The oath meant less than nothing to her. Would he
-never fire? He was kneeling behind the parapet,
-crouching a little so that not a flutter of his haik
-should be visible, with the barrel of his carbine resting
-upon the bricks. Why didn’t he fire? She stamped
-upon the stairs in a frenzy of impatience. She could
-not see that the women were perpetually shifting and
-crossing about their victim and obscuring him from
-Paul Ravenel.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>At last a moment came when the line of sight was
-clear; and immediately the carbine spoke—once and no
-more; and all about her in this upper city of the air all
-noises ceased, groans, exultations, everything. It was
-to Marguerite as though the crack of that carbine had
-suspended all creation. In a few seconds the shrill
-screams broke out again, but there could be no doubt
-about their character. They were screams of terror.
-These, in their turn, dwindled and ceased. Had Marguerite
-raised her head above the parapet now she
-would have seen that those terraces so lately thronged
-were empty except one on which a fire was burning,
-and where one man in a uniform lay quite still and at
-peace with a bullet through his heart.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>But Marguerite was watching Paul, who had sunk
-down below the edge of the parapet and was gazing
-upwards with startled eyes. Marguerite crept to his
-side.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“What is it?” she whispered.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul pointed. Just above their heads a tiny wisp
-of smoke coiled and writhed in the air like an adder.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“If that were seen—” said Paul, in a low voice.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>If that tiny wisp from the smokeless powder of his
-cartridge were seen floating in the air, there would be
-no doubt from what roof the shot had been fired. Paul
-drew Marguerite down beside him; together they
-watched. There was no wind at all; the air was sluggish
-and heavy; it seemed to them that the smoke was
-going slowly to curl and weave above their heads for
-ever. It grew diaphanous, parted into fine shreds,
-tumbled, and at last was gone.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>The two lovers looked at one another with a faint
-smile upon their lips. But they did not move; they
-crouched down, seeing nothing but the empty sky above
-their heads.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>The danger was not past. At any moment the sound
-of blows upon their door might resound again through
-the house. Or they might hear a ladder grate softly
-on the outside of this parapet, as it was raised from
-one of the roofs below. They waited there for half
-an hour. Then a shell screamed above their heads and
-exploded. It was followed by another and another.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“They are shelling the Souk-Ben-Safi,” said Paul.
-“Look! You can see the twinkle of the guns.” He
-pointed out to her the flashes on the hills to the east
-of the town. “That’s the way! Let the guns talk to
-these torturers!” He shook his fist over the town,
-standing upright now upon the roof, his face aflame
-with anger.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Paul! Paul!” Marguerite cried in warning.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“There’s no one to see,” he returned, with a savage
-laugh. “One shell in the Souk-Ben-Safi and they’re
-shivering in their cellars. Come, let us go down!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>For an hour the shells screeched above the roof, and
-Paul, as he cleaned his carbine, whistled joyously. He
-raised his head from his task to see Marguerite, very
-white in the face, clinging to her chair with clenched
-hands, and trying in vain to whistle too.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I am a brute,” he cried, in compunction. “They
-won’t touch this house, Marguerite! It’s too near the
-Karouein Mosque. The French are going to stay in
-Morocco. They’ll not touch the Karouein Mosque.
-There’s no spot in Fez safer from our guns.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Marguerite professed herself reassured, but it did
-occur to her that gunners and even guns might make
-occasionally a mistake, and she drew a very long
-breath of relief when the bombardment ceased.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul Ravenel, however, fell into a restless mood,
-pacing the court, and now and again coming to a stop
-in front of Marguerite with some word upon his lips,
-which, after all, he did not speak. Marguerite guessed
-it, and after a little struggle made herself his interpreter.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“The bombardment’s over. It will keep Fez quiet
-for awhile. Even if that wisp of smoke was seen, no
-crowd will come here for an explanation—yet, at all
-events. Why don’t you go outside into the town and
-get the news?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>The eager light in his eyes told her clearly that she
-had interpreted him aright. But Paul, not knowing
-the reason which had prompted her, sought for another.
-He looked at Marguerite warily.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I gave you back your pistol,” he said.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“And I promised not to use it,” she replied.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul shifted from one foot to the other, anxious for
-news, eager, after his two days’ confinement in this
-shell, for action, yet remorseful for his eagerness.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“It wouldn’t be fair,” he said, half-heartedly.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“But I want you to go,” she answered, with a glimmer
-of a smile at this man turned shamefaced school-boy
-who stood in front of her. “You’re wild to go
-really, Paul, and I am in no danger.” She drew a
-swift breath as she said that and hoped that he would
-not notice it.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul Ravenel did not.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes, I am restless, Marguerite,” he said in a burst.
-“I’ll tell you why? Do you know what I did on the
-roof? What I had to do?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You frightened the women away—shot one of
-them—put an end to their fiendishness.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul shook his head.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“That would have been no use, my dear. The man,
-a brother-officer of mine, would still have lain upon
-that roof in torture and helpless. They would have
-left him there till dark and finished their work then, if
-he were still alive. Can you guess what they were
-doing? They were burning his head slowly.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Oh!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Marguerite had a vision of herself rushing out into
-the street as only that morning she had proposed to do,
-and meeting the same fate. She covered her eyes with
-her hands.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I am sorry, dear. I had to tell you, because I have
-to tell you this too. I killed him.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Marguerite took her hands from her face and stared
-at her lover.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I had to,” said Paul, in a dull voice. “There was
-no other way to save him. But, of course, it”—and he
-sat down suddenly with his hands clenched together
-and his head bowed—“it troubles me dreadfully.
-Who he was I don’t know; his face was blackened with
-the fire. But he may have served with me in the
-Chaiouïa—he may have marched up with me to Fez—we
-may have sat together on many nights over a camp
-fire, telling each other how clever we were—and I had
-to kill him, just as one puts a horse out of its misery.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Oh, my dear,” said Marguerite. She was at his
-side with her arm about his shoulders—comforting
-him. “I didn’t understand. You could do nothing
-else. And you were quick. He would be the first to
-thank you.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul took the hand that was laid upon his shoulders
-gratefully. “No, I could do nothing else,” he said.
-“But I want to move, so that I mayn’t think of it.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I know,” she said.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>She made light of her own isolation in that house.
-Paul, it was plain to her, was in a dangerous mood.
-Horror at the thing which he had been forced to do,
-anger at the stroke of fate which had set him to the
-tragic choice between his passion and his duty, bitterness
-against the men in power who had refused to listen,
-were seething within him. He was in a mood to
-run riot in a berserk rage at a chance word, a chance
-touch, to kill and kill and kill, until he in turn was
-borne down and stamped to death. But Marguerite
-stood aside. One appeal—it would be enough if only
-her eyes looked it—and without a doubt he would stay.
-Yes, stay and remember that he had been stayed! She
-did not even bid him take care or hurry back to her.
-She called Selim and bade him stand by the outer
-door.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul took a great staff in his hand and came back to
-Marguerite, and kissed her on the lips.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Thank you,” he said. “How you know!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I pay my little price, Paul, for a very big love,”
-and as was her way, she turned off the moment of
-emotion with a light word and a laugh. “There! Run
-along, and mind you don’t get your feet wet!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>For three hours thereafter she sat alone in the court,
-with her pistol in her hand, paying her little price; outside
-the noise of a town in tumult, inside the ticking of
-a clock. And darkness came.</p>
-
-<p class='line' style='text-align:center;margin-top:1em;margin-bottom:1em;'>*&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;*&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;*&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;*&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;*</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Marguerite had her reward. Paul Ravenel returned
-at eight o’clock, his robes covered with dust and mud,
-his body tired, but his black mood gone. He dressed
-himself after his bath in the grey suit of a European,
-and as they sat at dinner he gave Marguerite his good
-news. The back of the rebellion was broken. The
-tribes which were gathering in the South and East of
-the town had been dispersed by the artillery.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Moinier and his column will be here before they can
-gather again. They were the great danger, Marguerite.
-For if they had once got into Fez they would have
-looted it from end to end. Friend’s house or enemy’s
-house, Fasi or Christian, would have been all the same
-to those gentlemen.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>The rising was premature. That had been the cause
-of its failure. The quarter of the Consulates and the
-Embassy had not been carried by storm on the first
-day. A number of the Askris who had joined the insurgents
-under fear, were now returning to their duties.
-The great dignitaries of the Maghzen were in a hurry
-to protest their loyalty by returning the few wounded
-prisoners and such dead bodies of the French soldiers
-as they could collect, to the headquarters at the Hospital.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“There’s still a post very hard-pressed at the Bab
-Fetouh. An effort was made to relieve it this afternoon—”
-Paul Ravenel broke off abruptly with a sudden
-smile upon his face and a light of enjoyment in his
-eyes. “I expect that they will try now from Dar-Debibagh
-outside the walls. It should be easier that way,”
-he said hurriedly.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Something had happened that afternoon of which
-he had not told Marguerite, and to which he owed his
-high spirits. Marguerite was well aware of it. She
-had not a doubt that he was hiding from her some rash
-act of which he was at once rather ashamed and very
-glad; and it amused her to note how clever he thought
-himself in concealing it from her. What had happened
-in that attempt to relieve the post at the Bab Fetouh?
-Marguerite did not ask, having a fine gift of silence.
-She had Paul back safe and sound, and the worst of
-their dangers was over. They were gay once more
-that night, looking upon it as a sort of sanctuary between
-the dangers of the past two days and the troubles
-which awaited them in the future.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Shall we go up on the roof?” Marguerite asked,
-looking at the clock.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“We will go halfway up to the roof,” replied Paul,
-and Marguerite laughed as he put out the candles.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>The next day the rebellion was over. A battalion
-from Meknes with a section of mitrailleuses marched
-in at three o’clock in the afternoon, having covered the
-sixty-five kilometres in a single stage. An order was
-given that every house which wished to avoid bombardment
-must fly the tricolour flag on the following morning,
-and Fez was garnished as for a festival. Never
-was there so swift a change. On every housetop daybreak
-saw the flag of France, and though the women
-thronged the terraces as yesterday, they were as silent
-as the bricks of their parapets. By a curious chance
-the pall of sullen rain-charged clouds, which for four
-days had hung low, was on this morning rolled away,
-and the city shimmered to the sun.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul and Marguerite watched the strange spectacle,
-hidden behind their roof wall; and their thoughts were
-busy with the same question:</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“What of us now—the outcasts?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul looked across the city to Fez Djedid and the
-East. From that quarter General Moinier’s column
-was advancing. One day—two days perhaps—three
-days at the most, and it would be here at the Bab
-Segma. There was little time!</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>He turned to find Marguerite’s eyes swimming in
-tears.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Paul, can nothing be done to give you back your
-own place?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Nothing, Marguerite. Let us face it frankly! I
-went to Headquarters and warned them. Therefore
-I knew the danger. All the more, therefore, my place
-that night was with my company. Nothing can get
-over that.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Marguerite with a sob buried her face in her hands.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“What I have cost you, Paul!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“What you have given me, Marguerite!” he replied,
-and fell into a silence. When he spoke to her again he
-spoke with his eyes averted from her face, lest she
-should read more than he meant her to in his.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Of course, Marguerite, you have done no wrong.
-.&nbsp;.&nbsp;. We have got to consider that, my dear. There
-isn’t really any reason why you should pay too. You
-wanted to take the risk.&nbsp;.&nbsp;.&nbsp;.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“The certainty, Paul, as it turned out. I should not
-be in the sunshine on this roof now if you had listened
-to me,” she interrupted; but Paul was not to be led
-aside.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“What I mean is that you are not responsible. I
-am, I alone. Therefore, there’s no reason why you
-should cut yourself off from all the things which make
-life lovely,” he continued. “For it means that, my
-dear. All the things which make life lovely will go.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Except one,” said Marguerite, quietly, “and that
-one outweighs all the rest.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Still Paul would not turn to her.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Think well, Marguerite!” and he spoke without stirring,
-in a level, toneless voice, so that no spark of his
-desire might kindle her to a sacrifice which, after days,
-monotonous and lonely, would lead her bitterly to regret.
-“Think carefully! You can travel in a little
-while to the coast. You can go home. No one can
-gainsay you. You will not be poor any more. In a
-few years you will be able to look back upon all this as
-a dream.&nbsp;.&nbsp;.&nbsp;.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Don’t, Paul!” she said, in a low voice. “You hurt
-me. You make me ashamed. How could I go home
-and live, leaving you here?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>But what hurt and shamed her most, she could not
-tell him. It was the knowledge that this hero of hers,
-this—her man who could do no wrong, had done such
-wrong for her that he was now an outcast who must
-dodge and duck his head, and slink unrecognized in the
-shadows. Her pain, however, was evident enough in
-the quiver of her voice and the tight clasp of her hand
-upon his arm.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Look at me, Paul!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>She waited until he had turned, and her great eyes,
-dewy and tender, rested upon his.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Where you go, I go. That was settled for us at
-the Villa Iris on the night we met, perhaps even before
-that.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul argued no more. He was kneeling in front of
-her upon a cushion. He took her two hands, and, lifting
-them, he bowed his head and pressed the palms
-against his face.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Then let us go down and make our plans,” he said.
-“For what we do, we must do very quickly.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>His urgency startled her.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“But this house is not known. We are safe here!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul glanced again towards the east. He had the
-look of the hunted.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“There’s a man drawing nearer to us every minute
-who will rake through Fez with a fine-tooth comb to
-find out what has become of me,” he said.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“An enemy?” Marguerite asked, in dismay.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“No; my friend, Gerard de Montignac. He is on
-Moinier’s staff.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“But he will remain your friend,” cried Marguerite,
-“even if he—”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul Ravenel completed the sentence for her.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Discovers that I deserted. Not he! Perhaps, just
-because he was my friend, he would be harder than
-any other.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Underneath the good-fellowship, the fun, the delight
-in the gaieties and ornaments of life, Gerard de
-Montignac had all the hard practical logic of the French
-character. Certain things are not permissible. For
-those who do them there is a law, and that is the end of
-the matter. And at the very head of the things that
-are not permissible is the tampering with the military
-oath.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Friendship will lead Gerard to search for me in
-every corner,” said Paul. That was the danger. For
-if Gerard stumbled upon the truth in his search, the
-friend would turn straightway into the hunter.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul followed Marguerite down the stairs, and they
-talked earnestly for a long while. Then Paul arranged
-his haik about his turban, slipped his djellaba of wool
-over his linen caftan, and, going out, was very busy in
-Fez all that day.</p>
-
-<div><h1 id='ch18'>CHAPTER XVIII</h1></div>
-
-<h3>Captain Laguessière’s Report</h3>
-
-<p class='noindent'><span class='lead-in'><span class='dropcap'>O</span>n</span> the twenty-first of April, three days later,
-Gerard de Montignac rode into Fez at ten
-o’clock of the morning behind General Moinier.
-He was lodged at the Auvert Hospital and as he came
-out of his room he passed in the corridor a face which
-he remembered. He turned on the instant.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Baumann!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Baumann was that short stockish Alsatian belonging
-to the Department of Native Affairs, whom Gerard
-many months before had sought at the Villa Iris. He
-shook Gerard’s hand with deferential warmth.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Captain de Montignac! How can I serve you?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>The sight of Gerard always made Baumann think of
-the Bois de Bologne and brought to his nostrils a smell
-of Paris. “Stylish” was Baumann’s epithet for this
-slim razor-like being.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You can tell me for a second time how it goes with
-my <span class='it'>grand serieux</span>, and where he is to be found.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Baumann was enchanted by the familiar allusion.
-It made him out as an intimate of Captain de Montignac.
-But he was baffled too.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“The name would help,” he said, hesitating.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Oh, Paul Ravenel, of course,” replied Gerard impatiently,
-and Baumann’s face lengthened. He fidgeted
-uncomfortably on his feet. Yes, Paul Ravenel, to be
-sure! Captain de Montignac had been uneasy about
-Paul Ravenel in Casablanca, when there was really no
-occasion for uneasiness. This time, however, the case
-was very different.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Alas, my Captain, I can give you no news of your
-friend at all. Many officers were caught at a disadvantage.
-We are afraid—yes, we are all very much
-afraid.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Gerard, with his legs apart and his hands thrust into
-the pockets of his riding-breeches, looked at his twittering
-companion for a moment. Then he said abruptly:</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Let me hear!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Baumann had an uncomfortable little story to tell.
-Late on the night of the sixteenth, the night before the
-massacres openly began, Captain Ravenel had ridden
-up to the door of the hospital with a native servant
-carrying a lantern in front of him. He was labouring
-under a great anxiety and distress. Baumann himself
-received Captain Ravenel and heard his story. Captain
-Ravenel had assured him that the Askris would revolt
-immediately, and that there would be a massacre
-of the white people throughout the city.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“And you didn’t believe Paul Ravenel?” thundered
-Gerard de Montignac. Baumann was in a haste to
-exculpate himself.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I waked up the two Intelligence Officers, Colonel
-Renaud and Captain Brouarre,” he said. “They came
-down in their pyjamas. We went into the room on
-the right of the entrance here, and the Captain told us
-all again many bad things which have since been fulfilled.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“And you wouldn’t believe Paul Ravenel!” Gerard
-looked at Baumann with a bitter amazement. “He
-gave you the warning, he, the wise one, and you
-thought he was exaggerating like some panic-stricken
-rich Fasi.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“We hoped he was exaggerating,” said the unhappy
-Baumann. “You see, our hands were tied. Reports
-that disturbances were likely had gone to the Embassy
-before and had been not very civilly received. It was
-an order that no similar reports should be presented.
-It was late at night. We could do nothing.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Gerard could read into the halting sentences all that
-Baumann was not the man to say.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Well?” he asked, curtly. “What of Paul?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul, very disappointed, had mounted his horse
-again and ridden off to the Bab Segma on his way to
-the camp at Dar-Debibagh.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“But he never reached the camp. He has not been
-seen since. We are all very much afraid.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>It was quite clear that Baumann had no hope at all
-that Paul Ravenel would ever be seen again.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Most of our people scattered through Fez have
-been accounted for,” he added. “Many were rescued
-and brought here to safety. The bodies of others, too,
-but not of all. There has been no means of making
-enquiries.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“That of course I understand,” said Gerard de Montignac,
-as he turned sorrowfully away.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Gerard was a monarchist. Some day the French
-would have a king again, when there was a claimant
-worth his salt. Meanwhile he was heart and soul for
-France, whatever its régime. So his first grief now
-was for the loss to France of the great soldier that was
-surely to be—nay, that was already beginning to be.
-He had lost a good comrade and friend too. These
-losses must be paid for—as soon as there was leisure
-to exact payment—and paid for in full.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Meanwhile he went about his work. On the twenty-second
-the troops occupied the city. The two following
-days were taken up in the disarmament of the population.
-Yet other two days were given to pleadings and
-arguments and exhortations to Paris and the Civil Authorities
-for permission to declare a state of siege.
-Only when this permission was reluctantly granted and
-the order made, could any of the General’s staff unbutton
-their tunics and give a little time to their own affairs.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Gerard’s first move was to ride out to the camp at
-Dar-Debibagh, whither Paul’s battalion of tirailleurs
-had now returned. There he found the little Praslin
-now in command of Paul’s company, and the little
-Praslin had information of importance to give to him.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Captain Ravenel rode back with me to the camp
-from the Sultan’s Palace on the evening of the sixteenth,
-after the great storm,” said Praslin. “He was
-very glad that the storm had delayed for three days the
-departure of the Mission.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“He knew already, then, that afternoon, that the
-massacres were coming!” said Gerard.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“No! I should say not. He was quite frank about
-the whole position of affairs here, as he saw it. If he
-had imagined that Fez itself was going to rise he would
-have said so, I am sure. What he did believe was that
-a serious attack would be made upon the Mission out
-in the bled, on its way to the coast.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“He was afraid that the escort was not strong
-enough?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“He certainly thought that,” replied Praslin, slowly,
-and in a voice which suggested that he did not consider
-this explanation at all adequate to explain Paul’s satisfaction
-at the postponement of the march. “But fear
-doesn’t enter into the matter at all. There was something
-more. I got the impression that he just hated
-the idea of going down to the coast if only for a few
-weeks. He wanted to stay on here in Fez. An attack
-on the line of march! That he would have considered
-as in the day’s work. No. He didn’t want to leave
-Fez. Curious! Wasn’t it?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Gerard glanced sharply at Lieutenant Praslin.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Oho!” he exclaimed, softly. “Curious? Yes!
-But then Paul Ravenel was never like the rest of
-us.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>He remained silent for a little while, turning some
-quite new thought over and over uneasily in his mind.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Well?” he said, waking up again.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“After we had returned here, he changed into a dry
-uniform, for we were both wet through, and told me
-that he was going to dine with a friend in Fez,” Praslin
-resumed. “I reminded him that there was a battalion
-parade at six the next morning.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“He answered that he had not forgotten and rode
-off.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“And that was the last you heard of him?” asked
-Gerard de Montignac.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“No!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Oh?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“It was the last I saw of him,” Praslin corrected.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“What do you mean?” asked Gerard de Montignac.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Five minutes after Captain Ravenel had gone, a
-native came to the camp and asked for him. He carried
-a letter.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Gerard’s face lit up.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“A letter? What became of it?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“It was taken by Captain Ravenel’s orderly and
-placed on the table in his tent.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“The next morning I saw it there and took charge
-of it. It was addressed in Arabic.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You have got it still?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Let me see it!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Gerard reminded the little Praslin of some lean
-sharp-nosed pointer which somewhere in the stubble
-has picked up a scent. Praslin led him to his tent, unlocked
-a leather satchel and tipped out a number of letters
-on to his bed.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Here it is!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>He handed a paper, not an envelope, folded and
-sealed and superscribed in Arabic characters, to Gerard.
-Gerard almost snatched at it. But once he had it in
-his hands, he was no longer so sure. He twiddled it
-between his fingers and gingerly. He sat down in
-Praslin’s camp chair and looked at Praslin and looked
-at the letter. He seemed to be afraid of what he might
-read in it. Finally, in a burst, he cried:</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I shall open it.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“But of course,” said the little Praslin.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Gerard broke the seal and read. Praslin wondered
-what he had dreaded to find written upon that paper,
-so evident was his relief now. It was the letter from
-Si El Hadj Arrifa which had just missed Paul Ravenel
-on the night of the sixteenth. It began with the
-usual flowery protestations and ended with an apologetic
-request that Paul should not come into Fez that
-night.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“This makes everything easier,” said Gerard, springing
-up from his chair. “I shall keep this letter, Praslin.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>He returned with it in his pocket and at once made
-inquiries as to what was known of Si El Hadj Arrifa.
-The warning on the face of it was a sign of goodwill
-to France. Yes, but some of these Fasi were very foxy
-people. This letter arriving at the camp just too late to
-save Paul Ravenel’s life, but in heaps of time to establish
-Si El Hadj Arrifa’s good name for loyalty, might
-easily have been despatched with those two objects. It
-was all quite in keeping with the sly furtive character
-of the men of Fez. However, Gerard was soon satisfied
-on that point. Si El Hadj Arrifa was of the real
-friends. Gerard accordingly knocked upon his door
-that very night.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>He was received with much ceremony and a great
-warmth of welcome; not to be wondered at, since the
-Moor had been sitting cowering behind his stoutly-barred
-door ever since the night of the sixteenth. Gerard
-made haste to put the timid man at his ease.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“All the weapons have been collected. All the gates
-are held by armed posts. A state of siege is proclaimed
-so that violence can be dealt with sternly and at once,”
-he said. But even then he must not put the questions
-burning on his tongue. France was to remain in
-Morocco. Very well! Then even in small things must
-the ways of the country be respected. Gerard had the
-patience which is the kernel and centre of good manners.
-He sat through the five brewings of green tea,
-ceremoniously conversing. Only then did he come to
-the reason of his visit.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“It has been my good fortune, O, Si El Hadj Arrifa,
-to bring you excellent news to-night. Would that I
-could hear news as excellent from you! My friend
-and your friend, Captain Ravenel, dined with you one
-night and rode away from your door, and that night
-he disappeared.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Si El Hadj Arrifa struck a bell which stood by his
-side and spoke a word to the negress who answered it.
-He turned again to Gerard.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I have sent for my servant Mohammed, who carried
-the lantern in front of His Excellency’s horse.
-He shall tell you the story with his own lips.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Mohammed duly appeared and told the truth—with
-omissions; how the Captain had fallen behind in the
-tunnel, how the startled horse had dashed past him,
-how he had returned and found no sign of the Captain
-at all, how two men had appeared and he had fled in a
-panic. But there was no mention of any small door
-in the angle of the wall.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“We will look at that tunnel by daylight,” said Gerard,
-when the man had finished, “if, O, Si El Hadj Arrifa,
-you will lend me your servant.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>He spoke dispiritedly. There seemed very little
-chance that he would find any trace of his <span class='it'>grand
-serieux</span>. He had been and he was not. No doubt these
-two men at the mouth of the tunnel had seen their
-opportunity and seized it. Paul Ravenel had been the
-first victim of the massacre, no doubt. Yet Paul—to
-be taken unawares—with Si El Hadj Arrifa’s earnest
-invitation to remain sheltered in his house only within
-this hour uttered—Paul, in a word, warned! That
-was not like the Paul Ravenel he knew, at all! And on
-the next morning, following Paul’s route with Mohammed
-for a guide, and a patrol of soldiers, he discovered
-the little door.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>With a thrill of excitement he ran his hands over
-the heavy nails.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Open! Open!” he cried, beating upon the panel
-with his fists; and pressing his ear against it afterwards,
-he heard the racket echo emptily through the
-house.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Open! Open!” he cried again, and, turning to
-the sergeant of the patrol, bade him find a heavy beam.
-Even with that used as a battering ram it took the
-patrol a good half hour to smash in the little door, so
-stout it was, so strong the bolts and bars. But the
-work was done at last. Gerard darted in and found
-himself in a house, small but exquisite in its decorations,
-its thick cushions of linen worked with the old
-silk embroideries of Fez, its white-tiled floors spread
-with carpets of the old Rabat patterns. But from roof
-to court the house was empty.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Gerard went through every room with the keen eye
-of a possible tenant with an order to view; and found
-precisely nothing. Had he come a week ago, he would
-have discovered on the upper floors furniture of a completely
-European make. All that, however, was safely
-lodged now in a storehouse belonging to Si El Hadj
-Arrifa, and the upper floors were almost bare. Gerard
-had left the patio to the last, and whilst he stepped
-here and there he heard a tinkling sound very familiar
-to his ears.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“What’s that?” he cried, swinging round.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>In a corner of an alcove the sergeant was bending
-down.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“What’s that, Beauprè?” Gerard cried again, and
-the sergeant stood up and faced him. He was holding
-in his hands the blue tunic of an officer; and on the
-breast of it a row of the big French medals tinkled and
-glinted.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Gerard took the tunic reverently from the sergeant’s
-hands. It was all cluttered with blood, and stabbed
-through and through. It had the badges of Paul’s
-rank, and still discernible on a linen label inside the
-collar was Paul’s name. It was here, then, in this house,
-that Paul Ravenel had been done to death. The tunic
-which Gerard held in his hand was the conclusive
-proof. He stood in the centre of the patio, so pleasant,
-so quiet now, with the shafts of bright sunlight breaking
-upon the tiles. Who had lived here? What dreadful
-scene had been staged in this empty house? Gerard
-shivered a little as he thought upon it. The knives at
-their slow work—the man, his friend, slowly losing,
-whilst the heart still beat and the nerves stabbed, all
-the semblance of a man!</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“But they shall pay,” he said aloud, in a bellowing
-voice; and while he shouted, a perplexity began to
-trouble him. He opened the door leading from the
-court into the outer passage. This passage was cumbered
-with the splintered panels, the bolts, the heavy
-transverse bars which the patrol’s battering ram had demolished.
-How was it that in this empty house the
-door was still barricaded from within? He returned
-into the court and saw that the sergeant had pushed
-aside a screen at the back, and in a recess had discovered
-a second door. This door was merely locked,
-and there was no key in the lock. It was quickly
-opened. The Karouein river raced and foamed amidst
-its boulders, and between the river and the house wall
-there ran a tiny path.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Gerard crossed to the door.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes, that way they went. When, I wonder? Perhaps
-when we were actually beating on the door.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>He unpinned the medals from his friend’s blood-stained
-tunic and wrapped them up in a handkerchief.
-There might be somewhere a woman who would love
-to keep them bright. Paul Ravenel talked little
-about his own affairs. Who could tell? If there were
-no one, he could treasure them himself in memory of
-a good comrade.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Meanwhile there was an immediate step to take. A
-crowd had gathered in the gateway and about the door
-in the dark tunnel.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Whose is this house?” Gerard asked, and there
-were many voices raised at once with the answer:</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Si Ahmed Driss of Ouezzan.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Gerard de Montignac was taken aback by the answer.
-Si Ahmed Driss was one of the great Shereefian
-family of Ouezzan, which exercised an authority and
-a power quite independent of the Sultan. From the
-first, moreover, it had been unswervingly loyal to the
-French. Si Ahmed Driss himself during the days of
-massacre had given shelter in the sanctuary of his own
-residence to all the Europeans whom he could reach.
-Gerard de Montignac went straight now to where he
-lived in the Tala and begged an audience.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I have broken into a house which I now learn belongs
-to you, Si Ahmed Driss, whom may God preserve,”
-he said.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Si Ahmed Driss was a tall, dignified old gentleman
-with a white beard flowing over his chest.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“It is forgiven,” he said, gently. “In these days
-many strange things are done.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yet this was not done without reason,” Gerard protested,
-and he told Si Ahmed Driss of the finding of
-the tunic and the story of Mohammed the servant.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Si Ahmed Driss bowed his head.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“That this should have happened in my house puts
-me to shame,” he said. “I let it many months ago to
-Ben Sedira—a man of Meknes whom .&nbsp;.&nbsp;.” and a flow
-of wondrous curses was invoked upon Ben Sedira himself
-and his ancestors and descendants to the remotest
-degrees of consanguinity, by the patriarch. A bargee,
-could he but have understood, would have listened to
-them in awe and withdrawn from competition. The
-old gentleman, however, in uttering them lost none of
-his dignity.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Ben Sedira of Meknes,” Gerard repeated. “We
-will see if we can find that man.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>But he had very little hope of succeeding. There
-had been two clear days between the end of the revolt
-and the arrival of Moinier’s column, during which
-surveillance could not be exercised. There were not
-sufficient French soldiers to hold the town gates and
-question all who went in and out. The moment the
-French tricolours floated so gaily upon all the house-tops
-of Fez, Ben Sedira would have known the game
-was up. He would have gone and gone quickly; nor
-would Meknes in the future house any one of his name.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Thus, Gerard de Montignac reasoned, the affair
-would remain a mystery. Official enquiries would be
-made. But the great wheels of Administration could
-not halt for ever at the little door in the roofed alley.
-Paul Ravenel would become a case, one of the infinite
-enigmas of Mohammedan Africa. So he thought during
-the next fortnight.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>But Gerard was on General Moinier’s staff, and
-many reports came under his eyes. Amongst them, one
-written by a Captain Laguessière, giving an account of
-an unsuccessful attempt to relieve a little post at the
-Bab Fetouh on the afternoon of the seventeenth, the
-second day of the revolt. Gerard was reading the report
-in his office not overcarefully when a passage leaped out
-on the written page and startled him. He sat for a
-moment very still. Then he shook or tried to shake
-some troublesome thought from his shoulders.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“It couldn’t be, of course!” he said, but he read the
-passage again.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>And here is what he read:</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I met with no trouble until I had passed the lime-kilns
-and crossed a bridge over the Oued el Kebir.
-Here further progress was stopped by three strong
-groups of Moors armed with rifles. It was clear to me
-that I could not force a way through with my twenty
-men and retain any hope of relieving the post. I determined,
-therefore, to make a detour and try to advance
-by way of the Bab Jedid. As I recrossed the
-bridge I was violently attacked from the rear, from in
-front of me and from a street upon my left; whilst
-from a house upon my right I saw a number of the
-Askris pour out. I ordered a charge, and, leading ‘<span class='it'>au
-pas gymnastique</span>,’ I brought my men into a narrow
-turning, whence we were able to clear the street by repeated
-volleys. I had two men killed and six wounded.
-I received great assistance from a tall Moor who, jumping
-from the crowd, charged with my men. He was
-armed only with a big heavy pole, but he swung it about
-him with so much vigour and skill that he cleared a
-space for us. I tried to find this Moor when I had
-re-formed my men, but he had disappeared as suddenly
-as he had come.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Gerard de Montignac sat back in his chair and ran
-his fingers through his sleek hair.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Of course, it’s quite out of the question,” he assured
-himself. But none the less he rose abruptly and,
-leaving the report on his desk, went into another office
-inconveniently crowded. At the far end of the room
-was seated at a desk the man for whom he was looking.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Baumann!” he called. “Can you spare me a minute?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Baumann rose and followed Gerard back to his
-room.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Take a chair there.” He pointed to one at the side
-of his desk.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Do you remember telling me some time ago at
-Casablanca that you once met Captain Ravenel close
-to Volubilis?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes,” said Baumann. “I didn’t recognise him.
-He twirled a great staff round his head and frightened
-me out of my life.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes, that’s it,” said Gerard. “A little thing in one
-of these reports reminded me of your story. I wanted
-to be sure of it. Thank you.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Baumann rose to go and stopped with his hand upon
-the door-knob.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“A great loss, Captain Ravenel. There is no news
-of him, I suppose?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Gerard shook his head.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“None.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Is it known whom he dined with that last night he
-was seen?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes. Si El Hadj Arrifa.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Baumann nodded.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Si El Hadj Arrifa was one of Captain Ravenel’s
-closest friends in Fez. But there’s another closer still
-of whom you might enquire.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I will. Give me his name,” said Gerard eagerly,
-and he drew a slip of paper towards him.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>But he did not write upon it. For Baumann answered:
-“Si Ahmed Driss.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Gerard dropped his pencil and looked swiftly up.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Of the Sheereefs of Ouezzan?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You are sure?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Quite.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Gerard set his elbows on the arms of his chair and
-joined his hands under his chin.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“So Paul was a great friend of Si Ahmed Driss, was
-he?” he said ever so softly.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes. It was as a servant in the train of Si Ahmed
-Driss of Ouezzan that Captain Ravenel travelled
-through the Zarhoun country, and visited the Holy
-Cities.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I see. Thank you, Baumann.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Gerard de Montignac was swimming in deep waters.
-He was not imaginative but he had imagination.
-He comprehended, though he did not feel, the call and
-glamour of the East; and nowhere in the world is there
-a land more vividly Eastern in its spirit, its walled cities,
-its nomad tribes, and its wide spaces, than this
-northwestern corner of Africa. Gerard had lived long
-enough in it to see men yield to it, as to a drug, forsake
-for it all that is lovely and of good repute. Was
-this what had happened to his friend? He wondered
-sorrowfully. Paul was friendly, cheerful, gay, but
-none the less really and truly a man of terrific loneliness.
-Walled about always. Gerard tried to think
-of an intimate confidence which Paul had ever made
-him. He could not remember one. He was the very
-man to whom the strange roads might call with the
-voices of the Sirens. It might be .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. it might be.
-Gerard de Montignac never sought again for traces of
-his lost friend. He left the search to the Administration
-and the Administration had other work to do.</p>
-
-<div><h1 id='ch19'>CHAPTER XIX</h1></div>
-
-<h3>In the Sacred City</h3>
-
-<p class='noindent'><span class='lead-in'><span class='dropcap'>T</span>he</span> sharp lesson, then the goodwill; and always
-even during the infliction of the lesson,
-fair dealing between man and man, and nothing
-taken without payment on the spot. This, the traditional
-policy of the great French Governors, was carried
-out in Fez. Only the lesson was not so sharp as many
-thought it should have been. But the policy achieved
-its end, and it was not long before many a Fasi, like
-his kinsmen of the Chaiouïa, would proudly assure you
-that he was a Frenchman. The work of settlement and
-order could be transferred to other regions, and Gerard
-de Montignac went with it. He served in the
-mountains about Taza during the autumn of that year,
-and then went upon long leave. He was in Paris for
-Christmas, and there, amidst its almost forgotten lights
-and brilliancies, took his pleasures like a boy. He
-hunted in the Landes, returned to Morocco, and a year
-later, after a campaign in the country south of Marrakesch,
-got his step and the command of his battalion.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>For three months afterwards he was stationed at
-Meknes and drew his breath. He had the routine of
-his work to occupy his mornings, and in this city of
-wide spaces and orchards to engross his afternoons.
-Meknes with the ruined magnificence of its palaces of
-dead kings, its huge crumbling stables, the great gate
-of mosaic built through so many years by so many
-captives of the Sallee pirates, and so many English
-prisoners from Tangier; that other gate hardly less
-beautiful to the north of the town; its groves of olives;
-its long crumbling crenellated walls reaching out for
-miles into the country with no reason, and with no
-reason abruptly ending—Meknes satisfied the æsthetic
-side of him as no other city in that enchanted country.
-He delighted in it as a woman in her jewels.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>But in the autumn the Zarhoun threatened trouble
-for the hundredth time—the Zarhoun, that savage
-mountain mass with its sacred cities which frowns
-above the track from Meknes to Rabat and through
-which the narrow path from Tangier to Fez is cleft.
-It was decided that the sacred cities must at last throw
-open their gates and the Zarhoun be brought into line.
-The work was entrusted to Gerard de Montignac.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You will have a mixed battalion of infantry, a
-squadron of Chasseurs, a section of mitrailleuses, and
-a couple of mountain guns,” said the Commander-in-Chief.
-“But I think you will not need to use them.
-It will be a demonstration, a reconnaissance in force,
-rather than an attack.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Thus one morning of June, Gerard led his force
-northwards over the rolling plain, onto the higher
-ground, and marching along the flank of Djebel Zarhoun,
-camped that night close to the tall columns and
-broken arches of Volubilis. In front of the camp, a
-mile away, dark woods of olive trees mounted the
-lower slopes, and above them the sacred city of Mulai
-Idris clung to the mountain sides, dazzlingly white
-against the sombre hill and narrowing as it rose to an
-apex of one solitary house. In the failing light it had
-the appearance of a gigantic torrent, which, forcing itself
-through a tiny cleft, spread fanwise as it fell, in a
-cascade of foam.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>There was no fighting, as the Commander-in-Chief
-had predicted. At nine o’clock the next morning the
-Basha, followed by three of his notable men, rode down
-on their mules through the olive groves, and, being led
-to the little tent over which floated the little red flag of
-the commander, made his obeisance.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I will go back with your Excellency into the city,”
-said Gerard, and he gave orders that a company of
-tirailleurs should escort him.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Thus, then, an hour later they set out: Gerard riding
-ahead with the Basha upon his right, the notables behind,
-and behind them again the company of tirailleurs
-advancing in column of platoons with one Captain
-Laguessière at their head. When they reached the first
-of the rising ground, Gerard reined in his horse and
-stared about him.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>The Basha, a portly man with a black beard, smiled
-with a flash of white teeth and the air of one expecting
-compliments. He did not get them, however. Gerard’s
-face wore, indeed, a quite unfriendly look. He
-turned round in his saddle.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Captain Laguessière.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Laguessière, who had halted his company, rode up
-to Gerard’s side.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Do you see?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes, my Commandant. I have been wondering for
-the last few minutes whether it was possible. If these
-fellows had put up a fight we might have lost a lot
-of men.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes,” said Gerard, shortly.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>To the right and left of the track which led up to
-the gate of the town, very well placed, just on the first
-rise of the ground, were fire trenches. Not roughly
-scooped shallow depressions, but real trenches scientifically
-constructed. Deep and recessed and with
-traverses at short intervals. The inside walls were
-revetted; arm rests had been cut for the riflemen, the
-earth dug from the trenches had been used for parapets
-and these had been turfed over for concealment;
-there were loopholes, artfully hidden by bunches of
-grass or little bundles of branches and leaves. Communication
-trenches ran back and—nothing so struck
-Gerard de Montignac with surprise as this—the extra
-earth had been built into parapets for dummy trenches,
-so that the fire of the attacking force might be diverted
-from those which were manned.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>The surprise of the two officers caused the
-Moors the greatest satisfaction. The three notables
-were wreathed in smiles. The Basha laughed outright.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“They are good,” he said, nodding his head.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Too good,” replied Gerard, gravely. “But it is as
-well that you did not use them against us.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>To the Moors this rejoinder seemed the very cream
-of wit. The Basha rocked in his saddle at the mere
-idea that his trenches could have been designed against
-the French.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“No, indeed! We are true friends of your Excellency
-and your people. We know that you are just
-and very powerful too. These trenches were intended
-to defend our sacred city from the Zemmour.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Oh, the Zemmour! Of course,” exclaimed Gerard,
-openly scoffing.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>The Zemmour were turbulent and aggressive and
-marauders to a man. They lived in the Forest of
-Mamora and sallied out of it far afield. But they were
-also the bogey men of the countryside. You threatened
-your squalling baby with the Zemmour, and whatever
-bad thing you had done, you had done it in terror
-of the Zemmour.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>The Basha was undisturbed by Gerard de Montignac’s
-incredulity.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes, the Zemmour are very wicked people,” he said,
-smiling virtuously and apparently quite unconscious
-that he himself presided over a city of malefactors and
-cutthroats. “But now that you have taken us poor
-people under your protection we feel safe.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Gerard smiled grimly and Captain Laguessière
-stroked his fair moustache and remarked: “He has a
-fine nerve, this old bandit.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“And when did you expect the Zemmour?” asked
-Gerard.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Two weeks, three weeks ago. They sent word
-that they would attack us on a certain night, so that
-we might be ready.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“And then they didn’t come?” said Gerard.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“No.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Captain Laguessière laughed, incredulous of the
-whole story. But Gerard recognised a simple form of
-humour thoroughly Moroccan. To warn your enemy
-that you meant to attack him, to keep him on the watch
-and thoroughly alarmed all night and then never to attack
-him at all—that might well seem to the Zemmour
-a most diverting stroke of wit. The Zemmour, after
-all, were not so very far from Zarhoun.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I wonder,” said Gerard.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I don’t, my Commandant,” replied Captain Laguessière.
-“I think that if they hadn’t seen our mountain
-guns passing up the track below, we should have found
-these trenches manned this morning.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Gerard turned about on his horse and looked down
-onto the plain.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes. They could see very clearly. That’s the explanation—so
-far.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>He gave his attention once more to the construction
-of the trenches.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“And who taught you to make those trenches, my
-friend?” Gerard asked, looking keenly at the Basha.
-The Basha answered composedly:</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“It was Allah who put it into our heads. Allah
-protecting the holy city where Mulai Idris lies
-buried.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“That’s all very fine,” Captain Laguessière observed.
-“But then who lent Allah his copy of the
-Manual of Field Engineering?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Exactly,” Gerard agreed with a laugh. “I think we
-had better find that out. No Moor that ever I met
-with would take the time and trouble, even if he had
-the skill, to work out——” and the laugh died off his
-lips. He turned suddenly startled eyes upon his companion.
-“Laguessière!” he exclaimed, and again, in
-a lower key, “Yes, Laguessière! I was sure that I had
-never met you before.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Not until this expedition, my Commandant.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yet your name was familiar to me. I did not
-think why. I was too busy to think why. But I remember
-now. You were in Fez two years ago. Yes,
-I remember now.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>His face darkened and hardened and grew very
-menacing as he sat with moody eyes fixed upon the
-ground and seeing visions of old and pleasant days
-leap into life and fade. “Volubilis, too!” he said in
-a low voice. “Yes, just below those olives.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Strange that he should have seen the columns and
-broken arches yesterday and again this morning, and
-only thought of them with wonder as the far-flung
-monuments of the old untiring Rome! And never
-until this moment as things of great and immediate
-concern to him—signs perhaps for him to read and
-not neglect. For of all the pictures which he saw
-changing and flickering upon the ground, two came
-again and again. He saw Baumann and his friends
-riding in the springtime between clumps of asphodel
-towards those high pillars, and a horde of wild ragged
-men pouring out of the gates of this white-walled city,
-and Baumann shrinking back as a tall youth whirled
-with a grin a great staff about his head. Then he saw
-the same man, whirling the same staff, charge with
-Laguessière’s section in a street of Fez. A grim and
-sinister fancy flashed into his mind. He wondered
-whether he had been appointed by destiny to demand
-here and to-day an account for the betrayal of a great
-and sacred trust. He looked up the hill to where the
-big wooden gates stood open.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Is that the only entrance into Mulai Idris?” he
-asked of the Basha.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“The only one.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Gerard de Montignac turned to his subordinate.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You will set a guard upon that gate, Captain Laguessière.
-No one is to go out until I give a further
-order.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Very well, my Commandant.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You will have the town patrolled and the walls
-watched. I will bring up another company to act with
-you.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>He wrote an order with a pencil in his note book,
-detached the leaf, and sent it back by an orderly to the
-camp. “Now we will move on,” he said. All his good
-humour had vanished. He had no longer any jests to
-exchange with the Basha as the little cavalcade rode
-upwards among the olive trees and through the steep,
-narrow streets of the town.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>In an open space just below that last big house which
-made the apex of the triangle, a seat was placed, and
-to this Gerard de Montignac was conducted. The little
-city lay spread out in a fan beneath him. The great
-Mosque in which the tomb of the Founder of the Moorish
-Empire was sheltered stood at the southern angle.
-Gerard looked down into a corner of its open precincts
-and saw men walking to and fro. He called the Basha
-to his side, and pointed down to it.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes, that is the great Mosque, your Excellency.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“No one will violate it. For us it is sacred as for
-you,” said Gerard. “But no food must go into it.
-That is a strict order.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“It shall be obeyed.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I shall place men of my own in the streets about
-the entrances. They will molest no one, but they will
-see to it that the order is obeyed.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>The Mosque was sanctuary, of course. Any man
-who took refuge there was safe. Neither the law nor
-any vengeance could touch him. But no man must die
-in it, for that would be a defilement. A little time,
-therefore, and any refugee would be thrust out by the
-guardians of the sanctuary, lest his death should taint
-the holy place.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Gerard sent a messenger down with a new order to
-Laguessière at the gate and waited on the seat until it
-had been carried out, and Laguessière had ridden to his
-side. The two officers lunched with the Basha and his
-notables in the big house and drank the five cups of tea
-with them afterwards.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I will now ride with you through the town,” said
-Gerard to the Basha. “You shall tell me of the houses
-and of those who live in them. And you shall take me
-into those I wish, so that I may speak to them and
-assure them of our friendship.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“That will be an excellent thing,” replied the Basha.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Gerard kept a sergeant and a small guard of soldiers
-with him, and with the Basha on his mule beside him
-he rode down on the left side of the town. For on
-this side only, he had seen, were there any houses of
-importance. The rest of the town was made up of
-hovels and little cottages. The three chief men who
-rode with the Basha pointed out their own residences
-with pride; the owners of others were described, and
-at each of them Gerard smiled and said he was
-content. They made thus a complete circuit of the
-city.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Your Excellency has not thought fit to enter any
-one of the houses,” said the Basha with a smile of
-reproach. Gerard led him a little apart.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I will make good that omission now,” he replied.
-“There was one which we passed. You did not speak
-of it at all. Yet it was a good house, a fine house,
-finer almost than any except your Excellency’s own.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>The Basha was apparently mystified. He could not
-remember.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I think that I can find the house again,” said
-Gerard. “I hope that I shall be able to. For it attracted
-me.” He looked the Basha in the eyes. “That
-is the house which I wish to enter and whose owner
-I wish to see.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Finality was in Gerard’s voice as clearly as in his
-words. The Basha bowed to it.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“It is for your Excellency to give orders here. We
-are in God’s hands,” he said, and he drew a step nearer
-to Gerard de Montignac. “It is permitted to dismiss
-my friends now to their homes? Si Tayeb Reha,
-whom we shall visit, will not be prepared for so many.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Si Tayeb Reha?” Gerard repeated. “That is his
-name? I had a thought it might be Ben Sedira.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>The Basha shook his head.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“That is not a name known in Mulai Idris.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>He turned to his notables and took leave of them
-with ceremonious speeches. Then he mounted his mule
-again and rode down the hill beside Gerard with the
-sergeant and the escort at their heels. Gerard said not
-a word now. He was thinking of those carefully constructed
-trenches outside the city, and his face grew
-hard as granite. They came to a house of two storeys
-with one latticed window in the uppermost floor, and
-for the rest a blank wall upon the street. It was for
-Fez a small house, for Mulai Idris one of importance.
-The door opened upon a side street, and the sergeant
-knocked upon it whilst Gerard and the Basha dismounted.
-There followed a long silence whilst a little
-crowd gathered about the soldiers. Gerard wondered
-what message that sharp loud knocking brought to
-the inmate. Had he seen the cavalcade ride past from
-a corner of that latticed window and with a smile upon
-his lips believed himself to be safe? What a shattering
-blow, then, must have been this sudden knocking
-upon his door? Or was he himself altogether in error?
-Gerard drew a breath of relief at the mere hope that
-it might be so. Well, he would know now, for the
-door was opened. And in a moment all Gerard’s hopes
-fell. For the native who opened it was surprised into
-a swift movement as his eyes fell upon Gerard in his
-uniform. It was a movement which he checked before
-he had completed it, but he was too late. He had betrayed
-himself. It was the involuntary movement of
-an old soldier standing to attention at the sudden appearance
-of an officer.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>The Basha spoke a few words to the servant who
-stood inside. There was no court in this house. A
-staircase faced them steeply, and on the right hand of
-it was the kitchen. Gerard turned to the servant as he
-passed in.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“And what is your name?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Selim,” answered the servant. He led the way up
-the dark staircase. There was no window upon
-the staircase; the only light came from the doorway
-upon the street. At the top there was a landing
-furnished with comfort, and in the middle of the landing
-was a fine door. Selim knocked upon it, and would
-have opened it. But Gerard laid his hand upon his
-arm and with a gesture in place of words bade him
-stand aside. He opened the door himself and entered.
-He was standing in a room of low roof but wide. It
-was furnished altogether in the Moorish style, and
-with a certain elegance. But the elegance was rather in
-the disposition of the room than in the quality of its
-equipment. One great window, with a balcony protected
-by a rail, gave light to the room; and it looked
-not upon the street but across a great chasm to the
-mountain, for the house was built upon the town
-wall. The light thus flooded the room. Close to the
-window a tall Moor was standing. He bowed and took
-a step forward.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Had I hoped that your Excellency would do me
-the honour to visit my poor house,” he said with a
-smile, “I should have made a better preparation.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>He had a small beard trimmed neatly to a point and
-a thin line of moustache. Gerard did not answer him
-for a little while. He took out his note book and wrote
-in it and detached the leaf. Then he sent Selim down
-the stairs to fetch up the sergeant of his escort; and it
-was noticeable that, scrupulous as he usually was in
-this land of observances, he made use of the servant
-as his messenger without troubling himself to ask the
-master’s permission.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>When the sergeant came up into the room, Gerard
-handed him the sheet of paper.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You will send this by one of your men immediately
-to Captain Laguessière at the gate.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Very well, my Commandant,” and the sergeant
-went out of the room.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Gerard turned to the Basha.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I have sent an order to remove the posts from the
-neighbourhood of the Mosque, and to throw open the
-gates so that men may go out and in as they will.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>The Basha expressed his thanks. There would be no
-trouble. The people of Mulai Idris were very good
-people, not like those scoundrels from the Forest of
-Mamora, and quite devoted to the French.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Since this morning,” Gerard answered with a smile.
-“We shall have much to say to one another to-morrow
-morning, in a spirit of help and goodwill. But I beg
-you to leave me now, so that I may talk for a little while
-privately with Si Tayeb Reha. For I have come now
-to the end of this day’s work.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Si Tayeb Reha bowed gravely. It was the only
-movement he had made since he had spoken his words
-of welcome upon Gerard’s first entrance into the room.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>The Basha took his leave, went downstairs and
-mounted his mule.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“We are all in God’s hands,” he said, and he rode
-slowly away towards his house. Within the room the
-two men stood looking at each other in silence.</p>
-
-<div class='figcenter'>
-<img src='images/illo230.png' alt='' id='iid-0004' style='width:100%;height:auto;'/>
-<p class='credit'><span class='it'>A William Fox Production.</span>&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;<span class='it'>The Winding Stair.</span></p> <p class='caption'>“SO—YOU HAVE BETRAYED EVERY TRUST—WHERE IS YOUR HONOR?”</p>
-</div>
-
-<div><h1 id='ch20'>CHAPTER XX</h1></div>
-
-<h3>The Coup de Grâce</h3>
-
-<p class='noindent'><span class='lead-in'><span class='dropcap'>T</span>he</span> longer the silence grew, the more difficult
-Gerard de Montignac felt it was to break. He
-had entered the room, clothed upon with authority,
-sensible of it and prepared to demand explanations
-and exact retribution. But he had now a curious
-uneasiness. His authority seemed to be slipping from
-him. Opposite to him without a movement of his
-body and his face still as a mask, stood <span class='it'>le grand
-serieux</span>, as half in jest, half in earnest, he used to
-label Paul Ravenel. He had not a doubt of his identity.
-But <span class='it'>le grand serieux</span> was altogether in earnest
-<span class='it'>le grand serieux</span> at this moment.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>A quiet, tragic figure, drawn to his full height, wearing
-his dignity with the ease of an accustomed garment,
-when he should be—what? Crushed under
-shame, faltering excuses, cringing! Gerard de Montignac
-said to himself: “Why, I might be the culprit!
-It might be for me to offer an explanation, or to
-try to.” He almost wondered if he was the culprit,
-so complete was his discomfort, and so utterly he felt
-himself at a disadvantage. He whipped himself to a
-sneer.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I am afraid that I am not very welcome, Si Tayeb
-Reha,” he said, speaking in French.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Si Tayeb Reha! Yes! That is my name,” returned
-the Moor, in the Mohgrebbin dialect of Arabic.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Alias Ben Sedira of Meknes. Alias Paul Ravenel.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>The Moor frowned in perplexity.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Alias,” he repeated, doubtfully, “and Pôl Rav——”
-He gave the name up. “What are these words? If
-your Excellency would speak my language——”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Your language!” Gerard interrupted, roughly.
-“Since when have the outcasts a language of their
-own?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>He flung himself into a chair. He was not going to
-take a part in any comedy. He continued to speak in
-French. “You thought you were safe enough here, no
-doubt. Oh, it was a clever plan, I grant you. Who
-would look for Paul Ravenel in the sacred city of
-Mulai Idris? Yet not so safe, after all, if any one
-knew that you had once travelled through the Zahoun
-in the train of Si Ahmed Driss of Ouezzan.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>He leaned forward suddenly as some prosecuting
-counsél in a criminal court might do, seeking to terrify
-a defendant into an expression or a movement of guilt.
-But Si Tayeb Reha was simply worried because he
-could not understand a word of all the scorn which
-was tumbling from Gerard’s mouth. The officer was
-angry—that was only too evident—and with him, Si
-Tayeb Reha! If only he could make it all out! Gerard
-grew more exasperated than ever.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“No, not safe at all if any one had seen you come
-out of these gates in the rabble to drive away a visitor
-to Volubilis. Baumann, eh? Do you remember Baumann
-of the Affaires Indigènes, Paul Ravenel?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Si Tayeb Reha raised his hands:</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Your Excellency speaks in a tongue I do not understand.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You understand very well. Sanctuary, eh? If one
-guessed you had run to earth here—sanctuary! No
-one dare violate the sacred city of Mulai Idris. Once
-sheltered within its walls, safe to lead the dreadful
-squalid life you’ve chosen right to its last mean day!
-Your mistake, Paul Ravenel! The arm of France is
-stretched over all this country.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Gerard stopped abruptly and flung himself back in
-his chair in disgust. He was becoming magniloquent
-now. In a minute he would be ridiculous, and over
-against him all the while stood this renegade, dwarfing
-him by his very silence, and the stillness of his body,
-putting him in the wrong—for that was it! Putting
-him in the wrong who was in the right.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Gerard had imagination. He was hampered now
-by that accursed gift of the artist. Even whilst he
-spoke he was standing outside himself and watching
-himself speak, and act, and watching with eyes hostilely
-critical. Thus were things well interpreted, but
-not thus were they well done. Thus they were made
-brilliantly to live again; but not thus were they so
-contrived as to be worthy to live again. Since by that
-road come hesitations and phrases that miss their mark.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>He tried to sting Si Tayeb Reha into a rejoinder.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Trenches, too! Fire-trenches on the latest plan—so
-that if by chance we should come and be fools
-enough to come without guns”—he broke off and beat
-upon the table with his closed fist—“you would fight
-France, would you, to keep your burrow secret! The
-insolence of it! The Zemmour indeed! Fire-trenches
-and traverses and the rest of it against the Zemmour.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Si Tayeb Reha leapt upon a word familiar to his
-tongue.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“The Zemmour! Yes,” he cried, smiling his relief.
-Here was something which he could understand. “The
-Zemmour threatened us two, three, four weeks ago.
-We made ready to welcome them. But they did not
-come. They were very wise, the Zemmour!” and he
-chuckled and nodded.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Gerard found this man of smiles and cunning easier
-to talk with than the aloof masked figure of a minute
-ago.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“It was you who constructed those trenches and
-against us, who were once your comrades,” he said
-sternly.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Si Tayeb Reha was once more at a loss.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“If your Excellency will not speak my tongue, how
-shall I answer you?” he asked, plaintively, and Gerard
-did not trouble to answer.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I ought to send you down to Meknes, for a court-martial
-to deal with you,” he said, reflectively. “But
-all strange crimes have their lures. They breed. God
-knows what decent-living youngster might get his imagination
-unwholesomely stirred and do as you have
-done and bring his name to disgrace! Besides—do
-you know who guards the gate of Mulai Idris whilst I
-talk to you? Who but Laguessière? Captain Laguessière.”
-He searched the still face for a tremor, a
-twitch of recognition. Si Tayeb Reha had apparently
-given up the attempt to understand. He stood leaning
-against the wall at the side of the window and looking
-out across the ravine to the mountainside.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Laguessière, at whose side you charged twisting
-your staff—do you remember?—back over the bridge
-by the lime-kilns in Fez two years ago.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>The light fell full upon the face of the man at the
-window. It seemed to Gerard de Montignac impossible
-that any man, even the <span class='it'>grand serieux</span>, who had
-so often carried his life in his hands through the solitary
-places, could have learnt so to school his features
-and keep all meaning from his eyes.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes, that charge counts for you, and something else
-which shouldn’t count at all. You and I were at St.
-Cyr together.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Indeed, that counted most of all. The sense of an
-old comradeship broken, the traditions of a great college
-violated, these had been the true cause of Gerard
-de Montignac’s discomfort. The years were beginning
-to build the high barriers about Gerard, shutting off
-great tracts of which he had once had glimpses to
-make the heart leap, taking the bright colour from his
-visions. A treasure-house of good memories was
-something nowadays to value, and here was one of the
-good memories, almost the most vivid of them all, destroyed.
-He rose from his chair, and as he rose, a
-curtain moved which covered an archway, moved and
-ever so slightly parted. It was just behind Si Tayeb
-Reha’s shoulder, and a little to his right at the side of
-the room; so that he did not notice the movement.
-Gerard de Montignac could look through the narrow
-opening. He had a glimpse of a woman with her face
-veiled, an orange scarf about her head, a broad belt of
-gold brocade about her white robe. Somehow the sight
-of her helped him, though he saw her but for a second,
-before the curtains closed again. It spurred him to
-that statement which from the outset he had been working
-to.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“So that’s it!” he cried. “A woman, eh? Two
-years since she took your fancy! She must be getting
-on now, mustn’t she? What’s her age? Seventeen?
-And for that, honour, career, a decent life, all, into the
-dustbin!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>He drew his heavy revolver from the pouch at his
-belt and laid it on the table.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“It is loaded,” he said. “You have just the time
-until my sergeant notices that I have left my revolver
-behind in this house. If I come back, and—no shot has
-been fired—then it is Meknes with all its shame and
-the same end.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Nothing surprised Gerard de Montignac more than
-the coolness with which Si Tayeb Reha, as his old comrade
-called himself, received his sentence of death. He
-advanced to the table where the revolver lay and took
-the weapon up with a smile of curiosity and admiration.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“We make no such weapons as these,” he said in
-Arabic, examining the pistol with all a Moor’s fascination
-for mechanical instruments. “That, your Excellency,
-is why we are never a match for you and we
-must open our gates at your summons.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>He had never said one word except in Arabic during
-the whole of that interview, just as Gerard had stubbornly
-refused to speak anything but French. Gerard
-watched him toying with the weapon for a second and
-then turned rapidly away. He could not but admire
-his old friend’s courage; he could not but think: “What
-a waste of a good man!” He went out of the room
-without another word or another look. He was sick
-at heart. He no longer cared whether he had been
-peevish or argumentative or what kind of figure he had
-cut. One of the glamorous things in his life, his belief
-in the <span class='it'>grand serieux</span>, had been taken from him.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>He mounted his horse and rode away, wishing for
-that shot to explode as quickly as possible, so that he
-might bury the dreadful episode out of sight and forget
-it altogether.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>But though he listened with both his ears and though
-he walked his horse as slowly as he could, he heard
-nothing. He saw his sergeant suddenly look at his
-belt. It was coming, then, without a doubt. The next
-moment the sergeant was at his side and looking up
-into his face.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“My commandant, you have left your revolver behind
-in that house.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Gerard de Montignac took all the time that he could.
-He stared at the sergeant and made him repeat his
-statement as though he had been lost in thought and
-had never heard it at all. Then he looked down at the
-holster and fingered it as if he were trying to recollect
-where in the world he had taken the revolver
-out.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Why, that’s true,” he said, at last. He wheeled his
-horse around and rode back very dispiritedly with his
-chin sunk upon his breast. “It is to be Meknes after
-all, then, and all the public shame,” the sergeant heard
-him mutter; and then a pistol cracked sharp and clear,
-and Gerard raised his face. It was lit with a great
-relief.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>They were only ten paces from the house. Gerard
-dismounted and gave the reins to the sergeant.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Wait for me here! Keep the door clear!” he ordered.
-He had left the door of the house open when
-he rode away. It was open still. Gerard ran up the
-stairs and burst into the room. There was a smell of
-gunpowder in the air, and the Moorish woman with
-the orange scarf and the white robe and the deep gold
-waistband was standing with her hands pressed over
-her face.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>But there was no sign of Si Tayeb Reha anywhere.
-They had tried to trick him, then! They imagined
-that he would accept the evidence of the pistol-shot and
-continue on his way! They took him for no better
-than a child, it seemed. No, that would not do!</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Where is he?” he asked, angrily, of the girl, and
-now he, too, spoke in Arabic.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>She pointed a trembling hand towards the window;
-and Gerard saw that the rail of the balustrade of the
-balcony was broken and that the revolver lay upon the
-boards. Gerard stepped out from the window and
-looked down.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>The balcony had been built out from the sheer wall;
-it was a rough thing of boards, supported upon iron
-stanchions, and jutting out above the deep chasm at
-the edge of the town. Gerard could see between the
-boards deep down a precipice of rocks to a tiny white
-thread of stream and clumps of bushes. He drew close
-to the broken rail and leaned cautiously over. Caught
-upon some outcropping rocks, a little way below the
-wall, hung the body of Si Tayeb Reha. He was lying
-face downwards, his arms outspread. The story of
-what had happened was written there for him to read.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul Ravenel had shot himself on the balcony, the
-revolver had fallen from his hand, his body had
-crashed through the flimsy rail and toppled down until
-it had been caught on the rocks below. Yes, no doubt!
-The mere fall from that height, even if Ravenel had
-been unhurt, would have been enough. Yet—yet—there
-had been a long delay before the shot was fired.
-Gerard looked keenly and swiftly about the room.
-No, there was no sign of a rope.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>He looked at the girl. She was now crouched down
-upon her knees, her face hidden between her hands,
-her body rocking, whilst a wail like a chant, shrill of
-key but faint, made a measure for her rocking. She
-was like an animal in pain—that was all, and for her
-Paul had thrown a great name to the winds! What
-a piece of irony that she, with hardly more brain and
-soul than a favourite dog, should have cost France so
-much!</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Gerard stooped and picked up his revolver. He
-broke the breech, ejected the one exploded cartridge,
-and closed the breech again with a snap. He leaned
-forward again to take a last look at that poor rag of
-flesh and bone, hung there for the vultures to feed
-upon, which once had been his friend—and he was
-aware of a subtle change in the woman behind him
-within the room. Oh, very slight, and for so small
-a space of time! But just for an imperceptible moment
-her wail had faltered, the rocking of her body
-had been stayed. She had been watching him between
-those fingers with the henna-dyed nails which were so
-tightly pressed over her face.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>He looked at her closely without moving from his
-position. It was all going correctly on again—the
-lament, the swaying, the proper conventional expression
-of the abandonment of grief. Yet she had been
-watching him, and for a moment she had been startled
-and afraid. Of what? And the truth flashed upon
-him. He had been fingering his revolver. She was
-afraid of the <span class='it'>coup de grâce</span>.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Then they were tricking him between them—she with
-her wailing, he spread out on the bulge of rock below.
-They should see! He stretched out his arm downwards,
-the revolver pointed in his hand. And out of
-the tail of his eye he saw the woman cease from her
-exhibition and rise to her feet. As he took his aim
-she unwound the veil from before her face. He could
-not but look at her; and having looked, he could not
-take his eyes from her face. He stumbled into the
-room. “Marguerite Lambert!” he said, in a voice of
-wonder! “Yes, Marguerite Lambert!”</p>
-
-<div><h1 id='ch21'>CHAPTER XXI</h1></div>
-
-<h3>Two Outcasts</h3>
-
-<p class='noindent'><span class='lead-in'><span class='dropcap'>G</span>erard</span> de Montignac had never been so
-thoroughly startled and surprised in his life.
-But he was angrily conscious of an emotion
-far keener than his surprise. He was jealous. Jealousy
-overmastered the shock of wonder, stabbed him
-through and left him aching. Marguerite Lambert,
-the girl of the Villa Iris, so politely difficult! And
-Paul Ravenel, the man without passion! Why, his
-brother officers used to laugh at him openly—nay, almost
-sneered at him and made a butt of him—because
-of his coldness; and he, indifferent to their laughter,
-had just laughed back and gone his way. Well, he
-could afford to, it seemed, since he was here, and for
-two years had been here, hidden quite away from the
-world with Marguerite Lambert.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>They had stolen a march upon their friends, the pair
-of them, they had tricked them—yes, that was the exact
-right word—tricked them, even as they had just
-tried to trick him, she with her Oriental abandonment
-to grief—little “animal,” as he had called her in his
-thoughts—he stretched out on a knob of rock above a
-precipice in a pose of death! Gerard was in an ugly
-mood, and he spoke out his thought in a blaze of scorn.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I asked you the last time I saw you to give me two
-days of your life, my only two days. I asked no more.
-Yet you were insulted. You could give two years to
-another, but two days to me? Oh, dear, no! You
-wished never to speak to me again.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I would give two days to no man,” Marguerite
-replied, gently, “though I would give my whole life to
-one man.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Even though he deserted?” Gerard asked, with a
-sneer.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Paul had not deserted when I gave myself to him,”
-she answered, quietly. “When he did, it was to save
-me!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Gerard did not want to hear anything about that.
-Some conjecture that the truth of this catastrophe was
-to be discovered there, had been at the back of his
-mind ever since he had recognised Marguerite. But
-he intended not to listen to it, not to let it speak at all.
-Somehow, her use of Paul’s name angered him extremely.
-It dropped from her lips with so usual and
-homely a sound.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“No doubt it was to save you. It would be!” he
-said, sardonically. “Some decent excuse would be
-needed even between you two when you sat together
-alone through the long dark evenings.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Gerard meant to hurt, but Marguerite wore an armour
-against him and his arrows were much too blunt
-to pierce it. She had a purpose of her own to serve,
-of which Gerard de Montignac knew nothing; she was
-clutching at a desperate chance—if, indeed, so frail a
-thing could be called a chance—not of merely saving
-her lover’s life, but of so much more that she hardly
-dared to think upon it. Her only weapon now and
-for a long heart-breaking time to come, was patience.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You are unjust,” she said, without any anger, and
-without any appeal that he should reconsider his words.
-Gerard suddenly remembered the last words that the
-black-bearded Basha had spoken as he climbed onto his
-mule.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“We are all in God’s hand.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Marguerite had spoken just in his tone. Argument
-and prayer were of no value now. It was all written,
-all fated. What would be, would be. Either Gerard
-de Montignac would drop that revolver from his hand
-and her desperate chance become a little less frail than
-before, or he would not.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“What was it that woman in the spangled skirt used
-to say of you?” Gerard asked, with a seeming irrelevance.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Henriette?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes, Henriette. You had a look of fate. Yes!
-She was right, too. It was that look which set you
-apart, more than your beauty. Indeed, you weren’t
-beautiful then, Marguerite.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>He was gazing at her moodily. The sharp anger
-had become a sullenness. Marguerite had grown into
-beauty since those days, but it was not the roseleaf
-beauty born of days without anxiety and nights without
-unrest. It was the beauty of one who is haunted
-by the ghosts of dead dreams and who wakes in the
-dark hours to weep very silently lest some one overhear.
-Destined for greater sorrows or perhaps greater joys
-than fall to the common lot! That was what Henriette
-had meant! And looking at Marguerite, Gerard,
-with a little ungenerous throb of pleasure, perceived
-that at all events the greater joys, if ever they had
-fallen to her, had faded away long since.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“These have been unhappy years for you, Marguerite,”
-he said.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“For both of us,” she answered. “How could they
-have been anything else? Paul had lost everything for
-which he had striven, whilst I knew that it was I who
-had caused his loss.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“But he didn’t lose you.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“He didn’t have to strive for me,” Marguerite returned,
-with just the hint of a smile and more than a
-hint of pride. “I was his from his first call—no, even
-before he called.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Gerard could not but remember the first meeting of
-this tragic couple in the Villa Iris. Paul Ravenel had
-stood behind Marguerite’s chair, and without a word,
-without even turning her head to see who it was that
-stood behind her, she had risen from the midst of the
-Dagoes and Levantines, as at an order given. She had
-fallen into step at his side, and no word had as yet
-passed between them. Gerard de Montignac recollected
-that, even then, a little pang of jealousy had stabbed
-him and sharply enough to send him straight out of
-the cabaret.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. yes,” he said, slowly. “I had never
-spoken to you then, had I? It wasn’t until afterwards
-.&nbsp;.&nbsp;.” He was thinking and drawing some
-queer sort of balm from the thought, that Marguerite
-had not so much flatly refused him his two days as set
-her heart on Paul Ravenel before she had met him.
-If it had been he, for instance, who had stood behind
-Marguerite’s chair and silently called her! But, then,
-he hadn’t. He had gone away and left the field clear
-for Paul Ravenel. Other memories came back to him
-to assuage his wrath.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“After all, it was I who brought you and Ravenel
-together,” he said. “For it was I who persuaded him
-to come with me on that first night to the Villa Iris.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes!” Marguerite drew in her breath sharply.
-“He told me that he almost didn’t come.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>It would have been better if he had not come, if he
-had stayed quietly in his house and gone on with his
-report. So her judgment told her. But she could never
-imagine those moments during which Paul had stood
-in doubt, without picturing them so vividly that she
-had a quiver of fear lest he should decide not to come.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“It was I, too, who sent Paul Ravenel to you at the
-end,” Gerard de Montignac continued; and as Marguerite
-drew her brows together in a wrinkle of perplexity,
-“Yes,” he assured her. “The night after you
-didn’t want to speak to me any more, I went back to
-the Villa Iris to find you. Did you know that? Yes,
-I was leaving the next morning with the advance guard
-for Fez. I didn’t know what might happen on the
-march. I wanted to make friends with you again, so
-that if anything did happen to me, you wouldn’t have
-any bitter memories of me.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“That was a kind thought,” said Marguerite.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Kind to myself,” returned Gerard, with, for the
-first time in this interview, the ghost of a smile. Yet
-to Marguerite it was as the glimmer of dawn upon a
-black night of sickness and pain. There was a hope,
-then, that the revolver would be returned to its holster
-with its remaining five cartridges still undischarged.
-Gerard’s own memories were at work with him,
-memories of a kindlier self, with enthusiasms and generous
-thoughts; and they must be left to do their work.
-There was little that she could say or do—and that
-little not until his mood had changed.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I didn’t find you,” Gerard resumed. “You had
-gone. Henriette told me how you had gone and why.
-Yes, the whole horrible story of that old harridan and
-the Greek! And you had dropped your bundle and
-disappeared. And Henriette feared for you. I was
-leaving at six in the morning; I was helpless. I went
-on to Paul Ravenel and told him that he must find
-you before any harm came to you. And he did, of
-course. That’s clear. So I had my share in all this
-dreadful business. Yes .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. yes, I hadn’t realised it.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>He sat down on a chair by the table and stared at
-its surface with his forehead puckered. But he still
-held the butt of his revolver in his hand. If only he
-would lay it down just for a moment! Marguerite
-had a queer conviction that he would never take it up
-again to use outside the window, once he let go of it.
-But he did not let go. His fingers, indeed, tightened
-upon the handle, and he cried: “I don’t know what to
-do.” Neither did Marguerite. She could let Gerard
-de Montignac remain in his error, or she could dispel
-it. She was greatly tempted not to interfere. It was
-a small matter, anyway. Only, small matters count so
-much in great issues. Let the scales tremble, the
-merest splinter will make one of them touch ground.
-Marguerite trusted to some instinct which she could
-not afterwards explain.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Perhaps I am unwise,” she said. The note of hesitation,
-for the first time audible, drew Gerard’s eyes
-to her troubled face. “But I don’t know .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. The
-truth is you had no real share in our”—she paused for
-a word which would neither blame nor excuse—“in
-our disaster. The night I was turned out, Paul was
-waiting for me in the garden. I didn’t expect him. I
-was in despair. I dropped my bundle; and he rose up
-out of the darkness in front of me. I loved him. It
-was the wonderful thing come true. He took me away
-to a house which he had got ready——”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“A house near to his on the sea-wall?” suddenly
-exclaimed Gerard.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“That’s true, then. I saw his agent and him coming
-out of it. I think that I told Henriette, never
-dreaming that the house was meant for you, that you
-were already in it when I told Henriette.” He looked
-at Marguerite suddenly with eyes of pity. “You two
-poor children!” he exclaimed, softly, and after a few
-moments he added with a whimsical smile, “I told
-Paul that he would break his leg when we, the less
-serious ones, only barked our shins. It is a bad thing
-not to walk in the crowd, Marguerite.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>He watched her for a little while like a man in
-doubt. Then he reached his arm out and tapped with
-the muzzle of his revolver—for he still held it in his
-hand—on the part of the table opposite to him.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You must sit down and tell me exactly what happened.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Marguerite obeyed. She told Gerard of her journey
-up from the coast to Fez when Paul was sure that the
-road was safe, and how she came to the little palace
-with the door upon the roofed alley which Paul had
-got ready for her. Gerard, who had thought to listen
-to her story without question or comment, could not
-restrain an exclamation.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You were in Fez, then, all that year!” he said,
-wondering. “In the house of Si Ahmed Driss! I
-never dreamt of it. Even when I discovered it and
-searched it, that never occurred to me. When I saw
-you both here, I imagined that Paul had slipped away
-at a bad moment for France, without a thought of his
-duty, to join you at Mulai Idris in accordance with a
-plan.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Marguerite shook her head.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“No. I was in the house at Fez. Later, on that
-night of the sixteenth, he knew that the massacres were
-certain. He went to headquarters with the information.
-If they had listened to him then, he would never have
-deserted at all. But they wouldn’t listen, and he had
-to choose.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>She described how on the next day the fanatics had
-rushed in searching for a French officer who had been
-seen once or twice to visit there.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“It was not before that night, then, the night he
-came to the headquarters, that he was sure?” Gerard
-interrupted, quickly.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“No.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“They would have come to seek him in the house,
-even if he had ridden straight back from the Hospital
-Auvert to Dar-Debibagh.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Then he did save your life by deserting,” said
-Gerard. And, on the other hand, he asked himself was
-there any duty not discharged because Paul did desert?
-Was there any mistake made because the little Praslin
-led Paul Ravenel’s company along the river bed instead
-of Paul himself?</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“My God, but it’s difficult!” cried Gerard. “Complexities
-upon complexities! How shall one judge—unless”—and
-he caught with relief at his good rules
-and standards—“yes, unless one walks in the crowd.
-It’s the only way to walk. Thou shalt do this! Thou
-shalt not do that! All clear and ordered and written
-in the book.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Gerard had gibed enough in his day at those innumerable
-soldiers who answered every problem of
-regulations and manœuvres immediately with a complacent
-“It’s so laid down,” or “It’s not so laid down in
-the book.” He was glad to get back in the windings
-of this case to the broad highway of “the book.” The
-book told him how to deal with Paul Ravenel. Well,
-then!—&nbsp;Yet—yet——!</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Marguerite watched his face cloud over, and hurriedly
-continued her story, or rather began to continue
-it. For at her first words as to how Paul had out-witted
-the invaders of the house in Fez Gerard interrupted
-her with a cry.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“The uniform tunic, eh, Marguerite? The tunic all
-hacked and battered with blood?” He uttered a little
-wholesome laugh of appreciation. “And all prepared
-in readiness the night before. Yes, I recognise Paul
-there.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>This was the third time that Gerard de Montignac
-had spoken of “Paul” without any “Ravenel” added to
-it to show that he and Paul were strangers. Marguerite,
-you may be sure, had counted each one of
-them with a little leap of the heart. “And the blood!”
-he went on. “I think I know whence that came. His
-arm, eh? Wasn’t it so?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Marguerite had determined to use no tricks with
-him, but she could not resist one now, the oldest and
-simplest and the never-failing. She looked at Gerard
-with awe and admiration—so sharp he was and penetrating.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes. Oh, but how did you know? It’s rather
-wonderful.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“When he was standing against the window there,
-the sleeve of his djellaba fell back. There was a scar
-like a white seam on his forearm.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Marguerite breathed her wonder at this prodigy of
-insight, and, like a good artist, having made her point,
-she did not labour it. She related with what reluctance
-Paul had afterwards told her the thing which he had
-done.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I knew nothing of it before. I thought that he was
-on leave. I should have killed myself whilst there was
-yet time for him to return to the camp if I had known.
-Even when I did know, I hoped that he could make
-some excuse, and I tried to kill myself. But he had,
-of course, foreseen that, and prepared against it.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Gerard nodded.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“How?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“He had taken my little pistol secretly from the
-drawer where I kept it. He did not give it me back
-again until I promised that I would not use it unless
-the Moors were on the stair.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Gerard de Montignac started suddenly and pushed
-his chair sharply back. Some quite new consideration
-had flashed into his mind. He looked at Marguerite
-with a sentence upon his lips. But he did not speak
-it. He turned away and took a turn across the room
-towards the window and back again, whilst Marguerite
-waited with her heart in her mouth.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“What am I to do?” he asked; and to Marguerite
-the fact of his actually addressing the question to her
-made the interview more of a nightmare than ever.
-He was standing close to her (breaking the breech of
-his revolver and snapping it to again, and almost unaware
-of who she was, and quite unaware that with
-each click and snap of the mechanism she could have
-screamed aloud). “What am I to do, Marguerite?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Marguerite mastered her failing nerves.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Those trenches outside Mulai Idris,” she said.
-“They were dug to resist the Zemmour. The people
-here might have used them against you but for Paul.
-He warned the Basha that he couldn’t win, that he
-would find you just and fair and careful of all his
-rights. Do you believe that?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Gerard reflected.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes, I do,” he said, slowly. “After all, he charged
-with Laguessière when Laguessière was put to it.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Charged with Laguessière?” repeated Marguerite.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes—in Fez—one afternoon during the revolt. He
-had a great staff and used it—used it well. So much
-of the old creed remained with him, at all events.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Yes, thought Marguerite, there had been an afternoon
-when Paul had been on edge and she had sent
-him out. He had come back, appeased, and a new
-man. The riddle of that change was now explained
-to her. But she had no leisure to dwell upon the explanation.
-Gerard had swung away again from her,
-and was now standing close to the window looking out
-across the chasm to the dark blue of the hill in the
-shadow opposite. One little step would carry him on
-to the balcony, and the butt of his revolver was still
-in his hand.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Listen to me, Marguerite,” he said, in a low voice;
-and suddenly he became, to her thought, more dangerous
-in his calm than he had been in his anger.
-“Here’s a law broken by you and Paul, and see what
-misery has come of it! What loss! Shall I repair that
-law by breaking another? Hardly! Look at me, Marguerite!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>But he did not look at her. He even advanced a
-foot beyond the window-ledge so that the boards of the
-balcony creaked and groaned beneath its pressure.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I could have lived in Paris with Deauville for the
-summer and Monte Carlo for the winter, and my own
-lands for the autumn—a pleasant, good life. I could
-have lived with women about me—the fine flower of
-them, the women who are exquisite and delicate. But I
-didn’t. I left the enjoyments to the others. I came
-out into these hot countries, the countries of squalor,
-to serve France. And I have served; yes, by God, I
-have served! That has been my creed. Shall I let
-another spit on it, even though he was my greatest
-friend? Not I!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Marguerite gave all up for lost. The one chance at
-the eleventh hour was not to be tried out by Paul and
-her. Well—she was very tired. She closed her eyes
-that she might not see anything of what happened at
-the window—anything more in the world. If ever she
-had worn the look of one set apart by fate, as so many
-had declared, she wore it now, stamped upon the submission
-of her face. Her hands went to her girdle and
-felt within its folds; and that action saved her lover
-and herself. For Gerard de Montignac saw it as he
-was stepping out onto the boards of the balcony.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Wait!” he cried, in a sharp, loud voice; and in a
-moment he was standing in front of her with a look of
-horror in his eyes. “The little pistol, which Paul took
-away from you and gave you back only on your promise—where
-is it?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Marguerite neither moved nor answered him.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“It is there,” he cried, pointing to where her hand
-rested within her belt. It was that bedrabbled woman
-in the spangled skirt who had prophesied it. Henriette,
-yes, Henriette! It was strange over how many years
-that poor waif’s words had reached and with what
-effect. “No!” he cried. “You must go your ways.
-I’ll not have that upon my soul the day I die,” and he
-turned from her and rushed from the room, and in a
-few moments Marguerite heard the sound of a horse
-galloping away down the cobbled street as though its
-rider had no thought for his neck.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Gerard de Montignac talked for many hours the
-next day with the Basha in the house at the city’s
-top. But neither he nor the Basha spoke once of Si
-Tayeb Reha. They came to a good understanding, and
-Gerard rode back to his camp, his work in Mulai Idris
-done. He sat in his camp chair outside his tent that
-night watching the few lights upon the hillside go out
-one after the other and Mulai Idris glimmer, unsubstantial,
-as the silver city of a dream.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Gerard had carried off a small sort of triumph which
-would mean many good marks in the books of his
-great commander. But he was only thinking to-night
-of the two outcasts in the house on the city wall.
-Whither would they seek a refuge now that the gates
-of Mulai Idris were to stand open to the world? And
-was it worth their while? Marguerite’s haunted face
-and Paul Ravenel burrowing deeper and deeper into
-obscurity! Gerard turned to Laguessière, who was
-smoking at his side.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Walk in the crowd, my friend! It is always less
-dangerous to walk in the crowd. Well, let us turn in,
-for we start early to-morrow.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>In the morning the tents were gone and Gerard’s
-column was continuing its march through the Zarhoun.</p>
-
-<div><h1 id='ch22'>CHAPTER XXII</h1></div>
-
-<h3>The Splendid Throw</h3>
-
-<p class='noindent'><span class='lead-in'><span class='dropcap'>W</span>hat</span> had happened between the moment
-when Gerard de Montignac rode away from
-the door of Si Tayeb Reha’s house the first
-time and the moment when the pistol-shot rang out?
-It had all been Marguerite Lambert’s idea—a despairing
-clutch at some faint and far-off possibility, hardly
-a hope, yet worth putting to the proof. She had heard
-every word which Gerard had spoken. She had seen
-the revolver laid upon the table. She had seen even
-more than that. For when Gerard had gone from the
-room, Paul had taken the revolver at once in his hands.
-It would be a very little while before the sergeant noticed
-that Gerard’s revolver was missing from its
-pouch. He had not even time to write more than one
-“good-bye” to Marguerite. There were good friends
-who would look after her—the Basha himself, Selim
-his own servant.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>The road to the coast passed across the plain below
-the city, and there was a letter for her long since
-written with his instructions, on the top of his desk.
-He paused after he had written his one word to make
-sure that he had forgotten nothing. The addresses of
-his agents and his lawyers were written in the letter
-and all that he had, his property in the English funds,
-his houses in Fez and Casablanca, was bequeathed to
-her in a will of which Mr. Ferguson had charge. No,
-nothing had been forgotten—except that Marguerite
-herself was watching him from behind the curtains.
-She came into the room.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul handed to her the paper with the one word
-“good-bye” written upon it.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Marguerite, Gerard de Montignac has been here.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I know. I heard.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Then you understand, my dear. This is the end
-for me.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“For both of us, then, Paul.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>He began to argue and stopped. The futility of his
-words was too evident. She would follow him, whatever
-he might say. He began to thank her for the
-great love she had lavished on him and he stopped
-again. “I could never tell you what you have meant to
-me,” he said, helplessly. “But if it was all to do again,
-I should do as I did. For nothing in the world would
-I have left you alone through those days in the house
-of Si Ahmed Driss. Only, it is a pity that it must all
-end like this.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>He took her in his arms and kissed her and put her
-from him. “Will you leave me now, my dear? At
-any moment the knock may come upon the door.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>It was then that Marguerite’s inspiration came to
-her. She besought him to hold his hand. She fetched
-a rope and an axe. Often she had noticed from the
-window that ledge of rock breaking the precipice below.
-Paul was inclined to revolt against the trick
-which she was asking him to play. It was not likely
-to succeed with Gerard de Montignac. It would only
-add one more touch of indignity to their deaths. But
-Marguerite was urgent.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I’m not thinking of just saving our lives, Paul, so
-that we may fly and hide ourselves again in some still
-darker corner for a little while,” she said, eagerly. “I’ll
-tell you of my hope, my plan, afterwards. Now we
-must hurry.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul doubled the rope over one of the iron stanchions
-of the balcony close to the wall, whilst Marguerite
-locked the door. He climbed over the rail, and, taking
-a turn of the doubled rope round the upper part of his
-right arm and another turn round his right thigh, he
-let himself down until he hung below the balcony. He
-kept his arms squared and his hands below the level
-of his chin, and placing the flat of his feet against the
-wall of the house, he was able, by slackening the coils
-round arm and thigh, to descend without effort to the
-ledge of rock, where he lay huddled in a counterfeit
-of death.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Don’t move until you hear my voice calling to
-you,” she whispered. Then she drew up the rope and
-broke down the rail of the balcony with some blows
-of the axe, and, unlocking the door, hid away both axe
-and rope in another room. She came back swiftly, and
-then, taking up the heavy revolver, fired it out of the
-window and let it fall upon the boards of the balcony.
-She dropped to her knees, and thus Gerard de Montignac
-found her.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>All through that scene, whilst life and death were in
-the balance for these two, Paul Ravenel lay motionless
-upon the ledge of rock below the city wall. He dared
-not look up; he heard Gerard’s voice raised in anger
-and scorn; he expected the shock of the bullet tearing
-through his heart. But the voice diminished to a murmur.
-Gerard had gone back into the room. Some
-debate was in progress, and while it was in progress,
-from this and that far quarter of the sky the vultures
-gathered and wheeled above the precipice.&nbsp;.&nbsp;.&nbsp;.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>After a while he heard Marguerite’s voice, and,
-looking up, saw that she was letting down the rope
-to him. She had tied knots in it at intervals to help
-him in his ascent, and he clambered up to her side.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Gerard has gone?” he asked.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes. He will not come here again.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Then he believed you?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“No. He left us in pity to live our lives out as best
-we could,” said Marguerite.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul nodded his head.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Others will be coming and going now,” he said.
-“This city will become a show-place, very likely. We
-can’t remain in Mulai Idris because of those others.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“And we can’t remain anywhere else because of
-ourselves,” said Marguerite, quietly.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul was not startled by the words. They were no
-more than the echo of words which he had been trying
-during this last half hour not to speak to himself.
-They had built up with elaborate care a great pretence
-of contentment, watching themselves so that there
-might be no betrayal of the truth, watching each other
-so that if the truth did at some unendurable moment
-flash out, no heed should be taken of it; and hoping
-even without any conviction that one day the contentment
-would grow real. But all that patient edifice of
-pretence was a crumble of dust now. The outer world
-in the person of Gerard de Montignac in his uniform
-had rushed in, with his hard logic, its scorn for duty
-abandoned, its emblems of duty fulfilled; and there was
-no more any peace for Paul Ravenel and Marguerite
-Lambert. To live for thirty or forty years more as they
-had been living! It was in both their thoughts that
-it would have been better for Gerard de Montignac to
-have done straightway what he threatened, and for
-Marguerite to have followed her lover as she had determined.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul sat down at the table with his eyes upon Marguerite.
-She had some hope, some plan. So much
-she had said. Was it, he wondered, the plan of which
-he from time to time had dreamed, but for her sake
-had never dared to speak? He waited.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You are a man, Paul,” she began, “oh, generous as
-men should not be, but a man. And you sit here idle.
-A great personage in Mulai Idris, no doubt. The
-power behind the throne—the Basha’s throne!” The
-hard words were spoken with a loving gentleness which
-drew their sting. “A man must have endeavour—I
-don’t say success—but endeavour of a kind, if only in
-games. Otherwise what? He becomes a thing in carpet
-slippers, old before his youth is spent, and this you
-would dwindle, too, for me! No, my dear!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul made no gesture and uttered no word. She
-was to speak her thought out.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You laugh and joke with these people here. For
-five minutes at a time no doubt you can forget,” she
-continued. “But you can never exchange thoughts
-with your equals, you can never talk over old dreams
-you have had in common, old, hard, and tough experiences
-which you have shared. And these things, Paul,
-are all necessary for a man.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Again Paul Ravenel neither denied nor agreed. He
-left to her the right of way.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“And in spite of all you still love me!” she cried, in
-a sudden fervour, clasping her hands together upon
-her breast. “Me whom you should hate. I clutch the
-wonder of that to my heart. I must keep your love.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul Ravenel smiled.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“There’s no danger of your losing it, Marguerite.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Marguerite shook her head.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“But there is—oh, not at once! But I am warned,
-Paul. There’s the light showing on the reef. I keep
-my course at more than my peril.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul went back upon his words and his looks. What
-could he have said, he who so watched himself?</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“And this warning?” he asked, with a smile, making
-light of it.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“We dare not quarrel,” she answered, slowly.
-“That human natural thing is barred from us. The
-sharp words flashing out, the shrug of impatience, the
-few tears perhaps from me, the silent hour of sulkiness
-in you, the making-up, the tenderness and remorse—these
-things are for other lovers, Paul, never, my dear,
-for you and me. We daren’t quarrel. We must watch
-ourselves night and day lest we do! For if we did,
-the unforgivable word might be spoken. I might fling
-my debt to you in your face. I might be reminded of
-it, anyway. No, we must live in a constraint. Other
-lovers can quarrel and love no less. Not you and I—a
-man who has given his honour and career, and a
-woman who has taken them!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>The argument silenced Paul Ravenel, for there was
-no disputing it. How daintily the pair of them had
-minced amongst words! With what terror of a catastrophe
-if the tongue slipped!</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“So .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. ?” he asked.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes,” said Marguerite, with a nod. “So! So,
-Paul, let us stake all on one splendid throw! Go down
-if we must, but if we do, in a fine endeavour, and perhaps,
-after all, win out to the open street!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>She spoke with a ring in her voice which Paul had
-not heard for a long while.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“How?” he asked, and the light leaped in his eyes.
-So much hung upon the answer.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“The French are recruiting Moorish soldiers——”
-and she got no further, for Paul sprang up from his
-chair, his face one flame of hope.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Marguerite!” he cried, in a thrilling voice, and
-then sank down again with his face buried in his arms.
-“Marguerite!” he whispered, and the tenderness and
-gratitude with which the utterance of her name was
-winged, she caught into her memories and treasured
-there against the solitude which was to come.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>She moved round the table and laid her hand upon
-his bowed head and let it slip and rest upon his heaving
-shoulder.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“So the thought has been in your mind too, Paul?”
-she said, with a smile.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“And for a long time?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“And you would not speak it. No! I must find
-that way out for myself,” she said, gently chiding him,
-“lest you should seem to wish at all costs to be rid of
-me.” She walked away from his side and drew a
-chair up to the table opposite to him.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Let us be practical,” she said, very wisely, though
-her eyes danced. “It would be possible for you to
-enlist without being recognised?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul lifted his head and nodded:</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Over in the south by Marrakesch.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“And you could continue to escape recognition.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I think so. Even if I were recognised, very likely
-those who recognised me would say nothing. I remember
-a case once .&nbsp;.&nbsp;.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Here?” cried Marguerite. “There was a case, then—an
-example to follow—and even so you would not
-tell me.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I didn’t mean I know of a case here. I was thinking
-of another country. India. If that man could, I
-could, for I am even better equipped than he was.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul Ravenel could say that with confidence. He
-knew more of the Moors, had more constantly lived
-their life and spoken their dialects than Colonel Vanderfelt
-had known of the Pathans upon the frontier
-of India. The example of Colonel Vanderfelt had
-been long in Paul Ravenel’s thoughts. How often had
-he watched with an envy not to be described, both when
-he waked and when he slept, that limping figure, with
-the medals shining upon his breast, walk down the dark
-city street from the brilliant lights of the Guildhall!</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>How often had this room in the remote hill town of
-Mulai Idris been suddenly filled with the fragrance of
-a Sussex garden, whilst he himself looked out not
-upon the hillside of Zahoun but upon a dim and dewy
-lawn where roses clustered! He had done the bad
-thing which his father did, and, like his father, lost his
-place in the world. Could he now win back that place
-by the expiation of his father’s friend? Was it not of
-excellent omen that the solution which he had remembered,
-Marguerite had herself devised? But she must
-weigh everything.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“It may be long before opportunity comes,” he
-warned her. “Such opportunity as will restore to me
-my name. It may never come at all. Or death may
-come with it.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Marguerite looked round the room and out of the
-window to the barren hill.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Is not this death, Paul?” she answered, simply, and
-he was answered.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You must make me a promise, too, before I go,
-Marguerite,” he continued. “More than once you’ve
-said you couldn’t go on living if .&nbsp;.&nbsp;.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Marguerite interrupted him.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I promise.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Then I’ll go.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>A great load was lifted from both of them. They
-set straightway about their preparations. Marguerite
-was to set out first with Selim and her women. The
-road over the Red Hill to Tangier was no longer safe
-at all, since it passed through a portion of the Spanish
-zone. But five days of easy travel would take her to
-Casablanca, through a country now peaceful as a road
-in France. She would go to Marseilles, she said, and
-wait there for news of Paul. They passed that evening
-with a lightness of spirit which neither of them had
-known since they had laughed and loved in the house of
-Si Ahmed Driss before the massacres of Fez.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“There is one thing which troubles me,” said Paul,
-catching her in his arms and speaking with a great
-tenderness. “Long ago in Fez you once told me of a
-girl who, when her husband died, dressed herself in
-her wedding gown——”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Hush!” said Marguerite, and laid her hand upon
-his lips.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You remember, then?” said Paul. He took her
-hand gently away, and Marguerite bent her head down
-and nodded. “ ‘I couldn’t do that, my dear,’ you said.
-I have never forgotten it, Marguerite. I should have
-dearly loved, if before we parted—that had been possible.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Marguerite raised her face. There were tears in her
-eyes, but her lips were smiling, and there was a smile,
-too, in her eyes behind the tears.</p>
-
-
- <div class='poetry-container' style=''>
- <div class='lgp'> <!-- rend=';' -->
-<div class='stanza-outer'>
-<p class='line0'>“<span class='it'>I know! the World proscribes not love;</span></p>
-<p class='line0'>&ensp;&ensp;<span class='it'>Allows my finger to caress</span></p>
-<p class='line0'><span class='it'>Your lips’ contour and downiness</span></p>
-<p class='line0'>&ensp;&ensp;<span class='it'>Provided I supply a glove.</span></p>
-<p class='line'>&#160;</p>
-</div>
-<div class='stanza-outer'>
-<p class='line0'>“<span class='it'>The World’s good word!—the Institute!</span></p>
-<p class='line0'>&ensp;&ensp;<span class='it'>Guizot receives Montalembert!</span></p>
-<p class='line0'><span class='it'>Eh? Down the court three lampions flare;</span></p>
-<p class='line0'>&ensp;&ensp;<span class='it'>Put forward your best foot!</span>”</p>
-</div>
-</div></div> <!-- end poetry block --><!-- end rend -->
-
-<p class='noindent'>She quoted with a laugh from the poet whose brown
-books had been the backbone of their library, and then
-drew his head down to hers and whispered:</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Thank you, Paul. The world shall supply its glove—afterwards,
-when you come back to me.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“But if I don’t come back .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. ?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Well, then, my dear, since you have been the only
-man for me, and I have been the only woman for you,
-we must hope that the good God will make the best of
-it.” She laughed again and her arms tightened about
-his neck. “But come back to me, my dear!” she whispered.
-“I am young, you know, Paul—twenty-three.
-I shall have such a long time to wait if you don’t, now
-that I have promised.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>They were ready within the twenty-four hours. The
-tail of Gerard de Montignac’s column had hardly disappeared
-before Marguerite, with her little escort, her
-tents and camp outfit, rode out of the gate of Mulai
-Idris and turned northwards past the columns of Volubilis.
-Paul rode with her to the top of the breach in
-the hills, whence the track zigzagged down to the plain
-of the Sebou. There they took their leave of one another.
-At each turn of the road Marguerite looked upwards
-and saw her lover upon his horse, his blue cape
-and white robes fluttering about him, outlined against
-the sky. The tears were raining down her face now
-which she had withheld so long as they were together,
-and in her heart was one deep call to him: “Oh, come
-back to me!” She looked up again and the breach in
-the hills was empty. Her lover had gone.</p>
-
-<div><h1 id='ch23'>CHAPTER XXIII</h1></div>
-
-<h3>The Necessary Man</h3>
-
-<p class='noindent'><span class='lead-in'><span class='dropcap'>I</span>n</span> the summer of that same year, the thundercloud
-burst over Europe, and France, at her moment of
-need, reaped the fine harvest of her colonial policy.
-Black men and brown mustered to the call of her bugle
-as men having their share of France. Gerard de Montignac
-scrambled like his brother officers to get to the
-zone of battles. He was seconded in the autumn, was
-promoted colonel a year later, and was then summoned
-to Paris.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>In a little room upon the first floor in a building adjacent
-to the War Office Gerard discovered Baumann,
-of the Affaires Indigènes, but an uplifted Baumann, a
-Baumann who had grown a little supercilious towards
-colonels.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Ah, De Montignac!” he said, with a wave of the
-hand. “I have been expecting you. Yes. Will you
-sit down for a moment?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Gerard smiled and obeyed contentedly. There were
-so many Baumanns about nowadays, and he never tired
-of them. Baumann frowned portentously over some
-papers on his desk for a few moments, and then, pushing
-them aside, smoothed out his forehead with the
-palm of his hand.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yours is a simpler affair, De Montignac. I am
-happy to say,” he said, with a happy air of relief.
-“The Governor-General is in Paris. You will see him
-after this interview. He wants you again in Morocco.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“It is necessary?” Gerard asked, unwillingly.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Not a doubt of it, my dear fellow. You can take
-that from me. The Governor-General is holding the
-country with the merest handful of soldiers, and there
-are—annoyances.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Serious ones?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Very. Bartels, for instance.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Bartels?” Gerard repeated. “I never heard of
-him.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Far away from the main shock of the battles, many
-curious and romantic episodes were occurring, many
-strange epics of prowess and adventure which will
-never find a historian. Bartels was the hero of one,
-and here in Baumann’s clipped phrases are the bare
-bones of his exploit.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“He was a non-commissioned officer in the German
-army .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. enlisted on his discharge in our Foreign
-Legion—was interned in August, 1914, and got away
-to Melilla.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“In the Spanish zone, on the coast. Yes,” said
-Gerard.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“He was safe there and on the edge of the Riff
-country. He got into touch with a more than usually
-turbulent chieftain of those parts, Abd-el-Malek, and
-also with a German official in Spain. From the German
-officials Bartels received by obscure routes fifteen
-thousand pounds a month in solid cash, minus, of
-course, a certain attrition which the sum suffers on the
-way.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Of course,” said Gerard.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“With the fifteen thousand—call it twelve—with the
-twelve thousand pounds a month actually received, and
-Abd-el-Malek’s help, Bartels has built himself a walled
-camp up in the hills close to the edge of the French
-zone, where he maintains two thousand riflemen well
-paid and well armed.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Gerard leaned forward quickly.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“But surely a protest has been made to Spain?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Baumann smiled indulgently.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“How you rush at things, my dear De Montignac!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“It will be ‘Gerard’ in a moment,” De Montignac
-thought.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Of course a protest has been lodged. But Spain
-renounces responsibility. The camp is in a part of the
-country which she has officially declared to be not yet
-subdued. On the other hand, it is in the Spanish zone—and
-we have enough troubles upon our hands as it is,
-eh?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Gerard leaned back in his chair.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“That has always been our trouble, hasn’t it? The
-unsubdued Spanish zone,” he said, moodily. “What
-does Bartels do with his two thousand riflemen?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“He wages war. He comes across into French
-Morocco, and raids and loots and burns and generally
-plays the devil. And, mark you, he gets information;
-he chooses his time cleverly. When we are just about
-to embark fresh troops to France, that’s his favourite
-moment. The troops have to be retained, rushed
-quickly up country—and he, Bartels, is snugly back on
-the Spanish side of the line and we can’t touch him.
-Bartels, my dear De Montignac”—and here Baumann,
-of the Affaires Indigènes, tapped the table impressively
-with the butt of his pencil—“Bartels has got to be
-dealt with.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes,” Gerard replied. “But how, doesn’t seem
-quite so obvious, does it?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Baumann gently flourished his hand.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“We leave that with every confidence to you, my
-dear Colonel.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Gerard pushed his chair back.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Oh, you do, do you! I don’t know that I’ve the
-type of brain for that job,” he said, and thought disconsolately
-how often he had jeered at the officers
-who simply passed everything that wasn’t in “the
-book.” He would very much have liked to take the
-same line now. “How does this fellow Bartels get
-his twelve thousand pounds?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Through Tetuan probably. We don’t quite know,”
-said Baumann.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“And where exactly is his camp on the map?” Gerard
-asked next.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“We are not sure. We can give you, of course, a
-general idea.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“We have nobody amongst his two thousand men,
-then?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Not a soul. So, you see, you have a clear
-field.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes, I see that, and I need hardly say that I am
-very grateful,” said De Montignac.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Baumann was not quick to appreciate irony even in
-its crudest form. He smiled as one accepting compliments.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“We do our best, my dear Gerard,” and Gerard
-beamed with satisfaction. He had heard what he had
-wanted to hear, and he would not spoil its flavour. He
-rose at once and took up his cap.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I will go and see the Governor-General.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You will find him next door,” said Baumann. “We
-keep him next door to us whilst he is in Paris, so far
-as we can.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You are very wise,” said Gerard, gravely, and he
-went next door, which was the War Office. There he
-met his chief, who said:</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You have seen Baumann? Good! Take a little
-leave, but go as soon as you can. Ten days, eh? I
-will see you in a fortnight at Rabat,” and the Governor-General
-passed on to the Elysée.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Gerard de Montignac did not, however, take his ten
-days. He knew his chief, a tall, preëminent man, both
-in war and administration, who, with the utmost good-fellowship,
-expected much of his officers. Gerard
-spent one day in Paris and then travelled to Marseilles.
-At Marseilles he had to wait two days, and visited in
-consequence a hospital where a number of Moorish
-soldiers lay wounded, men of all shades from the fair
-Fasi to the coal-black negro from the south. Their
-faces broke into smiles as Gerard exchanged a word or
-a joke with them in their own dialects.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>He stopped a little abruptly at the foot of one bed
-in which the occupant lay asleep with—a not uncommon
-sight in the ward—a brand-new <span class='it'>medaille militaire</span>
-pinned upon the pillow.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“He is badly hurt?” Gerard asked.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“He is recovering very well,” said the nurse who accompanied
-him. “We expect to have him out of the
-hospital in a fortnight.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Gerard remained for a moment or two looking at
-the sleeper, and the nurse watched him curiously.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“It will do him no harm if I wake him up,” she suggested.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Gerard roused himself from an abstraction into
-which he had fallen.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“No,” he answered, with a laugh. “If I was a general,
-I would say, yes. But sleep is a better medicine
-than a crack with a mere colonel. What is his name?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Ahmed Ben Larti,” said the nurse, and with a careless
-“So?” Gerard de Montignac moved along to the
-next bed. But before he passed out of the ward he
-jerked his head towards the sleeper and asked:</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Will he be fit for service again?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Certainly,” she answered. “In a month, I should
-think.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Gerard left the hospital, and the next morning was
-back in Baumann’s office in Paris.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I have found the man I want,” he said.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Who is he?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Ahmed Ben Larti. He is in hospital at Marseilles.
-He has the <span class='it'>medaille militaire</span>.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Baumann shrugged his shoulders. “Who has it
-not?” he seemed to say.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I had better see the Governor-General,” said
-Gerard.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Baumann became mysterious, as befitted a high officer
-of Intelligence.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Difficult, my young friend,” he began.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Excellent, Baumann, excellent,” interrupted Gerard,
-with a chuckle.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Baumann pouted.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I don’t quite understand,” he said.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“And there’s no reason that you should,” Gerard answered,
-politely.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Baumann was not very pleased. It was his business
-to do the mystifying.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“It’s practically impossible that you should see the
-Governor-General again. He is so occupied,” he said,
-firmly.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Gerard got up from his chair.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Where is he?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Ah!” said Baumann, wisely. “That is another
-matter.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Then you don’t know,” exclaimed Gerard, standing
-over him.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“No,” answered Baumann, and it took Gerard the
-rest of that day before he ran his chief to earth. Like
-other busy men, the Governor-General had the necessary
-time to give to necessary things, and in a spare
-corner of the Colonial Office, he listened with some
-astonishment, asked a few questions, and wrote a note
-to the War Office.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“This will get you what you want, De Montignac.
-For the rest, I agree.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Forty-eight hours later Gerard had a long interview
-with Ahmed Ben Larti in a private ward to which the
-Moor had been removed: and towards the end of the
-interview, Ahmed Ben Larti made a suggestion.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“That’s it!” said Gerard enthusiastically. Then his
-spirits dropped. “But we haven’t got any. No, we
-haven’t got one.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“The Governor-General,” the Moor suggested.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I’ll send him a telegram,” said Gerard de Montignac.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Now this was in the spring of autumn, 1916, when
-Bartels was in the full bloom of power. His camp
-was full, for the danger was small, the pay high, and
-the discipline easy. The Moor brought his horse and
-his rifle, was paid so many dollars a day, and could go
-home if the pay failed or his harvest called him. But
-in the autumn Bartels in his turn began to suffer annoyance.
-Thus, on one occasion a strange humming
-filled the air, and a most alarming thing swooped out
-of the sky with a roar and dropped a bomb in the middle
-of the camp.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Bartels ran out of his hut with an oath. “They’ve
-located us at last,” he growled. Not one of his soldiers
-had ever seen an aeroplane before, except perhaps
-the man who was cowering down on the ground close
-to him with every expression of terror. Bartels jerked
-him up to his feet.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“What’s your name?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Ahmed Ben Larti.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“They make a great noise, but they hurt no one,”
-Bartels declared. “Tell the others!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>The others were running for their lives to any sort
-of shelter. For, indeed, this sort of thing was worse
-than cannon. And unfortunately for Bartel’s encouragements,
-the aeroplane was coming back. It dropped
-its whole load of bombs in and around that camp,
-breaching the walls and destroying the huts and causing
-not a few casualties into the bargain. There was
-an exodus of some size from that camp under cover of
-the night, and Bartels the next morning thought it prudent
-to move.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>He moved westwards into the country of the
-Braue’s, and there his second misfortune befell him.
-His month’s instalment of money did not come to
-hand. It should have travelled upon mules from
-Tetuan, and a rumour spread that the English had got
-hold of it. Nothing, of course, could be said; Bartels
-had just to put up with the loss and see a still further
-diminution of his army. Within a month the new
-camp was raided by aeroplanes, and Bartels had to
-move again. From a harrier of others he had sadly
-fallen to being harried himself.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“There is a traitor in the camp,” he said, and he consulted
-Abd-el-Malek and stray German visitors from
-Tetuan and Melilla. They suspected everybody who
-went away before the raids and came back afterwards.
-They never suspected men like Ahmed Ben Larti, who
-was always present in the camp on these occasions of
-danger, not overconspicuously present, but just noticeably
-present, running for shelter, for instance, or discharging
-his rifle at the aeroplane in a panic of terror.
-Bartels, however, carried on with constantly diminishing
-forces until the crops were ripening in the following
-year. Then the aeroplanes dealt with him finally.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Wherever he pitched his camp, there very quickly
-they found him out and burnt the crops for a mile
-around. The villages would no longer supply him with
-food; his army melted to a useless handful of men;
-he became negligible, a bandit on the move. Ahmed
-Ben Larti called off the little train of runners which
-had passed in his messages to French agents in Tetuan,
-and one dark evening slipped away himself. His work
-was done, and almost immediately his luck gave out.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>A telegram reached Gerard de Montignac at Rabat
-a week later from the French consul in Tetuan, which,
-being decoded, read: “Larti brought in here this morning.
-He was attacked two miles from here and left
-for dead. Recovery doubtful.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>The last of Ahmed’s messengers had been lured into
-a house in Tetuan, and upon him Larti’s final message
-announcing the date of his own arrival had been discovered.
-Further telegrams came to Rabat from Tetuan.
-Larti had lost his left arm just below the shoulder,
-and his condition was precarious. He began to
-mend, however, in a week, but three months passed
-before a French steamer brought to Casablanca a haggard
-thin man in mufti with a sleeve pinned to his
-breast, who had once been Captain Paul Ravenel of the
-Tirailleurs.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Gerard de Montignac met him on the quay and
-walked up with him to the cantonment at Ain-Bourdja.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“We have got quarters for you here,” said Gerard.
-“There’s nobody you know any longer here.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes!” said Paul.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“We can rig you out with a uniform. The General
-will want to see you.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes?” said Paul.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“You know that you have been on secret service the
-whole time. The troubles at Fez were the opportunity
-needed to make your disappearance natural.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul sat down on the camp bed.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“That was arranged in Paris before you went to
-Bartels,” said Gerard. “Oh, by the way, I have something
-of yours.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>He opened a drawer of the one table in the tiny
-matchboard room and, unfolding a cloth, handed to
-Paul the row of medals which he had taken from Paul’s
-tunic when he had searched the house of Si Ahmed
-Driss in Fez.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul sat gazing at the medals for a long while with
-his head bowed.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I have got another to add to these, you know—the
-<span class='it'>medaille militaire</span>,” he said, with a laugh, and his voice
-broke. “I shall turn woman if I hold them any
-longer,” he cried, and, rising, he put them back in the
-drawer. Gerard de Montignac turned to a window
-which looked out across the plain of the Chaiouïa. He
-pointed towards the northwest and said:</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Years ago, Paul, you saved me from mutilation
-and death over there. I forgot that in Mulai Idris, and
-you didn’t remind me.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I, too, had forgotten it,” said Paul. He looked
-about the cabin, he drew a long breath as though he
-could hardly believe the fact that he was there. Then
-he said abruptly:</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I must send a telegram to Marseilles!”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Gerard de Montignac stared at him.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Marseilles?”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Yes, Marguerite has been living there all this time.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“But you were in hospital there, and no one visited
-you, I know. The nurse told me.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Paul Ravenel smiled.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“Marguerite never knew I was there. I was always
-afraid that she would come there by chance. Fortunately,
-she was driving a car. I was just Ahmed Ben
-Larti. The time had not come.” He looked at Gerard
-and nodded his head. “But I can tell you it was difficult
-not to send for her. There she was, just a few
-streets and just a few house-walls between us. There
-were sleepless nights, with the light shining down on
-all those beds of wounded men when I could have
-screamed for Marguerite aloud.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>He sent off his telegram from the Cantonment Post
-Office and then strolled into the town with Gerard de
-Montignac. The Villa Iris was closed; Madame Delagrange
-had vanished. Petras Tetarnis was no doubt
-driving his Delaunay-Belleville through the streets of
-Paris. Paul looked at his watch and put it back into
-his pocket with impatience. It was out in the palm of
-his hand again. He was counting the minutes until a
-telegram could be delivered in Marseilles. He was
-wondering whether she was already aware—as she had
-been aware when he had stood behind her on the first
-night that they met.</p>
-
-<hr class='tbk'/>
-
-<p class='pindent'>A fortnight later Mr. Ferguson, the lawyer, received
-a telegram which put him into a fluster. He was an
-old gentleman nowadays and liable to excitement. He
-sent for his head clerk, not that pertinacious servant,
-Mr. Gregory—he had long since gone into retirement—but
-another, from whom Mr. Ferguson was not inclined
-to stand any nonsense.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>“I shall want to-morrow all the necessary forms for
-securing English nationality,” he said, “and please get
-me Colonel Vanderfelt on the trunk line.”</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>The clerk went out of the office. The old man sat
-in a muse, looking out of the window upon the plane
-trees in the Square. So here was Virginia Ravenel’s
-son coming home, invalided, with a wife. How the
-years did fly, to be sure! Yet though the plane trees
-were a little dim to his eyes, he heard a voice, fresh as
-the morning, through that dusty room, and saw the
-Opera House at Covent Garden with people wearing
-the strange dress of thirty years ago.</p>
-
-<p class='line' style='text-align:center;margin-top:2em;margin-bottom:2em;font-size:.8em;'>THE END</p>
-
-<hr class='pbk'/>
-
-<h2>TRANSCRIBER NOTES</h2>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Misspelled words and printer errors have been corrected.
-Where multiple spellings occur, majority use has been
-employed.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Punctuation has been maintained except where obvious
-printer errors occur.</p>
-
-<p class='pindent'>Some illustrations were moved to facilitate page layout.</p>
-
-<p class='line'>&#160;</p>
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-<pre>
-
-
-
-
-
-End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of The Winding Stair, by A. E. W. Mason
-
-*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE WINDING STAIR ***
-
-***** This file should be named 60125-h.htm or 60125-h.zip *****
-This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
- http://www.gutenberg.org/6/0/1/2/60125/
-
-Produced by Al Haines, Cindy Beyer &amp; the online Distributed
-Proofreaders Canada team at https://www.pgdpcanada.net
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you receive
-specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of this
-eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this eBook
-for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports,
-performances and research. They may be modified and printed and given
-away--you may do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks
-not protected by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the
-trademark license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country outside the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you'll have to check the laws of the country where you
- are located before using this ebook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and The
-Project Gutenberg Trademark LLC, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org
-
-
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's principal office is in Fairbanks, Alaska, with the
-mailing address: PO Box 750175, Fairbanks, AK 99775, but its
-volunteers and employees are scattered throughout numerous
-locations. Its business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt
-Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up to
-date contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site and
-official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-For additional contact information:
-
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works.
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-
-
-
-</pre>
-
- </body>
- <!-- created with fpgen.py 4.61k on 2019-07-29 18:28:39 GMT -->
-</html>
diff --git a/old/60125-h/images/cover.jpg b/old/60125-h/images/cover.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 629f82d..0000000
--- a/old/60125-h/images/cover.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/60125-h/images/illo134.png b/old/60125-h/images/illo134.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 785a41c..0000000
--- a/old/60125-h/images/illo134.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/60125-h/images/illo230.png b/old/60125-h/images/illo230.png
deleted file mode 100644
index f8d1eeb..0000000
--- a/old/60125-h/images/illo230.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/60125-h/images/illo60.png b/old/60125-h/images/illo60.png
deleted file mode 100644
index c088f13..0000000
--- a/old/60125-h/images/illo60.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/60125-h/images/illofront.png b/old/60125-h/images/illofront.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 06aeaa3..0000000
--- a/old/60125-h/images/illofront.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ